Sunteți pe pagina 1din 159

Copyright 1933 by Oxford University Press

Conversion: Series Introduction Copyright © 1985

New Introduction Copyright © 1988 by


PREFACE
The Old and the New in Religion from
University Press of America,® Inc.
Alexander the Great to Augustine of Hippo o careful student of the life and though t ·of our
4720 Boston Way
Lanham, MD 20706 N . times can fail to remark the grea t and increasing
interest which is taken in the history of religion as a
by Arthur Darby Street
3 Henrietta Nock whole. Whether that history is regarded as a collection
London WC2E 8LU England

All rights reserved


of relics or as aseries of milestones marking man's
progress towards a fuller and finer understanding of
Printed in the United States of America
the world and of hirns elf, it is recognized as a thread
British Cataloging in Publication Information Available running through all human development. As a mani-
This edition was reprinted in 1988 by festation both of group solidarity and of emergent
University Press of America by arrangement with individualism, it is a sociological phenonenon of the
Oxford University Press, Oxford, England.
first importance; as making vocal many of the im-
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
pulses which lie below the level of consciousness and
Nock, Arthur Darby, 1902-
Conversion : the old and the new in religion from Alexander the
producing a delicate interplay between. them and the
Great to Augustine of Hippo I by A.D. Nock. intellect, it gives to the psychologist some of his most
p. cm.-(Brown classics in Judaica)
Reprint. Originally published: Oxford : Oxford University Press, 1933. fascinating material and problems. Man does not live
Includes index. by bread alone, and we cannot estimate aright even
1. Conversion-History. 2. Cults-Rome; 3. Rome-Religion.
4. Christianity-Early church, ca. 30-600. I. Title. n. Series. his attitude towards bread and bread-winning unless
BL639.N63 1988
291.4'2---dc 19 88-253 CIP we consider also his attitude towards his god or dream
ISBN 0-8191-6789-4 (pbk. : alk. paper) or devil.
Ifwe are to do this we must pay particular attention
to his passage from one god or dream or devil to
another; we must seek to know what first prompted
Oxford University Press the new interest, what gave to it compelling force,
All University Press of America books are produced on acid-free
1933
paper which exceeds tl,Ie ~um standards set br ~e National and what its acceptance meant. When Christianity
Historical Publications and Records Comnusslon.
appeared in the Roman Empire, it attracted many
who had their own traditional alinement towards the
unseen and unknown factors of existence. This process
of attraction has in the main been studied from the
Christian point of view. What I have here tried to do
Arthur Darby Nock passed away on January 11, 1963. is to look at it from the outside, and to trat end I havc
His works are now in the public domain.
Vlll Preface "Priface IX
devoted a substantial part of this book to a presentation They have done more for me than I can say; and I
of thc advance in this same world of other forms of should be indced ungrateful if I were silent on what
religion, many of them Eastern in origin, and of other I owe to the stimulus and sympathy which I have
ways of life which also won adherents. We have to received from my colleagues and my students in Har-
inquire into their nature, into the factors limiting yard, to the order and resources of its library, and to
and conditioning their success, and into the extent to the unfailing kindness of that library's staff.
which they can with justice be called missionary or
A. D. N.
propagandist. How were religious frontiers crossed HARVARD UNIVERSITY,
in antiquity? What did their crossing involve? And CAMBRIDGE, MASS.
June 1933.
when a man began to take notice of Christianity, how
much change in his mode of thinking and living did
he imagine that adhesion to it would mean?
From this attempt to discover the presuppositions
which a citizen of the Empire would bring to any new
approach to the mystery of the universe we shall pass
to a study of the attitudes which he might adopt
towards this approach in particular. We shall seek to
see as a pagan might the Christian Church and the
Christian creed. The evidence at our disposal does
not admit of complete success in this quest; we can
but hope to make a reasonable approximation to the
truth and, in the Swedish proverb, 'to put the church
in the middle of the village' .
The substance of this book was delivered as Donnel-
lan Lectures at Trinity College, Dublin, in June 1931,
and as Lowell Lectures at King's Chapel, Boston, in
1933, and I arn very much indebted, both to those who
invited me to speak on these matters and "to those
who listened, for their generous encouragement. I
should like to take this opportunity of thanking also
all the friends who have helped me by their counsel,
and in particular Mr. M. P. Charlesworth, Mr. C. F.
Edson, Mr. C. T. Seltman, and Dr. W. W. Tarn.
CONTENTS Contents Xl
V. THE PATH TO ROME. . 66
BROWN CLASSICS IN JUDAICA xiü Worships brought by merchants, slaves, and returning soldiers.
INTRODUCTION TO THE BROWN CLASSICS Policy of the Roman State; control and Romanization. Cybele.
The Bacchanalia. Mithras.
IN JUDAICA SERIES EDITION xv
I. THE IDEA OF CONVERSION . VI. HOW EASTERN CULTS TRAVELLED 77
· 'd ual propaganda. Processions and other ceremonies. .Mendi-
I nd lVI
Nature of religion in general. Primitive religions are sodal, not
cant priests. Public penitents. Mirade and its record in literary
looking beyond particular groups, and Not-Reason-Why; prophetie
works intended to glorify the deities concerned and to excite interest
religions are Reason-Why and missionary. Intermediary types in their power and worship. Votive offerings. Alexander of Abonu-
created by complex cultures with conquest and migration. Con- tichus. Tbe problem of honesty in religion.
version as ordinarily conceived the result of a background of
Christian ideas, thanks to which concepts of sin and salvation exist VII. THE APPEAL OF THESE CULTS. . 99
under the level of consciousness in the convert's mind before his Need for new cults and new groupings arising out of political con-
experience. EIsewhere conversion lacks these presuppositions but ditions. Attraction of novelty. Desire for fresh divine protectors in
implies a measure of preparedness and a sense of certain needs. the larger world in which men lived as a result of the conquests of
Spiritual needs in the Roman Empire. Attractions offered by the Alexander, and in the stilliarger and stranger world in which they
mysteries, ]udaism, Christianity. Contrast of conversion and found themselves in consequence of the dissemination of astrological
adhesion. Why men undertake religious propaganda. ideas, which brought the unspeculative man face to face with cosmic
universals. Interest in immortality and des ire to escape from an
11. THE IDEA OF CONVERSION AND GREEK uncomfortable hereafter. Inquisitiveness about the supernatural and
RELIGION BEFORE ALEXANDER THE wish for revelation rather than reason as a guide to the secrets ofthe
GREAT . . .. 17 universe.
The worships of a Greek city and of the Greek nation as a civic and
national possession, capable of receiving new elements, but not re- VIII. THE SUCCESS OF THESE CULTS IN
garded as articles of faith to be imposed on others or recommended THE ROMAN EMPIRE " 122
to them, other races having their appropriate worships, which Gradual rise to the death of Nero. Greater rise under the Flavians
deserved the reverence of Greeks living in foreign communities. and Antonines. Connexion between this and the change in the
Greek piety organic, without conflict and missionary zeal, although composition ofthe ruling dass. Orientalizing under the Sevcri. The
in the early period the spread of the cult of Apollo, the Dionysiac Roman re action and the conflict with Christianity. Relative
movement, and Orphism had a11 involved deli berate propaganda. strength of these and of older cults. Absence of theology and hier-
Relative failure of Orphism, as contrasted with success of Buddhism, archy. Belief and tradition.
typical of the Greek temper in religion.
IX. THE CONVERSION OF LUCIUS. . 13 8
111. GREEKS IN THE EAST AFTER ALEX- The story as told by Apuleius. The confirrnation of its trustworthi-
ANDER 33 ness by the Oxyrhynchus litany and other evidence. The lire of
Closer contacts of Greeks and Orientals in the Hellenistic period. contemplation and obedience in paganism.
The interplay cultural rather than religious, in the main, but result-
ing in the creation of new mixed forms of worship and of Graeco- X. THE LAST PHASE 156
Oriental initiations. The rise of Sarapis. The birth of Mithraism. Conversions back from Christianity to paganism. Porphyry,]ulian,
Asoka's mission to Greece. and the unknown senator. The continuity of ancient religion.

IV. THE OPPOSITE CURRENT 48 XI. CONVERSION TO PHILOSOPHY . 164


Orientals and orientalized Greeks settling in Greek cities for trade The rise of Greek philosophy. Socrates and discipleship. Plato's
and other reasons. Individuals bringing in cults. The dream of creation of a permanent horne for esoteric study and of an exo.teric
Zoilus. How Sarapis came to Delos. The naturalization of alien literature addressed to the general public. Philosophy held a
cults in Greek cities. Initiations not apredominant feature. ]udaism dominant place because (I) it offered intelligible explanations of
in this world; thc resultant give and take.
XI1 Contents BROWN CLASSICS IN JUDAICA
phenomena; (2) it offered a life with ascherne, a discip~ine, and
a goal; (3) it produced the saints ofantiquity; (4) it had the mfluence
ofthe living teacher; (5) it made a literary appeal. It evoked repen-
:lassics of scholarly exposition of important problems
tance and conversion.
XII. THE SPREAD OF CHRISTIANITY AS A
C and themes in Judaism gain renewed life in the series at
hand. The criterion for selection for reprint explains the
SOCIAL PHENOMENON 193 purpose of the editors. We seek to place into the hands of a
The beginnings of the Church. No out-af-door ceremonial, and
nothing to strike the public eye except the type of the martyr, who new generation the enduring intellectual achievements of
could captivate the popular imagination because of philos~p~ic an earlier time in our own century and in the one before.
analogies and of the general fascination then exerted by stnkmg The issues of Judaism and the life of the Jewish people,
gestures. Parallels in rhetoric and in the Greek novel. Thc picturc
of .the movemcnt given by Celsus. Christianity regarded as mass analyzed in a rigorous and responsible way, retain
apostasy by those who were repelled, as a society guaranteeing perennial relevance. For wh at being a Jew meant in times
all that was needed by those who were attracted. Its success duc past derived from the on-going imperatives of Judaism,
to its power to satisfy these needs rather the human personality of
on the one side, and the condition of eternal Israel, the
Jesus as portrayed in the Synoptic Gospels. .
Jewish people, on the other. The editors therefore main-
XIII. THE TEACHINGS OF CHRISTIANITY tain that scholars speaking to a broad audience in one age
AS VIEWED BY A PAGAN . 212
continue to address the lasting realities ,of ages to come.
The moral requirements no stricter than those of the popular
philosophy of the time, but based on other reasons and reinforced by For scholars to begin with ask not what is current but what
a promise of new strength to f ulfil them. The abandonment of popular is true, not what presses today but what is urgent everyday,
worship less acceptable, hut in line with speculative thought. Teach- for all times.
ing about God the Father not unfamiliar in view of the widespread The records of the past teach diverse lessons. The one we
tendency towards monotheism. The Gospel story of the birth and wish to impart is how first/-rate minds confront the re cord of
death of the Son of God intelligi ble, and the concept of an intermediary
divine power common. Idea of incarnation strange. The argu- the past as an on-going encounter with an enduring condi-
ment in support ofthe claims ofJesus from the fulfilment ofprophccy tion and an on -going human reality. So we promise that the
then very acceptable. Doctrine of resurrection of body strange and books of this series exemplified in this one, will speak to
repellent. In general Christianity could be represented as the crown today's readers as much as it did to the ones who first re-
of the best thought of antiquity. ceived the works we now reprint. The series highlights
XIV. THREE TYPES OF CONVERSION. JUS- modes of address we find exemplary. When scholars speak,
TIN, ARNOBIUS, AUGUSTINE . . 254 they demand a hearing because they ask the tough questions
Conversion in Acts ascribed to the argument from prophecy and to and trouble to discover rigorous answers to them. Scholars
miracles. Justin came to Christianity at the end of a disappoi~ted are not always right. Time alone will sort things out. But
intellectual quest, Arnobius in a mood of revulsion from pagamsm.
scholars always take responsibility for knowing the require-
Justin in his account is on the defensive, Arno?i~s o.n the offensive.
For Augustine, as for modern converts, Chnstlamty was always ments of truth and attempting in good faith to meet them.
in the background; he was haunted by it and sought to find They do not make things up as they go along and declare
whether it could be intellectually respectable. Conclusions. new truth morning by morning.
This series proposes to renew the life of classics of Judaic
NOTES learning because the editors deern an important task the on-
INDEX going renewal of sustained leaming in the realm of Judaic
discourse. So this book is in this series because it shows, in

xiii
I
THE IDEA OF CONVERSION
AN is born into a world in which there are some
M objects and processes which are to hirn fully com-
prehensible and others which ~renot. When he
releases his hold on a stone which he has held in his
hand and it falls to the ground, the result is always the
same, and there is nothing to excite any feeling of
dependence on unknown forces. Birth, however, and
growth and sexual relations and death and success in
fishing or hunting and agriculture are all matters in
which man is not his own master and appears to be
dealing -Jwith something uncanny. This distinction is
fundamental, and we can observe it in the behaviour
of animals. Where man differs from the animals-so
far as we yet know-is that throughout as much of
his evolution as is known to us he has normally not
remained supine but has striven to take a positive
attitude and assume adefinite line of conduct towards
these mysteries. What he says and does rests on the
assumption that the secret workings of nature are
capable of being influenced by his actions, and com-
monlyon the further assumption that these secret
workings are due to forces which operate in virtue
of wills and emotions comparable with those which
prompt his own operations.
What he thus says and does makes up religion. Our
evidence does not allow us to penetrate into the
beginnings of this form of conduct; at the earliest
stages of huma~ evolution known to us such activity
is already determined by a tradition which embodies
2 The Idea of Conversion The Idea ofConversion 3
the collective wisdom of the community. Like many that he has been led by something external and
other aspects of social organization, it is often thought objective. Whereas in religions of tradition\the essen-'
to rest upon some original revelation or revelations, tial element is the practice and therc is no under-
given by higher powers, or upon the communing of lying idea other than the sanctity of custom hallowed
specially gifted persons with these powers; and like by preceding generations, in prophetie religions the
these other institutions it is commonly conceived as reason is all-important and the practice flows from it
possessing an inherent fixity. In fact, however, it is and is in a sense secondary even if indispensable.
not exempt from the law of change, but such change The prophet has a message which he feels an inward
is gradual and is not liable to be considerable unless and instant impulse to deliver. He can do nothing
new needs or new cultural contacts arise. Those who else; the tru th has been vouchsafed to him, and his
follow such a tradition have no reason to interest fellows have need of it. Let us take an instance from
themselves in other traditions, and no impulse to the period under consideration, which is perhaps the
commend their own tradition to others. I t scrves more interesting in that itis the re cord of a prophet
their own needs, and the members of other social whose teaching did not strike firm roots in the world.
units have traditions which serve thdrs. Within the A tractate called the Poimandres, composed in Egypt,
group itself pressure may be put upon individuals who probably in the second or third century of our era, and
are lax in their participation in time-honoured obser- certainly before A.D. 300, teIls how an unnamed man
vances, but that is a domestic matter, and in the last who desired to know the truth of things had avision
resort a question of public order and well-being. It of the making of the universe and of man in which he
was so, as we shall see, with the Greeks. was taught the way of the soul's deliverance. His
Such a religion is part of the whole scheme of life celestial visitant co~cluded:
which each man inherits. It has for him the emotional
value attaching to a thing in which he has grown '''Now, why do you delay? Will you not, as having
up, often intensified by the solenlnity of the puberty received all, become a guide to those who are worthy, in
order that the race of humanity may through your agency
ceremonies in which he has learned the weightier
be delivered by God?" Poimandres said so to me and was
matters ofthe law. But it makes no sud den imperious
made one with the Powers. And I, having given thanks
demands-except on any who feel a vocation to be and blessed the Father of all things, was released, having
shamans or medicine men-and it asks of him action been given power by him and taught the ·nature of the
and not belief. The situation changes when a prophet universe and the supreme vision. So I began to announce
emerges. By the term prophet we mean a man who to men the beauty of piety and knowledge, saying, "0
experiences a sudden and profound dissatisfaction with people, men born of earth, you that have surrendered
things as they are, is fired with a new idea, and yourselves to drunkenness and sleep and ignorance of God,
launches out on a new path in a sincere conviction sober yourselves) and be no longer as men that have rio ted
4 The [dea cif Conversion The Idea oi Conversion 5
in liquor, and are spelIbound by foolish sleep.H They superiority or a cult and belief capable of exciting
heard me and came with one heart. And I said, "Why, curiosity and attention-of a unit in which, as a
Omen born of earth, have you given yourselves over to playwright says, nothing happens exeept hearing threc
death, although you have power to become partakers in o'clock strike and waiting for it to strike four. The
immortality? Repent, you that have trodden with error other is the religion of a prophetie movement in the
and been partners with ignorance; leave the light that is first ardour of the founder. In the first there is no
darkness, abandon destruction, and take your portion of
religious frontier to cross, no diffieult deeision to make
immortality." And some ofthem mocked and stood aside,
between two views oflife whieh make its every detail
having given themselves up to the way of death, while
others cast themselves before my feet and begged to be
different; in the other the individual stands before
taught. I made them rise up and became a guide to the a choiee whieh means either the renuneiation of his
race, teaching them the doctrine, how and in what· way past and entry into a kingdom, which if the promises
they should be saved. I sowed in them the words ofwisdom made for it are true-and that cannot be proved or
and they were nourished by the ambrosial water. And disproved-is wholly other here and will be wholly
when it was evening and the rays of the sun began to sink other hereafter, or the refusal of this dream as
wholly, I bade them offer thanks to God; and when they ehimerical.
had finished their thanksgiving they turned each to his He eannot wed twiee ndr twiee lose his soul.
own bed.' Between these two opposing terms, one wholly
So the prophet preaches to those who will hear, and static and one wholly dynamic, there is amiddie
some of them are prepared to stake all on the truth country-that of the changes in belief and worship
and fundamental importance of his preaching. That due to political development or cultural interplay.
is the first stage. Of these disciples some are soeager As society advances to more complex forms a particular
in their adhesion that they seek to convey to others centre may glorify itself by glorifying its gods and
what they have come to regard as saving truths. That representing its gods as deserving the homage of all
is the second stage. From this an institution may the members of the new larger unit; this was so in
develop, in which the experience of what is in time Egypt, where the rise of Ra and Osiris to national
a distant past is media ted to generations yet unborn, signifieance is due to their local priesthoods. Conquest
as a thing ever fresh, and can harden into a tradition and invasion have notable effeets .. We expeel that
as rigid as the order from which the prophet revolted. under the cireumstances the conquered will aeeept the
We have so far considered the two. opposing poles religion of the conquerors, because our views are formed
ofman's spiritual history. One is the system ofreligious by the ideas which we have of the sequel of Christian
observances of a small social unit with elementary needs and Mohammedan invasions, but what happened then
and interests and no important contacts with other was peculiar in that the religion of the races possessing
cultures which have either material or intellectual military ascendancy was in each ease prophetic and
6 The ldea of Conversion The Idea of Conversion 7
militant in origin and type. In the ancient world the crossing of religious frontiers, in which an old spiritual
conquerors were liable not indeed to accept the dogmas horne was left for a new once and for all, but to men's
ofthe conquered-for there were in general no dogmas having one foot on each side of a fence which was
to accept-but to incorporate deities and rites of the cultural and not creedal. They led to an acceptance
conquered in their own system. A conspicuous example of new \vorships as useful supplements and not as
is afforded by the Indo-Germanic invasion of Greece. substitutes, and they did not involve the taking of a
Not merely were the conquerors inferior in point of new way of life in place of the old. This we may call
civilization to the conquered, but it could appear to adhesion, in contradistinction to conversion. By con-
them, as to later Greeks, that the gods of a region were, version wc mean the reorientation of the soul of an
so to speak, permanent residents who had a natural individual, his deliberate turning from indifference
right to the worship of ~ny human occupants and or from an earlier form of piety to another, a turning
whom in any event it would be unwise to neglect. which implies a consciousness that a great change is
Further complication is introduced by the conditions involved, that the old was wrong and the new is right.
of a time in which men of different races and religions It is seen at its fullest in the positive response of a man
are able to move freely over a large range of territory, to the choice set before hirn by the prophetie religions.
whether for trade or otherwise. When this is so, we We know this best from the his tory of modern
find in big cities and elsewhere groups of expatriated Christianity. Here it takes two forms, the turning
folk living in alien surroundings. Such groups retain back to a tradition gene rally held and characteristic of
their religious, as their other cultural traditions, often society as a whole, a tradition in which the convcrt
indeed with changes due to intermarriage and various was hirnself reared but which he has left in scepticism
contacts; and those among whom they find themselves or indifference or violent self-assertion; and the turning
are equally exposed to this bien ding ofstrains. Exelu- away to an unfamiliar form of piety either from a
siveness in religion is confined to the prophetie type, familiar form or from indifference. Psychologically
and it is natural that there should be give and take the two have much in common, since the man who
outside it. To take an early example, the q>nnexion returns with enthusiasm will commonly fee! that he
between Egypt and Byblos resulted in borrowings has never before fully grasped the import of the faith
on both sides. The contacts thus produced by these of his childhood. The bottlcs are old but the wine
foreign groups are the most important, for they led not IS new.
only to borrowing but to fusion and to new develop- The features of such conversion have been classified
ments; but there were others, as for instance those due by William James as a passion of willingness and
to military service abroad and to slavery. Naaman acquiescence, which removes the feeling of anxiety,
heard of Jehovah through his Hebrew handmaid. a sense of perceiving truths not known before, a sense
These external circumstances led not to any definite of clean and beau tiful newness within and withou t and
8 The Idea of Conversion The Idea of Conversion 9
an ecstasy of happiness; these emotions are sometimes, emotions ofhurnility, dependence, and self-dramatiza-
and in fact often, accompanied by hallucinatory or tion. Prophetie religion has to ereate in men the
quasi-hallucinatory phenomena. This type of experi- deeper needs which it claims to fulfil. Those to whom
ence is very weIl known. We must not, however, the forgotten prophet of the Poimandres document spoke
expect to find exact analogies for it beyond the range had no consciousness of being sunk in sleep and
of countries with a long-standing Christian tradition, drunkenness, no awareness of the assistance of the
for in them even when the fact of conversion appears divine Mind of which he told them. Acts xvi. 30
wholly sudden and not led up to by a gradual process . represents the jailer at Thessalonica as saying to Paul
of gaining conviction, even when the convert may in and Silas 'What must I do- to be saved?', but this is in
all good faith profess that the beliefs wh ich have won a story told from the Christian point of view. If such
his sudden assent are new to hirn, there is a background a man used phraseology of this sort, he could have
of concepts to which a stimulus can give life. When meant only 'What am I to do in order to avoid any
J ohn Wesley preached to tQ.e miners in Kingswood unpleasant consequenees of the situation created by
few of them can have been obsessed by a sense of sin this earthquake?' Soteria and kindred words earried
or filled with adesire for supernatural grace, and yet no theological implications; they applied to deliver-
those ideas were somewhere under the level of con- ance from perils by sea and land and disease and
sciousness as a heritage from generation after genera- darkness and false opinions, all perils of which men
tion of Bible-reading and sermon-hearing forefathers. were fully aware.
Such conversion is in its essence a turning away from Prophetie religion, therefore, does not in general
a sense of present wrongness at least as much as a find in men's minds anything like the same uneonscious
turning towards a positive ideal. To quote James: sympathy which modern revivalism has used. Yet it
'Now with most of us the sense of our present wrongness naturally finds men's minds in a measure prepared;
is a far more distinct piece of our consciousness than is the it is difficult to see how else it would make serious
imagination of any positive ideal that we can aim at. In headway. The receptivity of most people for that
a majority of cases, indeed, the sin almost exclusively which is wholly new (if anything is) is small; tradition
engrosses the attention, so that conversion is "a process of suggests that it was long before Zarathustra obtained
struggling away from sin rather than of striving towards much following. The originality of a prophet lies
righteousness" .' eommonly in his ability to fuse into a white heat
Primitive religion seeks to satisfy a nu mb er ofnatural eombustible material which is there, to express and
needs, to set a seal on the stages by whieh life is marked to appear to meet the half-formed prayers of some at
and to ensure the proper working. of the natural least of his eontemporaries. The teaehing of Gotama
processes and sourees of supply on which its eontinu- the Buddha grows out of the eager and bafHed
ance depends; i t provides also an ou tlet for eertain asceticism and speeulation of his time, and it is not
10 The [dea ofConversion The Idea ofConversion 11
easy even now to define exact1y what was new in hirn of traditional views-occasionally of all views-of the
except his attitude. The message of J ohn the Baptist supernatural. Some such denial was common among
and of Jesus gave form and substance to the dreams men of speculative tendencies. Recantation was less
of a kingdom which had haunted many of their common but not unknown. Horace tells how he had
compatriots for generations. been sparing in his attentions to the gods, but was
We cannot understand the success of Christianity converted by a thunderclap out of a clear ~ky, a
outside Judaea without making an effort to determine phenomenon for which he could not give a scientific
the elements in the mind of the time to which it explanation (Odes i. 34). Lucretius gives a moving
appealed. The next nine chapters are devoted to picture of the things which shake a man's unbelief-
a survey of the forms of worship to which men turned the starry heaven, sudden disasters, consciousness of
although {hey had not been reared in them and to weakness before the infinite. Pausanias, writing two
an inquiry into the ways in which these spread, the centuries later, says of the myth of Kronos and his
psychological factors making them attractive, and the father (viii. 8. 3):
measure of success which they obtained. I may here 'When I began this work I used to look upon these Greek
indicate certain considerations which be ar on the stories as markedly on the foolish side; hut when I had got
whole matter. / as far as Arcadia my opinion about them became this: I
In the first place, there was in this world very li ttle guessed that the Greeks who were accounted wise spoke
that corresponded to areturn to the faith of one's of old in riddles and not straight out, and that this story
fathers as we know it. Except in the last phase of about Kronos is a hit of Greek wisdom.'
paganism, when the success of Christianity had put it Unbelief is not a very important feature of the
on the defensive and caused it to fight for its existence, situation. It did not as a rule excite popular animosity
there was no traditional religion which was an entity except when it was first voiced with ernphasis and
with a theology and an organization. Classical Greek publicity, as in Athens in the fifth century B.C. The
has no word which covers religion as we ·Use the term. position sei dorn became acute, because cult was in-
Eusebeia approximates to it, but in essence it me ans no dependent of ideas, which were always fluid. Neglect
more than the regular performance of due worship in of worship was due not so much to what we should
the proper spirit, while hosiotes describes ritual purity call irreligion as to self-centred indolence and to care-
in all its aspects. The place offaith was taken by myth lessness. We know from Rome the story of a young
and ritual. These things implied an attitude rather patrician who was qualified for the priesthood of
than a conviction. Where there was a conviction it flamen Dialis bu t a wastrel. He was constrained to take
was to be found in those who wished to innovate or to office, and became a thoroughly reformed character
deny, in the men who inaugurated or supported new and a model priest.
movements, and in the men who denied the validity In the second place, the feelings which we associate
12 The Idea ofConversion The Idea qf Conversion
with conversion or with the acceptance of prophetie experiences ofthe initiate would make it easier for hirn
religion were seldom excited by the new forms of to live a good life here and now. Further, apart from
belief and worship to which men turned. These were Orphism and the ancient mysteries of Eleusis, it was
as a rule supplements rather than alternatives to never maintained that these rites were essential requisites
ancestral piety. This is obvious with regard to all the . of happiness hereafter-they were valuable safeguards,
worship paid to new deities in the ordinary ways-by 'on which you could depend-and the rites were actions
sacrifice, by attendance at processions, by making vows efficient in themselves as rites and not as the expression
in distress and paying them after relief was obtained. of a theology and of a world-order sharply contrasted
I t needs some explanation as far as ceremonies of with those in which the neophyte had previously
initiation are concerned. What did they offer? moved.
Orphism at an earlier date had indeed maintained Let us set against this the claims of J udaism and
that all men have an inherited guilt which dooms them Christianity. Judaism said in effect to a man who was
to a weary round of reincarnations unlt;ss by use of its thinking of becoming a proselyte: 'You are in your
me ans ofsalvation they win release. But the initiations sins. Make a new start, put aside idolatry and the
which were sought in the world in which Christianity immoral practices which go with it, become a natural-
spread promised something like this: 'We assurne from ized member of the Chosen People by a threefold rite
the fact ofyour approach to us that you are not in too of baptism, circumcision, and offering, live as God's
bad astate. We will of course give you a preliminary Law commands, and you will have every hope of
rite or rites of disinfection which will ensure the a share in the life of the world to come.' Christianity
requisite ritual purity. That is to be followed by our said: 'You are in your sins, astate inevitable for you
holy ceremony, which will confer on you a special kind as a human being and aggravated by your wilfulness.
of blessedness which guarantees to you happiness after No action of yours will enable you to make a new start,
death.' This blessedness was secured by a rite in which no effort of yours will enable you to put aside your
the initiate went through a symbolic anticipation of guilt in God's eyes, and you are doomed to endless
what was to take place hereafter; it was a piece of suffering hereafter. Turn to us, stake everything on
sympathetic magie which ensured safety by a simu- Jesus the Christ being your saviour, and God will give
lation here and now. Death and rebirth have this to you the privilege of making a new start as a new
meaning and no other-with the exception of a curious being and will bestow upon you grace which will
sacrament of auto-suggestion in Corpus Hermeticum, xiii, enable you so to live here as to obtain a share in the
in which the powers of evil are driven out of a man life ofthe world to come. By using our sacraments you
and the powers of good take their pI ace, and of the will here and now triumph over death and will have
taurobolium in which he received a new vigour. a foretaste of the joys which await you in heaven.
Consequently, there is no idea that the sacramental Christ became man that you may become as God.'
The Idea of Conversion The Idea of Conversion
This contrast is clear. Judaism and Christianity whom we shall come wrote to glorify Isis. Genuine
demanded renunciation and a new start. They conversion to paganism will appear in our inquiry
demanded not merely acceptance of a rite, but the only when Christianity had become so powerful that
adhesion of the will to a theology, in a word faith, its riyal was, so to speak, made an entity by opposition
a new life in a new people. I t is wholly unhistorical and contrast. Then we find men returning in penitence
to compare Christianity and Mithraism as Renan did, and enthu:;iasm to the faith of thc past, now invested
and to suggest that if Christianity had died Mithraism for them with a new seriousness. At this time there
might have conquered the world. It might and would were two mutually exclusive opposites confronting one
have won plenty of adherents, but it could not have another; previously there had been J udaism and
founded a holy Mithraic church throughout the world. Christianity, with both of which outsiders had not ~s
A man used Mithraism, but he did not belong to it a rule concerned themselves much, and apart from
body and soul; if he did, that was a matter of special them a number of approaches to the supernatural
attachment and not an inevitable concomitant pre- differing from one another ,and only occasionally in
scribed by authority. rivalry, none of them appearing useless except to J ews
There was therefore in these rivals of J udaism and and Christians in whose eyes they were worse than
Christianity no possibility of anything which can be useless.
called conversion. In fact the only context in which Nevertheless, aIthough there was no basis for con-
we find it in ancient paganism is that of philosophy, version in these worships, men did adhere to forms
which held a eie ar concept of two types of life, a higher other than those which they had known from child-
and a lower, and which exhorted men to turn from the hood, and did so as a resuIt of deli berate choice. As
one to the other. So much for the word. We shall find we shall see, there were spiritual needs to account for
an approximation to the idea in the story of Lucius this. Men wished to escape from mortality and from
(Ch. IX). There it is due to particular circumstances; the domination of an unbending fate and to win
according to, the story he had by Isis been delivered personal knowledge of the secrets of the universe and
from the shape of an ass, into which he had passed a dignified status in it. They did not indeed desire to
as a resuIt of incautious experiments in magie. Her escape from sin, for it was in general assumed that
cuIt was not new to hirn; he had prayed to her for the moral evil, in so far as you were conscious of i t, was
mercy which was thus vouchsafed, but after it his something which of your own initiative you put from
special attachment to her worship assumed a character yourself before approaching the holy and not some-
of deep emotion prompted by gratitude and became thing from which YOll were delivered by approaching
a surrender of self with an accompanying element of the holy. Nor were they concerned to escape from
moral reformation. The writer of the tale, Apuleius, demons, who did not outside the Semitic area trouble
probably feit some such devotion and like others to the imagination of the ancient world.
16 The Idea oJConversion
There was thus a psychological basis for adhesion, 11
and there were those who sought to promote and secure
such adhesion. This is quite intelligible, and is not THE IDEA OF CONVERSION AND GREEK
entirely due to the material interest which some had RELIGION BEFORE ALEXANDER THE
in seeing to it that the cult of a particular deity should GREAT
have adherents as numerous and as generous as possible
HE subject of this book obliges us to take a broad
and in making clear to others the greatness of Diana
of the Ephesians. You have sufficient reason for dis-
T view of certain aspects of religious his tory from the
time of Alexander the Great to the time of Augustine.
seminating a special form ofpiety ifyou are convinced
Before we do so it is necessary that we should give some
that it affords a means of contact with the supernatural
heed to eatlier Greek religious developmen t. We must
which each and every man needs or can with profit use
do this for two reasons. First, before the conquests of
in addition to those me ans which he has inherited and
Alexander there crystallized in Greece attitudes to-
uses. While aJew or Christian held that there was only
wards traditional and foreign worships which remained
one true God and that most people around hirn were
very important throughout. Secondly, in the same
given up to idolatry and sin, a devotee ofIsis could and
period certain specific concepts took shape which
did think that his cult was the original and best
exercised a wide influence in the later centuries. It
expression of a devotion voiced by all men in the~r has been said that wi th the time of Alexander the
several ways. On a minimal view he would regard It
formative period of Greek religious thought is at an
as a good form of piety and worth recommenda tion,
end. This is not just; and yet it is true that the earlier
like the cult of an unrecognized or litde recognized
time contains within itself the germs of the subsequent
saint in the Catholic Church. Each had a reason for
development, both in civic religion and in voluntary
urging others to do as he did. The J ew an? . the groupings for worship according to individual choice.
Christian offered religions as we understand rehgIon;
The cults of Greek cities in the fifth and fourth
the others offered cults; but their contemporaries did
centuries B.C. neither were nor could be missionary.
not expect anything more than cults from them and
Following tradition, a city honoured certain deities to
looked to philosophy for guidance in conduct and for
whom it looked for the satisfaction of its needs. That
a scheme of the universe. The J ew and the Christian
was its own affaire A friendly city might be empowered,
had a stronger motive but a less easy access to the eyes
a colony or a subject city might be compelled, to take
and ears of their contemporaries. Each was speaking
some part in this worship, but it was primarily a
to men more preoccupied than most of us are with their
domestic matter. As a city's interests expanded the
inner lives and more inclined to believe in the activity
range of i ts cul ts migh t also be enlarged; to take an
of supernatural personalities. How they taug~t and
example, Athens, which had Thracian connexions~
with what success we must now seek to determIne.
18 The Idea of Conversion and Creek Religion before Alexander the Creat 19
found a place for the worship of Bendis, a goddess having customs), so you spoke of chresthai theois (having
whom Athenians had met and worshipped in Thrace. gods). The gods ofa people were one ofits attributes.
In time Bendis was, so to speak, naturalized and gave It was commonly held that the gods of different nations
a convenient pretext for an additional torch race. were identifiable, that the Egyptians worshipped
There was in this nothing more revolutionary than Athena and Zeus and Dionysus under other names.
there was in the introduction ofthe potato and tobacco And yet that was a matter of speculation, however
into England from America. Special circumstances widespread, bu t on the face of i t people used different
might inspire the addition of a new cult. Thus it was selections from the list and different names and there
believed that Pan had appeared to Philippides when was no reason why we Greeks should desire a Lydian
in the menace of 490 B.C. he was sent from Athens to to sacrifice to Zeus by that name rather than to his own
Sparta and told hirn to ask why the Athenians paid no god, unless he happened to be staying in our city. The
heed to hirn though he had helped them often and Lydian might do it if he wished: Croesus consulted
would do so thereafter, and his worship was accord;- -Delphi, and Darius in his letter to Gadates speaks of
ingly introduced. Again, later in the fifth century B.C. Apollo as the god who has proelaimed complete truth
the Athenians felt the need of a public cult of a special to the Persians: that means that his reputation has
god of healing to perform functions earlier done by made its way, just as thc oraele of Ammon in Libya
various deities, and introduced the cult of Aselepius acquired a reputation in Greece and was consulted
from Epidaurus. like Delphi or Dodona.
What has been said of local cults in Greece is While some foreign habits in religion, as for instance
equally true of national cults. Just as an Athenian animal worship, appeared strange to the Greeks, there
qua Athenian turned to Athena on the Acropolis, so was among them no prejudice against alien worship,
an Ionian qua Ionian turned to Apollo on Delos and and a Greek in astrange country ordinarily paid
a Greek qua Greek to Zeus at Olympia or Apollo at homage to its gods. When the Athenians sent settlers
Delphi. There was in all this a natural organic piety to the Thracian city of Brea, shortly before 441 B.C.,
and no element of conversion or tenseness of religious they ordered them to leave the consecrated precincts
emotion except in war or famine or plague and again as they were and not to consecrate others. This indeed
in the mystery dramas. Piety lay in a calm perform- was probably not common practice in Greek colonies,
ance of tradition al rites and in a faithful observance and was partly due, to the elose connexions ofThracian
of traditional standards. with Greek myth and religion. Thus the Greek
Further, the object of piety for a Greek was some- settlers at N aucratis in Egypt had their own precincts,
thing regarded as apossession of the Greek race, bu t the greatest being called the Hellenio~, and made
not as a -unique phenomenon. Just as in describing dedications 'To the gods of the Greeks'. In Egypt, and
astrange people you spoke of chresthai nomois (using or during the national crisis of the Persian war, the gods
20 The Idea of Conversion and Creek Religion bifore Alexander the Creat 21
of the Greeks were strongly feIt to be an aspect of their often through associations for worship, a form of
nationality. But there was no permanent feeling of organization which already existed for certain old
superiority. The Greek point of view comes out very traditional rites. Aristophanes refers to lamentation
weIl in a legend inscribed in the temple of Athena at in 415 B.C. for Adonis (Lysistrata, 389 ff.). But serious
Lindos on Rhodes. When the Persian Datis was development along this line does not come till later.
besieging Lindos in 4go the inhabitants came near the AIthough private domestic cultus was free, the city-
end of their supplies of water. Athena appeared in state did not tolerate serious interference with its
a dream to one of the magistrates and bade hirn to be religious homogeneity, as we see from the proseeution
of good cheer, for she wouldask Zeus for water. The of Soerates for not believing in the eity's gods and for
inhabitants asked for an armistice of five days, the introducing new daemonia.
period which their resources would last. Datis laughed This picture of piety without eonfliet and without
and gave it, and the next day abundant rain fell on missionary zeal represents an equilibrium reaehed at
the acropolis, and the Lindians had enough while the the end of a proeess. In the establishment of the known
Persians canle to be in need. Datis in admiration ( order after the eollapse ofMinoan-Myeenaean eiviliza-
dedicated all his personal ornaments to Athena. In tion, the Dorian invasion, and the Ionianemigration
a Christian legend he would have permanently trans- there was not a litde eonfliet. To study that would
ferred his religious allegiance. take us too far from our' presen t inq uiry: we may,
The commercial importance of Athens brought with . however, eonsider eertain instanees in whieh the
it a large influx of resident aliens. They were allowed prestige of a divinity was in historieal times deliberately
to have their own associations to worship their deities: promoted.
we possess the record of apermission granted in Apollo was clearly an ineomer: at Delphi and else-
333-332 B.C. to the merchants from Citium in Cyprus where his eult has imposed itself on earlier worships.
resident in Athens to acquire land to build atempie The missionary zeal whieh aeeompanied this proeess
of Aphrodite (that is, their Semitic Aphrodite, often appears in the faet that in many parts of Greeee Apollo
called Ourania), just as the Egyptians have built the temple is not given loeal epithets but is ealled Pythian or Delian
of Isis. Contacts with such groups offoreigners, like from the foeal eentres ofhis euIt, in the existenee ofhis
foreign travel, might introduce individual Athenians exegetai or loeal representatives at Athens, and in the
to foreign cults. In one of these two ways certain legends ofhis saints, Abaris, a Hyperborean, or eitizen
privately celebrated rites of initiation and purification of the god's own Never-Never-Land, who earried the
in the name of Zeus Sabazios and of Cotytto came to god's arrow about in different lands, and the equally
Athens from Thrace; those of the latter attracted mysterious Aristeas.
attention enough to be the subject of mockery in This enthusiasm produeed a powerful institution
comedy. Again, such rites were pursued in private, whieh took care to emphasize its merits by saered
22 The Idea ofConversion and Creek Religion hefore Alexander the Creat 23
legend, as for instance the story of the deliverance of the Homeric Hymn to Demeter, which does not mention
Croesus, the pious man saved at the last moment by Athens and is almost certainly earlier than the end of
the god, and the miracles whereby Apollo defended his the seventh century B.C., speaks to humanity (480 ff.):
shrine against the Persians, the bad end of Glaucus 'Happy is that mortal who has seen these things; bu t
who tempted the god, and again an almost creedlike he who lacks the holy rites and has no share in them
statement of the god's oracular power: 'I know the never enjoys a like happiness when dead and in the
number of the sand and the measures of the sea: 1 murky gloo~.'
understand a du mb man and 1 hear one that speaketh The collection of thc Homeric hymns to which, this
not.' Delphi could excite a warm personal devotion belongs comes in the main from the seventh century
such as we see in Pindar, who never tires of praising B.C. and is of particular significance as showing the
Apollo, and it recognized such devotion: the poet rise of other cults at that time. Of course any hymn
enjoyed certain honours after his death. All this is must glorify the deity to whom it is addressed, but it is
the forerunner of the later religious propaganda by noteworthy that the recipients of elaborate hymns are
literature. But the current of feeling which produced Apollo, a new-comer, Dionysus, another new-comer of
the institution was canalized: and the dubiously whom a miracle is here recorded, Demeter, whose
patriotic tone of the oracle in the Persian war, and mysteries are clearly lauded in a spirit of propaganda,
the rise of rationalism, weakened even the resultant and Hermes, who receives this special emphasis
product, though a crisis like the Celtic invasion in the perhaps because his emergence as a dignified personal
third century B.C. could evoke a fresh awakening of god from a heap of stones was relatively late. Further
religious emotion. it should be remarked that these hymns are nearly
A remarkable illustration of literary propaganda in contemporary with the movement of temple building
support of an immigrant deity is probably afforded by which belongs to the seventh century (earlier there had
the curious hymn to Hecate inserted in the Theogony been in the main private chapels in palaces and places
of Hesiod (411 ff.). She 1S the only daughter of Zeus: for sacrifice in the open), and with the making oflarge
any man whom she favours acquires distinction in cult-images as part of the normal furniture of worship,
the market-place and victory in war. Her cult was again a feature of the seventh century. For these two
probably an importation from south-west Asia Minor, developments various causes can be suggested. The
and the hymn is written in its support. We see such dissemination of the Homeric poems had crystallized
deliberate promotion again in the case of the mysteries anthropomorphic thinking, and Greeks were now
of Demeter at Eleusis. They are in origin agrarian moving freely as traders and mercenaries in the N ear
rites belonging to a small community and administered East and saw the gigantic tempi es and cult-images of
by a small number of families. Such a rite would Egypt, where they had a settlement at Naucratis, and
originally be limited to citizens of the community, hut Babylonia. Perhaps they felt that it would be weIl to
B
24 The Idea oJ Conversion and Creek Religion before Alexander the Creat 25
give their own gods houses and shapes of equal dignity also was canalized by Delphi, itself now the bulwark
(might it not improve their power to aid?). In any of religious conservatism: Dionysus was given three
case there were now greater economic resources than months of the year at Delphi itself, and different cities
in the period immediately preceding and a greater had their regular Maenads.
instinct for self-expression. The Homeric hymns belong All the same, the memory of the original character
to the world of these changes: thus the Hymn to Demeter of the movement did not wholly die. Legend told of
stresses (1. 270) the need for a big temple at Eleusis, the resistance which Lycurgus and Pentheus offered to
and this did not exist till the seventh century. In any the god, and the Bacchae of Euripides gives a unique
event there are clear signs of an upward movement of picture of the spirit of the faithful. The disguised god
enthusiasm and vigour in religion, and this comes so on speaks before Pentheus like a Christian saint before a
after the probable date of Apollo's establishing hirns elf Roman magistrate: like many a saint he is vindicated
at Delphi. by miracle. And Dionysus claims to have made his
Dionysus above all is gaining in this period, and the conquests not only among Greeks but also among
story of his cult as a whole affords the most manifest barbarians; he has established his worship in Lydia,
example of religious conquest. It represents a religious in Phrygia, in Persia, in Bactria, in Arabia, and
invasion from the Thraco-Phrygian stock. The ad- throughout Asia. He wants homage and submission
herents of Dionysus, mainly women, wandered on from every man young and old (206-9). 'The god will
mountain sides. They were called by various names, lead us thi ther and we shall not grow weary' (194).
such as Maenads and Bacchae, indicating their spiritual The tale of his birth as the chorus sings i t is no piece
union with the god. In ecstasy they danced and rent of mythology: it is a credo, a credo of 'the things ever
animals and devoured the Hesh ra w: for them milk and held' (71), sung by the god's willing servants who
honey seemed to gush from the ground, would fain see others be even as they are. This service
and all the mountain side me ans ecstasy and liberation and a curious sense of
Was filled with moving voices and strange stress. holiness which goes hand in hand with fierce hatred
ofthe-man who 'fights against god' (45, 325) and 'kicks
The coming of this into Greek life seems to have against the pricks' (795). This is of that passionate tem-
produced one of those outbreaks of religious frenzy per ofthe Thraco-Phrygian stock which Harnes up later
which at times spread like fever (such for instance was in Montanism. We fee! for the momen t in con tact wi th a
the Flagellant movement). It was new, and perhaps religion which could produce a church when we see in an
at the same time old: I mean that it may have meant inscription at Cumae 'No one may be buried here except
the revival of ideas and even of rites current in Greece one who has become a Bacchant'. Ordinary humanity
in the Minoan-Mycenaean age and possiblyexisting feIt the speIl for the moment; but it had to return
throughout in a subterranean way. This movement To the old solitary nothingness.
26 The Idea of Conversion and Creek Religion hefore Alexander the Creat 27
What had been a liberation for all became a formal misled, offspring of earth, and the like. A eurious reflex
annual performance by a few women, taking its pi ace of this charaeter of Orpheus is seen in the plot as we
in the ordinary cyde of regular ri tes. I t retained indeed know it of the lost Bassarai of Aesehylus. Orpheus
more interest in the private ceremonies conducted by would not honour Dionysus, but regarded the Sun,
cult associations for the god's honour. These induded whom h~ ealled also Apollo, as the greatest of deities.
initiations and in the Hellenistic age and later had He rose at night and would wait on Mount Pangaion
a substantial following. We shall find something like to see the first rays of dawn. As a result Dionysus
the early enthusiasm again in Italy in the second eaused his worshippers to tear hirn limb from limb.
century B.G. (p. 7 I) • Here Orpheus is the lonely prophet.
We have considered certain forces which had in the This literature exercised wide influenee. Obseure
main spent themselves by the fifth century. We must as the ehronologieal evidenee is, we may with fair
pass to Orphism, in which salvation and personal eonfidenee hold that it influeneed Pythagoreanism. Its
religion emerge. By Orphism we mean a theology and ideas exercised a fascination on the mind ofPindar. In
a way of living which claimed to be based on a sacred his seeond Olympian ode and in fragments of his
literature passing under the names of Orpheus and Laments (probably all from one) he gives a pieture
Musaeus, singers of the mythical past. In the fifth of the after life whieh is in the main Orphie, though
century B.G. we he ar ofthe Orphic life (abstinence from like Plato later he has substituted righteous eonduet
eating animal flesh and wearing woollen clothes, and for initiation as a qualifieation for happiness, and
contact with birth and death, respect for the holy though again a comparison with his other utteranees
writings, contempt for the body as the soul's tomb, on the topic shows that he is employing pietorial
and a general preoccupation with the expectation of languagc whieh must not be taken literally as a state-
a future life in which the soul will enjoy happiness ment of eonvietion. Euripides, though not a believer
thanks to discipline and initiation on earth). The early in these things, shows time after time that he felt their
sacred literature appears to have taken shape in the attraction, and Plato reveals no litde knowledge of
sixth century and largely at Athens. Its emergence is Orphie literature and something like tha t mixture of
the product of social unrest and of a religious anxiety fascination and abhorrence whieh Catholieism inspires
which showed itself in adesire for purifications: of this in some to-day. More important for our purpose is
we have arecord in the puzzling but not entirely that Aristophanes in the Birds parodies so me of the
legendary story of Epimenides, the Cretan who was ideas and the style of Orphie eosmogony (whieh
said to have been ealled in by the Athenians to give ~mplies that a reasonable proportion of his audienee
adviee in time of plague. I t was aperiod of siek souls. would see the point of the parody), and Alexis, a
The tone of the literature is prophetie in the Jewish fourth-eentury writer of eomedy, says in deseribing the
sense of the word: it addresses humanity as foolish, eontents of a bookshop, 'There is Orpheus, I-Iesiod,
28 The Idea of Conversioll and Creek Religion beJore Alexander the Creat
Epicharmus, and writings of all sorts'. At the same purification of the soul by ritual rather than a reconsti-
time it must be observed that Plato in the Apology tution of it by sacrament. This professional ministrant
makes Socrates put before the jury two views of what is known to us also from Plato's description of the way
may be cxpected after death, either dreamless sleep in which people with books of Orpheus and Musaeus
or converse with the wisemen who have gone before. swarm at the doors ofrich men and undertake by speIl
There is no hint of reward or punishment, and in the and rite to put away their sins and their ancestors' sins,
funeral oration of Perides there is no word of any making much of a heaven of perpetual drunkenness
hereafter. and a hell of perpetual mud (Republic, p. 364): a
This literature could lead to a rejection of one's old papyrus fragment of one of their books has been found
life and the entering on a new life, which is conversion. at Gurob. 1t is dear that many might have recourse
Did it genera te a sect? The question requires a defini- to such ministrations on occasion without being
tion. Wh~n we speak of a sect the idea which arises is formally members of a special sect. The ordinary
that of a stable community. This idea is based first on Greek was familiar with the idea that under certain
the established schools of philosophers beginning with circumstances a purification was necessary: the super-
Pythagoras, who founded a sodality with a real feeling stitious man was the man in whom this became an
of solidarity, and then on the organization of cult- obsession. Just so to-day the ordinary man knows of
societies and of the Christian Church. What is certain germ life and is aware that vaccines and inoculations
is that there was this literature with its prescriptions are necessary under certain circumstances, and a hypo-
for life and for rites, that there were the rites, and that chondriac might conceivably frequent quacks for
there were priests to perform them, and both devotees continual inoculations. 1t is noteworthy that Theo-
who lived an Orphic life and others who while not phrastus does not speak of the Superstitious Man as
doing so came to or employed ·an Orphic priest from going to take part in the monthly services of a con-
time to time. fraternity: had it been so he would hardly have failed
Theophrastus, in his character of the Superstitious to enlarge on the point with ridicule such as that
Man, says that he goes once a month with his wife and which Demosthenes heaps on the processions connected
children (if his wife is too busy, he takes the nurse) to with the initiations (probably the initiations in honour
the Orpheotelestai telesthesomenos, which would ordi- of Sabazios) conducted by Aeschines and his mother.
narily be translated, 'to be initiated'. There, however, Is the continued existence of the professional type of
we have to remember the more general use of teletai for initiator possible without some kind of sect? The
an y kind of ri te and in particular. for purifica tion: tha t allswer is probably yes. Such knowledge can be handed
is no doubt the sense here, for while initiation admits from father to son (or mother to son, as the analogy of
of grades it is not normally capable of repetition, and Aeschines reminds us), or passed from one man to
what we know of Orphic ceremonies points to a another (sometimes bought, as magic is from any one
30 The Idea qfConversion and Creek Religion hefore Alexander the Great 3I
other than one's father in the Trobriand Islands), 01' certainly Imperial in date and may be a purely literary
acquired straight from the books and experience. The product ofthe Pythagorean revival, or again (since the
rarity of professional clergy to consult in antiquity terms of membership are Dionysiac, and Dionysiac
left an opening all the time for private quacks, oracle- cult-societies flourished then) it may weIl belong to
mongers (who could, of course, be employed by a city a Dionysiac society which has appropriated Orphic
as weIl as by an individual), purifiers, exorcists, and ideas and phrases: it is notably un-Orphic in its
the like: and it was extremely easy for cults to be thought, which shows no trace of otherworldliness.
handed down in families and for private mysteries to The fixed organization of these as we find them over
arise and to continue. a wide geographical range, their fixity of usage
Nevertheless, there are certain indications pointing (Apuleius can say of a symbol that the initiates of
to the possible existence of Orphic communities. Liber present in court will know what he means;
Porphyry preserves a fragment of the lost Cretans of p. I I4later) are most naturally explained as resting on
Euripides in which the spokesman of the chorus of a sacred literature, and some of that literature could
prophets of Idaean Zeus says: be Orphic. Hieroi logoi, sacred books, are expressly
'I have lived a pure life ever since 1 became an initiate mentioned in a Ptolemaic text about those who initiate
of Idaean Zeus and celebrated the thunders of night- for Dionysus: and a roll perhaps representing one
loving Zagreus and his meal of raw flesh, and held on high appears in the pictures of the Villa I tem at Pompeii.
the torches for the Mountain Mother and, being hallowed, There is so far no unquestionable evidence of an
was called a Bacchos ofthe Curetes: 1 wear raiment ofpure organization or a spirit in Orphism comparable with
white, and shun human birth: no coffin 1 touch: all food that of the Pythagoreans. One Pythagorean could
with life in it 1 have kept from me.' recognize another by certain signs and passwords, like
This is an idealized picture of a supposed antecedent those required for admission to certain mystery wor-
of Orphism: perhaps the reality was something like ships, and any Pythagorean knew the standard 'The
it. The· Gurob scrap includes an invocation of the master' said'. At the same time the ideas of Orphism
Curetes and the password There is one Dionysus. Again, involved an awareness of otherness from the world and
certain gold lamellae (pieces of inscribed foil) found might here or there at any time generate a sect. But
in graves of the fourth and third centuries B.C. at it never conquered the nation or any large part of it.
Petelia in south Italy give quotations from an Orphic I t never had the success of Buddhism. The Greek
poem telling the dead man what to say and do and the temper was not the righ t soil for such a seed to grow
formulas recur in texts of the second century A.D. to its own maturity. Instead it absorbed certain things,
They remind us of the burial-place for Bacchic the idea ofthe soul as a unity, the same in life and after
initiates. Further, we have a book of Orphic hymns life, fundamentally different from the body, and
which refers to the officers of a sodality. It is almost perhaps immortal, the hope of a hereafter (conditioned
32 The Idea of Conversion and Creek Religion
now by individual merit rather than by ceremony),
111
and for the most part it discarded the theology as an
alien thing for which it had no use. GREEKS IN TI-IE EAST AFTER ALEXANDER
To sum up, Greece knew civic and national worship
N the centuries wh ich we have surveyed most Greeks
in which the individual had his part automatically, and
also personal worship of choice. Delphi produced
I were living in Greek surroundings, either in old
Greece or in the colonies which had the normal civic
a seat of authority, Dionysus a religion which became
life and were politically concerned with one another
stereotyped and sterile, Orphism an idea of conversion
and with the motherland, the natives around them
and a sacred literature but no church
affording a field for trade or exploitation. Some
Greeks were abroad as individuals, whether as mer-
cenaries or as traders, and a few of these at Memphis
intermarried with Egyptians and produced a mixed
race, bu t in general a Greek was very eager to come
horne and end his days in familiar and loved surround-
ings. That is why exile, even while spent in another
Greek city, was so heavya penalty, and why those
who had suffered it would go to any lengths of treason
to secure their return. When Odysseus preferred his
return to Ithaca to immortality on Calypso's island he
was true to the spirit of the Ionian Greek, the most
travelled of all the Greeks.
In the fourth cen tury more and more Greeks had to
go abroad to earn a living, and the old order in politics
was visibly bankrupt. Philip set the seal on this
bankruptcy by his victory at Chaeronea in 338, which
marks the end of a chapter.
Alexander's conquest of the Persian Empire opens
another. The new order required thousands ofGreeks
as soldiers or officials. Many of them married women
ofthe land and settled. Their descendants would have
more and more native blood in each generation, and
might in time become wholly un-Greek in physical
34 Creeks in the East after Alexander Creeks in the East after Alexander 35
type and law and eustom, as for instanee at Doura- thought. The Persian Empire had in religious matters
Europos, a military eolony on the Euphrates known to no poliey save toleration. Artaxerxes 11 set up images
c

us from the exeavations of)Cumont and Rostovtzeff. of Anahita in Babyion, Susa, Eebatana and established
We must not, however, generalize from this: at Susa the eult in Persia, Baetria, Damaseus, and Sardis, but
the Greeks remained Greeks, although the ehief deity there is no word of eompulsion or propaganda, and
was the native goddess N anaia, who was also Artemis. on the other side there is the letter of Darius reproving
Greek eulture eommonly remained dominant beeausc his satrap Gagates for raising tribute from the holy
ofits social status. Its language, its art, to some extent gardeners of Apollo and the sympathetie attitude of
even its divine names had prestige beeause they were Darius towards the rebuilding of the temple at Jeru-
those of the governing classes. salem, the favour later shown to Ezra, and the homage
Greek and Oriental ways and beliefs were thus paid by Cyrus to Marduk and by Cambyses to Neith
brought into intimate eontaet. Some Greeks beeame at Sais.
eompletely absorbed in native milieux, some natives in If the Persian Empire thus possessed no deliberate
Gree~. On both si des eult was apart of eulture. poliey in religious matters, the same is true of the
Accotdingly the normal Greek attitude was one of sueeessors of Alexander exeept in so far as eultural
intelligent interest and aeeeptanee while on the spot, poliey earried with it religious poliey. Some attempt
th~ native was one of indifferenee, at most of aeeept- to find a religious point of union is perhaps to be seen
anee ofname-equivalents and language. On both sides in the first phase of the eult of Sarapis, to whieh we
religion was essentially statie. Greek religion was a shall eome, and in the numerous eults of 'all the gods'
possession of the raee but not, like Judaism, a unique in new eities. The Seleueid dynasty whieh ruled Syria
possession and, unlike J udaism, it was not fostered and the hinterland and mueh of Asia Minor sought
and guarded by a professional elass. Other Eastern to base their power larg~ly on the Greek eity-state.
religions had sueh classes but not the same spirit nor Consequently they built large temples to Greek gods
the same diffusion of interest through the nation. In and at one point attempted foreibly to hasten the
Egypt, Babyion, and Persia, in the priestly prineipali- proeess ofhellenization which had gone far in Judaea,
ties ofSyria and Anatolia, the individual was a member at that time from a eultural standpoint an alien
of a social unit whose relations with the supernatural eorridor in their dominions. They had, however, no
were a eolleetive interest in the hands of the king or of bigoted poliey, as we see from their liberality to priests
hereditary speeialists. His wants were thus satisfied. and temples in Mesopotamia. Their poliey was natural
Why should those of others be? The prophetie zeal of and (apart from Judaea) easy, for Syria and Asia had
Zarathustra, the revolutionary enthusiasm of Akhna- long been open to Greek influenees and in neither was
ton, thesystematization of Harnrnurabi, are just inci- there any sort of national unity or religious organiza-
dents, momentary ripples on the pI acid sea of Eastern tion. In both the unit was loeal and not ethnie, and
36 Creeks in the East after Alexander Creeks in the East after Alexander 37
unification could proceed on a Creek basis. Helleniza- offerings in bronze or terra-cotta (a habit which called
tion in religion thereforemadegreathcadway. The lan- forth the production of new art types), they sought
guage of cult commonly became Creek. At Palmyra eures and orades and made acts of homage, often
later the vernacular was used but the architecture engaging in pilgrimages for the purpose. But there
was Craeco-Roman. New cult-Iegends were made was little real interpenetration. The Greeks (that is to
bringing these worships into relation with Creek myth say the settlers and those of the later generations \vhose
and history. Old religious forms survived-ritual cultural orientation was Greek) accepted Egyptian
prostitution, sacred stones, fish and dove taboos, cults in a matter-of-fact ,vay: the priests made official
castration and other self-mutilations, hereditary sacer- returns in Greek, but their liturgy ,vas conducted in
dotalism and adependent feudalism, hut a Greek Egyptian and as early as the end of the third ccntury
vene er was superimposed. B.C. a nationalistic spirit is apparent in thern.
The Ptolemies in Egypt ruled a narrow strip on In all this development there is no elelnent of con-
each side of the Nile which was essentially a unit in version, none of self-surrender. Usually we have simple
which religion was in the hands of a dosely organized adhesion involving little emotion. There is in this one
hierarchy. The situation had to be accepted and feature of interest for us, that it irnplies a piety of
regulated. The Ptolemies patronized and controlled individual relationship and not of corpora te relation-
the priesthood and in Alexandria and Ptolemais ship, not that of a citizen to his city gods. The only
fostered Greek culture. For a moment, in the establish- phenomenon involving a self-surrender would be the
ment ofthe cult ofSarapis, they appear to have sought occasional Greek who being at Hierapolis in Syria at
to find a meeting-pi ace for the two racial elements: the time of the great festival might take full part in
but this policy was not continued. There was of course it, like the native pilgrims, and brand hirns elf or even
a certain amount of convergent development; the in a sudden enthusiasm castrate hirnself and become
native priests commonly learned Greek and accepted a servant of the goddess like her local eunuch priests;
equations of Egyptian with Greek deities, giving the Catullus (poem LXIII) teIls of a young Greek who cas-
names side by side in their calendars of festivals (there trated hirnself in honour of Cybele and Attis. For the
is one at Sais of about 300 B.C.) and in Greek forms subsequent expansion of cults from the Near East
of temple oaths. The Greeks in their turn built in Greece and in the West no \vorships are of great
few substantial temples for their own deities outside irnportance except those which were substantially
Alexandria, Ptolemais, and N aucratis. In these and translated into Greek and remade with Greek elements
in private cult associations they worshipped Greek into cults which retained an Oriental flavour but were
gods but commonly they paid their devotions to the divorced frorn their original cul tural and religious
native gods. That is to say, they offered sacrifice or setting.
caused it to be offered for them, they made votive The chief of these is the cult of Sarapis, who carried
38 Creeks in the East after Alexander Creeks in the East after Alexander 39
with hirn as associates Isis and (in a minor capacity J annually: in Egypt it had been performed in certain
Horus and Anubis. The name Sarapis indicates that temples or chapels daily in a ceremony of twenty-four
the god is a hellenized form of Osorapis of Memphis, hours, each of which commemorates the story. This
the dead Apis calf believed to have become an Osiris drama was performed before all who cared to be
after death and after the due funeral ritual (just as any presellt and not before those being initiated on a special
man might). He was worshipped earlier at Memphis, occasion. J uvenal speaks of 'the cry of the people when
perhaps in an anthropomorphic type, and known to Osiris is found') and we know a number of parallel
Greeks there before the Ptolemaic regime. Ptolemy I rites so performed before the whole body of the faith-
with the Egyptian priest Manetho and the Eleusinian ful, who have assisted at them before and will do so
exegete Timotheus as advisers made from this the cult again. With reference to this celebration it should be
of Sarapis in Greek form at Alexandria, originally noted that only one of the Egyptian dramatic festivals,
perhaps as a meeting-place for Greeks and Egyptians, that in Athyr, passed into general use outside Egypt.
perhaps as a suitable concomitant of the new dynasty Sarapis has a separate festival on 25 April at Rome, in
(we must recall not only Akhnaton but also the April at Naxos. Our one full source for the newer
temples which each Pharaoh built to honour the gods mysteries is Apuleius, who describes in a veiled manner
and to commemorate hirnself). A liturgical book in other ceremonies of initiation in which an individual
hieroglyphics is tnentioned by Apuleius, Metamorphoses believer, after preparation and purification, passed
xi. 22, as used in the mysteries at Corinth and the ritual through the elements, saw the underworld, was reborn,
awakening of the god each morning was done in was dressed as, the Sun and, being presented to the
Egyptian, but paeans were composed for hirn in Greek body ofthe faithful (not present du ring what preceded) ,
by Demetrius of Phaleron and remained in use long was adored by them as for the moment divine (Ch.
afterwards. The new god was given the associates of IX). That is novel. There is in old Egypt no initiation
Osiris (Isis, Anubis, and Harpocrates), and the group of individual laymen: those 'admitted to the adyton'
attained widespread worship.Sarapis soon attracted are apparently, with rare exceptions, priests, and it
attention: Menander, who died in 293/2-291/0 B.G., must not be forgotten that happiness in the hereafter
says 'Sarapi~ is a holy god'. depended on the ritual performed after death and
Furthermore Isis acquired new mysteries. These are not on the fact that the dead man had taken part in
to be distinguished from the old drama of mourning the ritual dramas in his life. The actual rites used
for the dismem bermen t and disa ppearance of Osiris are perhaps related to those performed on' the king
and of joy for his finding by Isis and her putting succeeding to the throne of Egypt: they are certainly
together ofhis scattered limbs, ofhis solemn obsequies, related to those thought to be performed for the
trial and acquittal and installation as king in the benefit of a dead man. All three mean in a sense 'this
underworld. This was in the new temples done mortal must put on immortality'.
Creeks in the East after Alexander Creeks in the East after Alexander
We do not know when or where these mysteries Egyptian religious tradition and anxious to know its
arose: but it is likely that they arose at Alexandria, and meaning and use its sanctities. So a new cult was
it is not improbable that they did so carly in the needed. The process is in a sense comparable with
HeHenistic period. This Graeco-Egyptian blcnded cult, the development of Christianity. There, too, events
and the cult of Agathodaimon (the Egyptian Kneph, conspired to detach an e:t:fective element of Eastern
\vorshipped as the patron deity of Alexandria, who religion from its periphery: after its detachment it
unlike Sarapis was not destined to become impor- could gro"v in the outer world.
tant in the world at large) are the only known cases of Sarapis is a dassic instance of a process which we
religious fusion in Egypt. They represent deliberate cannot yet elsewhere foHow in the same detail. Yet
action by some one: the general cultural condi tions it is dear that Adonis, who had already shown him-
here did not make for the spontaneous generation self at Athens, became fully hellenized. In another
of such products. The difficulty which we have in case a process which had begun before the Hellenistic
relating the new mysteries to the Egyptian background period was completed in it. The Creek Mother Cybele
suggests that they were not a natural unconscious was known to the Greeks from early times; her ritual
growth; this is the first instance of such a development might excite hostility, as perhaps at Athens, but it
and lacked precedent. Further, we have a document could be hellenized, as earlyat Ephesus. Similarfigures
giving the praises of Isis and Osiris in Greek which appear aH over Asia Minor (for example, Ma in
appears in inscriptions of los and Cyme, in poetic Cappadocia) and to a Greek were all recognizable.
paraphrases on Andros and at Cyrene, and in a sum- Her consort, Attis, became familiar early in the
mary in Diodorus Siculus i. 27. It represents an Hellenistic period, and his legend was discussed by
accommodation of the Egyptian style to Greek ideas; Timotheus (possibly the Eleusinian whom we have
in it Isis speaks of herself as having written down the met in Egypt): Attis also acquired mysteries, and
sacred story or rite which the initiates hold in reverent a formula which survives from them indicates the
dread. I suspect that in all this we have to see the presence in them of Eleusinian influence. The chief
influence of Ptolemy, Timotheus, and Manetho, and seat of the cult was Pessinus. When the cult of Cybele
it must not be forgotten that the last wrote a his tory and Attis moved westwards Greek was its liturgical
of Egypt for Greeks. There was a particular religious language: Greek acquired a canonicity which it
need to meet. The Greeks were familiar with initia- retained in the Roman world, in which the cult was
tory ceremonies which guaranteed to the participant to play so great apart to the end of ancient paganism.
happiness hereafter: their own ceremonies-as those We may now consider another composite product,
which Timotheus knew so weH at Eleusis-were, apart Mithraism, for though in its familiar form it does
from private initiations, bound to particular spots not appear before Roman times its origins dearly go
in the motherland. The Greeks were impressed by back to this period. The Persian rule had brought
42 Creeks in the East after Alexander Creeks in the East after Alexander 43
groups ofMagi into those towns at least in Asia Minor custom; we know Lydians called Persians at Hypaepa and
where satraps or garrisons were placed, for the presence Hierocaesarea: they did saerifice, wearing tiaras and
of a Magian was necessary at every sacrifiee. In uttering Persian prayers, it being thought that the
Cappadocia, Commagene, and Pontus (just as farther wood for the offering caught fire when their speIls wcrc
East in Armenia, to whieh the Greeks did not penetrate spoken over i t.
extensively in the Hellenistic age) there must have The phrase italieized implies that these men \verc
remained a not inconsiderable Persian element, for an not of Persian blood but men adopted into the nation,
inseription in Cappadocia speaks of the wedding of just as no doubt in the Mithraie mysteries initiates were
Bel (the local god) to 'his sister, the Mazdyasnie reli- when they reached the grade of Persa: again at Aria-
gion', personified, and this may point to an actual festi- ramneia in Cappadocia an inscription of the first
val commemorating the official acceptanee of Iranian century B.a. or A.D. reeords that one Sagarios son of
worship and we know of the presenee of Magi in this Magaphcrnes 'beeame a Magos for Mithras'. Dion of
region; in Commagene there is on the N emrud Dagh . Prusa (xxxvi. 39 ff.) quotes a 'song of the Magi': it
the funerary monument which its king Antiochus I is a legend of the repeated destruetion of the uni-
erected for himself 'in accordance with the aneient verse, containing Stoic elements and probably due to
teaching of Persians and Greeks': the gods honoured a Magian (born or adopted) who seized on elements
have both their Persian and their Greek titles. In capable of being combined with his own beliefs, just
Pontus there is thc grcat temple of Anaitis, Omanos, as Philo seized on Logos speculation. This Magianism
and Anadates at Zela, and the royal dynasty bears the is detached from its nationaland eultural setting: its
name Mithridates from the gode In these kingdoms representatives ean do their sacrifice and perhaps
Persian religion is, so to speak, the Establishment-or practise a little of what we call magie for private
rather not Persian religion in its entirety as it existed persons (the interpretation of dreams, necromancy,
in ancient Persia, but the religion ofthe priestly caste and spells to seeure the affeetion of others or to do them
\vith Greek and other accretions.There were other harm). They may remain, so to speak, simple practi-
Magi scattered over Asia Minor and in Egypt. They tioners of the oceult with a reputation for special
and their descendants were not repatriated: they would power. Or they may develop a message. We have
live on and have children. We learn under the Empire references to Magian asceticism and in particular to
of the eult of the Persian Anaitis at Hierocaesarea and their abstinence from meat, which is clearly at varianee
elsewhere in the land of Lydia, as again of the great" with Zoroastrianism, which regarded any mortifieation
temples at Zela in Pontus and at Akilisene in Armenia, ofthe body as evil and worthy ofpunishment. We are
both distinguished by extensive temple prostitution, naturally inclined to discount these as due to the Greek
which suggests a eonsiderable Babylonian or other tendency to predicate such practices of the holy men
alien element in the eult or fusion with local deity arid of any nation sufficiently remate, or to the impression
44 Creeks in the East after Alexander Creeks zn the East after Alexander 45
may conclude this chapter with arecord ofthe attempt
made by the obvious otherness of Magianism, bu t they
which one Eastern religion possessed of a theology and
may weIl describe genuine development on alien soil.
a will to conversion made to influence the Greek world.
Development there certainly was, for under the
The Indian king Asoka says in the thirteenth of his
Empire we find mysteries of Mithras, in which he is
rock edicts:
detached from his Persian setting and made the central
figure of a cult centring in initiations with a priesthood 'And this is the chiefest conquest in the opinion of His
Sacred Majesty, the conquest by the Law of Piety, and
ofthe type, common in cult-societies, ofmen who have
this again has been won by His Sacred Majesty both in his
passed through the various grades. This product has
own dominions, in all the neighbouring realms as far as
something from Babyion (the concept of the heavenly 600 leagues where the Greek (Yona) King named Antio-
zones through which the soul passes), something chus dweIls, and north of that Antiochus to where dweIl
from Greece (as for instance its art-type, and the the four kings severally named Ptolemy, Antigonus, Magas,
framework ofthe cult-society), and has almost certainly and Alexander; and in the south the realms of the Cholas
come through Asia Minor, where Greek and Persian and Pandyas, with Ceylon likewise.'
ideas could fuse. It was notably capable of variation
The kings have been identified as Antiochus 11 or
and of assimilating rites (as sometimes the taurobolium) ,
possibly I ofSyria, Ptolemy 11, Antigonus ofMacedon,
contacts with other deities (as Hecate, and, in the
Magas of Cyrene, and Alexander of Epirus. Magas
Rhineland, occasionally local deities) and legends. It
gives the terminus ante quem 258. Asoka goes on to say:
spread quietly: according to Plutarch,. Pomp. 24, its
first known appearance was as practised by the Cilician 'and here too, in the King's dominions, among the Yonas
pirates in Lycia. What it owes to its Persian origin is and Kambojas, among the Nabhapamtis of Nabhaka,
among the Bhojas and Pitinakas, among the Ändhras and
not quite clear: the communion certainly, the wash-
Pulindas (all in the North or Northwest of India), every-
ings, the concept of cosmic opposites, the figures of where men follow His Sacred Majesty's instruction in the
Mithras and Ahuramazda and occasionally Ahriman, Law of Piety. Even where envoys of His Sacred Majesty
and Aion, perhaps the animal masquerading. Here, as do not penetrate, there, too, men hearing His Sacred
with Sarapis and Isis, we have to reckon with some- Majesty's ordinances based on the Law of Piety and his
thing picked out of a foreign ensemble and adapted instruction in that Law ... , practise and will practise the
for wider circles. Law. And again the conquest thereby won everywhere is
These products of genuine fusion had a great and everywhere a conquest full of delight. Delight is found in
important history which will concern us later. Here the coriquests made by the Law.'
I would emphasize again their Greek character. The Again, in the second rock edict we read:
older ideas were not dead: there were waves of conser-
'Everywhere within the dominions of His Sacred
vation, as for instance the emotion which grew up after
and Gracious Majesty the King, as weIl as among his
Apollo's supposed defeat of the invading Gauls. We

1
Greeks in the East after Alexander Greeks in the East after Alexander 47
neighbours, such as the Cholas, Pandyas, the Satiyaputra, to Indian deities in the Graeco-Roman world and
the Keralaputra, as far as Ceylon, Antiochus the Greek no terra-cottas reproducing their forms, easily as they
(Yona) King or the kings bordering on the said Antiochus, might have appealed to the Hellenistic taste for the
everywhere has His Sacred and Gracious Majesty made exotic. Brahman asceticism was known, and in fact
curative arrangements of two kinds, curative arrangements became a literary commonplace, but Indian religious
for men and curative arrangements for beasts. Medicinal
thought was not, in spite of the philosophie tendency
herbs, also, wholesome for men and wholesome for beasts,
to find concealed wisdom in all or any non-Greek
wherever they were lacking, everywhere have been both
imported and planted. Roots, too, and fruits, wherever
traditions. Similarlties have been no ted between the
they were lacking have been both imported and planted.' mysticism of Plotinus and Buddhism, and influence is
possible, but must at the moment remain very question-
What was the effect of this remarkable propaganda? able. The Greek had like other men little ability to
We ,do not know exactly what the religion of Asoka get und er the skin of any alien people and he was only
was, though it was clearly influenced by Buddhism. too ready to see in them merely those features which
The adhesion of Y onas, Greeks, within the king's he had come to regard as typical of all races on the
dominions need not be doubted, whether we do or circumference of the world. Cultural contact is shown
do not believe the statement in the Mahavamsa that by Indian borrowings in astrology and art (Asoka's
the missionary Dharmaraksita, sent to the Aparantaka father had asked Antiochus I for the visit of a Greek
country, was a Yavana. There is the Graeco-Buddhist philosoph er, unfortunately in vain), but the only cer-
art of Gandhara to show us the employment of Greek tain debt of Greece to India is in folk-tale, above all
artists in the service ofthis religion, and it is likely that in animal fables, and here Greece received what it did
Greek settlers in the frontier provinces of India would early, certainly by the third century B.C., perhaps bythe
be culturally absorbed, and that Buddhist influences fifth, and it is possible that Persia was the intermediary.
reached the Greek dynasties ruling on the fringe of Buddhism was known in Mesopotamia in the time of
India. Mani, but there is no sign of knowledge of it farther
But did these emissaries re ach the West, and did they West tilllater.
exercise influence? We have no direct evidence. The On the whole, it is likely that Asoka's missionaries
Oxyrhynchus invocation ofIsis (discussed p. 150 later) never reached their goal, or if they reached it effected
equates her with Maia (i.e. Maya) in India and makes nothing . The history of religion is the poorer for the
her mistress of the Ganges. There were consider- loss of what might have been an epoch-making contact
able trade relations with India, and in consequence of ideas.
Indians reached the West: an Indian embassy came
to Augustus, and we have amime, with what purports
to be an Indian dialect, but there are no dedications
The Opposite Gurrent 49
IV groups of deities. A little later, in 128/7 B.C., Achaeus of
Hierapolis in Syria built a small temple for Hadad and
THE OPPOSITE CURRENT
Atargatis on Delos, from ,vhich a civic cult developed.
have considered the contacts of individual At Rome the cult of the Syrian deitics on the Jani-
W Creeks
E
and of Creek dynasties with Eastern re- culum was in the main a cult by Syrian immigrants
ligions in the East. We have now to pass to the results living near at hand.
of the settlement of Orientals and orientalized Creeks A cult may be introduced in this way. It may again
in the older Creek world. There is a radical difference be brought by an individual and sometimes with the
between the acceptance by a Creek living on alien soil conviction of a divine command. Thus in 258/7 B.C.
of the cults w hich he there found and his adhesion to one Zoilus of Aspendus wrote to Apollonius, the
such cults if transplanted to his own soi!. The first need powerful finance minister of Ptolemy 11, saying that
not be .more than .noblesse oblige and conformity: the Sarapis had more than once ordered hirn in a dream
second lnvolves dehberate choice. to sail over to Apollonius and tell hirn that atempie
Merchan ts settling in a foreign port tended to form of Sarapis must be built and a priest established in the
a c?mpact group. We know the 'Romans' (really Creek quarter of a city whose name is lost. Zoilus
Itahans) at Delos, the Tyrian community at Puteoli begged Sarapis to excuse hirn and then fell sick and
the stationes of various nations at Rome and at Ostia' undertook if healed to da as he was bidden. He
and other associations of the same type. Such group~ recovered and then a man came from Cnidus and set
would commonly carry on their hereditary cults: we about building a Sarapeum on the spot in question, but
have no ted how permission to do this was at Athens was forbidden by Sarapis. Zoilus went to Alexandria
given to the Egyptians and to the Cypriots. I t was no and still shrank from speaking to Apollonius; so he had
doubt in this way that Isis was brought to Eretria: a relapse for four months. He now urges Apollonius to
a dedicatory inscription of the third century B.C., or do what is necessary 'that Sarapis may be gracious to
at latest of the beginning of the second, in the Iseum you and may make you much greaterwith the king and
there 'runs thus: 'The Egyptians to Isis.' The bearers more glorious and give you also bodily health. Do not
of the cul t would often be Creeks who had lived in therefore be afraid of the cost, thinking that the matter
Egypt or men of mixed stock: the actual Egyptians will involve you in great expense: you will be able to do
would at least be men who used Creek and thought in it on a very profitable basis, for I will assist in super-
Creek, and like their predecessors at Athens would vising the whole affair.' How much or how little reli-
have to pay their devotion to figures of their Pantheon gious sentiment ihere is in this we cannot say, though
like Isis in an individualistic way. They could not we can hardly doubt that Zoilus hoped to bring hirnself
transfer the system, with its great temples devoted to to the notice of the. authorities and perhaps to secure
profit out ofhis helpfulness in the building operations.
The Opposite Gurrent
50 The Opposite Gurrult individual is preserved by an inscription of the last
Two points deserve particular attention. First, quarter of the third century B.C. on a colurnn in the
the story which Zoilus teIls is notably like the legend first Sarapeum of Delos:
of the bringing of the image of Sarapis from Sinope
'The priest Apollonios made this record on the god's
to Alexandria. According to i t, Ptolemy 1 had a
order. Our grandfather ApolIonios, an Egyptian of the
vision of a divine figure commanding that his image priestly dass, brought his god with hirn when he came from
be brought to Alexandria: then, says Tacitus, Ptolemy Egypt and continued to serve hirn in accordance with
took advice but did nothing till the vision reappeared tradition. He is believed to have lived ninety-seven years.
and threatened hirn and his kingdom with destruc- My father Demetrius succeeded hirn and continued in the
tion unless he obeyed. Then Scydrothemis the ruler service of the gods, and for his piety was honoured by the
of Sinope refused to give up the image, in spite of god with a representation in bronze which is dedicated
tempting offers, and he in his turn was visited by a in the god's shrine. Be lived sixty-one years. When I
threatening dream: as he still delayed, various disasters inherited the sacred things and devoted mys elf busily to
and sicknesses befell hirn. Finally, thanks to another the observances of piety, the god gave me an orade in my
miracle, the statue was brought away. This is no doubt sleep. He said that he must have a Sarapeum of his own
the official story. Of course dream commands are dedicated to hirn and that he must not be in hired quarters
as before, and that he would hirns elf find a place where he
common in this and in other cults (for instance, the
should be set and would show us the place. And so it was.
hero Naulochus and the Thesmophoroi appeared thrice
Now this place was full of dung, and it was advertised as
to a man of Priene c. 350 B.C., enjoining the worship for sale on a notice . in the passage through the market-
ofthe hero and indicating the spot) and divine chastise- place. As the god willed it, the purchase was completed
me nt for delay is a familiar motif: but the coincidence and the temple was built quickly, in six months. But
here suggests that Zoilus is playing off on Apollonius certain men rose up against us and the god and laid a
a variant of the canonicallegend. public action against the temple and me, for the infliction
Secondly, this competition with the Cnidian is in- of punishment or fine. And the god made me a promise in
structive. We shall consider later the selectivity which my sleep: We shall win. Now that the trial is over and we
Isis shows (only those to whom she indicates her have won in a manner worthy of the god, we render due
will may be initiated, or may go into the holy of thanks and praise the gods. Here is the poem of Maiistas
on this theme.' .~
holies of her temple at Tithorea): the story of David
and Solomon affords an analogy for the inacceptibility Then follows his hymn in sixty-five hexameter lines.
of a particular man as temple-builder. What is most It speaks of the countless miracles done by Sarapis
significant is that the new cult had in two generations and Isis, the constant protectors of the good, and
acquired such momentum that in this port there were passes to the story ou tlined in the prose preamble.
two riyal temple . . builders. This ApolIonios' sang of thy miracles every day and
Another story of the introduction of thc cult by an
52 The Opposite Gurrent The Opposite Gurrent 53
continually prayed thee to tell hirn clearly by night in The way in which the opposition is described
his sIeep where he should build thy temple, that thou reminds us vividly of the way in which opposition to
mightest abide for ever established in thy shrine and St. Paul's preaching is described in Acts. I ts motive
/
not stay on alien soil'. The story proceeds as before may weIl have been conservodsm : its legal strength
with emphasis on the ease with which the structure probably rested on the fact that Apollonios had not
rose, the earnest prayers of the priest to Sarapis to obtained from the popular assembly the authorization
ward off the fates of death, and the god's reply: necessary for buying land for a foreign worship. Inci-
dentally it should be remarked that the cult is said to
'''Cast carefrom thymind. No human vote shalldestroy
thee, for this action affects me myself and no man shall
have been introduced and carried on in accordance
say tha t i t prevailed against me: so be no longer downcast. " with ancestral custom. Yet it is clear that the worship
And when the time for the trial came, the whole city introduced was not the original Memphite cult of
hastened to the temples, yes, and all the multitudes of Osorapis but the hellenized cult of Sarapis and Isis:
strangers from many lands to hear divine justice. Then even at this early time it took the credit of possessing
did thou and thy spouse perform that dread wonder. Thou immemorial antiquity.
didst paralyse the wicked men who were bringing the Sarapis has vindica ted himself by miracle: to be sure
action, making their tongues speechless within their no one is converted. But the new god has now the
mouths, so that no one praised their ability or the evidence cachet of success, and we find another private Sara-
which they had to give in support of their case. In truth peum (the Sarapeum B) arising with various sodalities
by divine operation they stood like heaven-struck phantoms
attached, therapeutai, melanephoroi (probably people who
(or, idols) or stones. And alt the people in that day marvelled at
wore black du ring the mourning for the dead Osiris),
thy power, and thou didst bring great glory to thy servant
in heaven-established Delos. Hail, blessed one, thou and
and Sarapiastai. Towards 180 B.C. the cult became
thy consort who are the gods of our temple: hail much public: the offerings made in the official Sarapeum and
hymned Sarapis.' Iseum went into the sacred treasury administered by
the hieropoioi, and in 179 B.C. the alms given to Sarapis
Here we have a small cultus in an alien land, brought equalled those given to Apollo and far surpassed those
by an individual who at first conducts worship in hired given to Asclepius, Artemis, and Aphrodite. Further,
quarters. Then the cult grows sufficiently to need an now that the cult is civic we find as with most Greek
independent temple. The hymn does not mention it, l~ut cults (except mystery worships: a qualification to which
there was a society of worshippers, Therapeutai, who con- v/emust return) priests who hold office for one year at
tributed: \ve have not merely inscriptions on the stone a time. Sodalities made offerings in the public temple
benchcs given by particular men but also a dedication, (the so-called Sarapeum C) as weIl as in their Sara-
no doubt connected \\7ith the trial, 'The priest Apollonios peum B: and the descendants of Apollonios still
and those of the therapeutai who contributed, to Victory'. remained lifelong priests of the god in the original
54 The Opposite Current
The Opposite Current 55
s?rine, t.he Sarapeum A, as we know trom an inscrip-
which case there was first a cult-society, then a publie
bon WhlCh teIls us how, after the Athenians became
cult by the side ofwhich the society ~ontinued to exist),
masters of the island in 167/6 B.a., the closing of this
sometimes to the action of the city. This action has
temple was ordered, but Demetrius, the priest at the
time, obtained a favourable decision from the Roman been thought to be inspired by political considera-
tions, in fact by Ptolemaic influence; and it eertainly
Senate. This shrine then retained its character, and
another text re cords the coming of one Horus from ?oes. ~ppear that ~gathocles introduced the worship
Kasion near Pelusium as assistant in the rite. Hut the In SIcIlyon marrYIng Ptolemy I's daughter; but the
~tolemies did nothing about it during their period of
civic cult was thoroughly Greek. Athens sent out a
Influence at Delos, where the private cult emerges
citizen ofposition each year as priest ofSarapis. There
were also a kleidouchos, aga in an Athenian and a man under Antigonid suzerainty. At the same time, while
of dignity, a zakoros or sacristan (who naturally could the Ptolemies did nothing from above, it was natural
hold office for a number of years), kanephoroi, maidens that the eities should take action of their own to win
of quality with processional functions, an oneirokrites favour: this seems a probable explanation at Rhodes
who interpreted dreams, and an aretalogos who cele- Miletus, Halicarnassus, Athens, Ceos. Yet it is likel;
brated the god's wonders. The last two roles could be that the cult was often imported as filling a gap.
combined. They are functions directly related to the At Magnesia on the Maeander we have a law ofthe
b.e~inning of the s.econd eentury B.a. regulating the
cult in Memphis and Alexandria: from the former we
hav~ the sign of a dream interpreter, 'I judge dreams,
CIVIC cult of SarapIs: whether it actually deseribes its
havlng a command from the god: good luck: it is introduction is uncertain in view of the mutilation of
a Cretan who judges these things'. Yet they do not the opening: we have a similar law at Priene of about
200 B.a .. This is of special interest, for after prescribing
form a discordant element in the thoroughly Greek
appearance which the cult had assumed: at Epidaurus the sacnfices and torches to be offered by the priest to
the priesthood both interpreted the dreams of sick Sarapis and Isis and Apis, it says (11. 20-1) 'And let the
persons sleeping in the temple and recorded the mira- temple administrator provide also the Egyptian who
eulous eures, and temples elsewhere preserv'ed records will join in performing the saerifice in an expert way.
of miracles and. epiphanies (pp. 9~92 later). And let ~t not be permissible to any one else to perform
The story of Delos is clear in its main lines, thanks the sacnfice to the goddess in an inexpert way or with-
to the exploration of the sites and to Roussel's study. out the priest's aid.' The cult is hellenized so far as
EIsewhere in the Greek world things probably went in may be, but technical competenee is required: so we
very much the same way except that there is no other have a subordinate for the purpose, like the Etrusean
evidence of eonfliet. The introduction of the eult into haruspices whom a Roman magistrate would eonsult
a city was no doubt generally due to immigrants (in but would treat as hirelings. It means mueh that the
priest is appointed by the city, as he is again at
o
The Opposite Gurrent The Opposite Gurrent 57
Magnesia in Thessaly. At Eretria and at Athens the the temples would know ofsuch initiation as a privilege
priesthood was an annual office. available for those whom the god or goddess designated
Now this is particularly important as an indication by dreams and who could afford it: they would have
that the cult was absorbed in the ordinary run of civic seen the glorified initiate come forth to receive their
cults and also that it was not commonly in the wider adoration, or again watched the initiates of both sexes
Greek world at this time a mystery cult. A mystery walk in procession at the Ploiaphesia (the ceremony
generally demands permanent clergy, such as we know of the opening of the sailing season) after the ftute-
at Alexandria and such as Apuleius describes at player and before the priest, radiant with the pure
Cenchreae and at Rome. All our references to the whiteness of linen garb, the women with hair bound
Isiac priesthood at Rome suggests a professional clergy in translucent nets, the men clean shaven with shining
living in the temple precincts. The conclusion to be heads, 'the earthly stars of great religion', making
drawn is, I think, that, while individual Italians re- a clear sound 'with sistra (rattles) of bronze and silver
turning from Delos might bring back with them an and gold. They are like a confratcrnity with its special
interest in the cult, the form which it took came from place in a procession of the Host.
Alexandria. U nder the Empire we find also a priest Initiation was thus a restricted privilege. So again
for life ofSarapis at Termessus, though we do not know the taurobolium, ofwhich we shall speak later, was ex-
whether his position was special and personal. I t is not pensive, and the men who recorded their initiation in
clear that initiations of the later type had formed a variety of mysteries were men of means. I t was left
apart of the cult outside Egypt in the Hellenistic for Christianity to democratize mystery. I t expected
period. The absence of a mention in the texts at liberality of the ,vealthy but gave its rites to the poor
Magnesia and Priene may of course be due to their and needy, just as it gave to them the advantages of
fragmentary condition, but the nature of the priest- burial guilds and more: even a poor man's guild re-
hood is clear evidence to the contrary. Even the quired subscriptions and was in danger ofliquidation.
drama of Osiris at Athens may have been introduced, To sum up, the- cult was for the majority of its
and was at least reshaped, as late as A.D. 63, and in worshippers not a mystery cult, and in many p]aces
Rome under Caligula. In any case the use of Soter in the Hellenistic period proper it ,vas not a mystery
and Soteira (Saviour god and goddess) for Sarapis and cult at all. The uninitiated devotee nlight attend thc
Isis refers to deliverance from perils. by sea and by public worship, might pray for help, might make his
disease, and the deities are saviours of all good men. vows in sickness and pay them in health, might have
Further, when we find the ceremonies of initiation sacrifice offered by the priest, migh t wear a ring wi th
described by Apuleius, they are not ceremonies for representations of the gods as an amulet, might put
every one interested in the cult: they were expensive: up private shrines or join in a cult association, might
Lucius spent all his money. The many who frequented dine 'at the god's couch'. Isis was able 'to savc the
58 The Opposite Gurrent The Opposite Current 59
universe' . Such a claim of universalism can of course we see now in thc popularity of thc cult of the Litde
be made by a religion which at the same time holds Flower, St. Therese ofLisieux. Where there was con-
that its means of grace are indispensable; peace on earth flict, as at DeIos, there would be a situation in which
to men of goodwill can exist side by side with he that something like conversion could take place, but in
helieveth and is baptized shall be saved: he that helieveth not general there is no more than acceptance of \vhat
slzall be damned. It was hardly so with the Egyptian was brought in by immigrants or returning natives, or
deities. When Firmicus Maternus speaks of Isis and again copying of other neighbouring cities.
Osiris, he discusses the cult drama and not initiations; Our evidence shows that the Alexandrian cults
when he speaks of Sarapis, he mentions only sacrifices obtaincd in this way a sure if hcllenized position in
and prophecy (Concerning the Error of Profane Religions, Grcek worship. Phrygian CybeIe had in many pi aces
2. 13). Initiation in fact corresponds not to baptism such a standing well before the beginning of the HeI-
but to some additional act of special devotion, such as lenistic period. To what extcnt native practices and
joining the third order of St. Francis. the new initiatory ceremonies and the taurobolium
In the main the worship was a powerful cult which grafted themselves on the cul t in thc mainland and
had approximated to the ordinary framework of life: islands of Greece during the Hellenistic period we
this is exemplified by a dedication to Isis, Anubis, do not know: our information is much fuller for the
Bubastis, and Zeus Ktesios, the domestic god, on Empire. The worship ofMen, a moon deity from Asia
Delos, and by dedications to Zeus Kynthios associated Minor, in Attica is attested before the end of the third
,vith Sarapis and Isis in the Sarapeum C there. In century B.C. by the presence of names derived from
Boeotia in the second century B.C. the temples of Isis hirn.
and Sarapis were comrnonly used in the manumission There is now very interesting evidence for the rise
of slaves, so often done in the form of a ceremonial dedi- of the so-called Syrian goddess (Atargatis) to civic
cation or sale of the slave to a deity; again, Pausanias, importance. At Beroea in Macedon we have a dedica-
although he uses 'the Egyptian goddess' as a synonym tion of the end of the third century B.C., 'ApolIonides
for Isis (x. 32. 13) refers to her tempi es as though they the son of Dexilaos, priest, to Atargatis the Saviour',
\vere not exotic. Nor must we forget that at Tithorea and in A.D. 239 and 261 we have records of manu-
Isis took overanold festival ceIebrated twice a year. No mission 'to the Syrian maiden goddess', as she was then
less Greek was the private cult in societies, which often called. At Phistyon in Aetolia we have evidence of
started before the civic cult and commonly continued the cuIt in 204/3 B.C. It was perhaps brought back
side by side with it. Such societies acquired legal by Aetolian mercenaries returning horne. Here again
personality and the right of owning property. she ,vas concerned with manumissions, and commonly
So Isis and Sarapis held the place oftwo new saints, bears the title Aphrodita Syria Phistyis, which indicates
with the attraction of freshness, the power of which that it was feit that in spite ofher foreign origin she had
60 The Opposite Gurrent The Opposite Gurrent 61
become Our Lady of Phistyon. Then there are two Commagene. Slaves came thence, but Persian religion
decrees of Thuria in Messenia of the earlier part of the may have belonged mainly to a higher caste.
second century B.C. The first relates to arbitration with Astranger phenomenon in the Greek world was the
Megalopolis: if it is succ.essful, the names of all the J ewish Dispersion. The prophetic movement and the
s;'ndikoi or representatives are to be inscribed on a stone experience of the exile had created a conviction that
pillar in the temple of the Syrian goddess. The second Gentile religion was idolatry offensive to God, and at
is in honour of Damocharis of Sparta, a benefactor of the same time that the day would come when God
the city. He is granted various privileges and among would be acknowledged and served by all mankind.
them a front seat on the days of the mysteries and The contact with Persia had genera ted or stimulated
a leading pI ace in the procession wi th the officials in many the belief that there was a world to come: in
called hieromnamones and a share in all the amenities. this there would be room not only for Jews but also
'Moreover, since, honouring both the worship of the for Gentiles who abjured their pagan ways, either by
Syrian goddess and our city, he promises to provide becoming proselytes (that is naturalized Jews) or, on
throughout his life the oil for the days of the mysteries, let the more liberal interpretation, by simple observance
the ephors who are colleagues of Menestratos dedicate a of the so-called Noachite commandments, which were
painted representation of hirn in the temple of the Syrian held to be binding on all men. There resulted from
goddess with the following inscription: "the city of Thuria this a missionary idea which is illustrated by the book
honours Damocharis".' of Jonah. Written probably towards the end rather
These texts are extremely important. Firstly, they than the beginning of the period 400-200 B.C., it
show that the temple of the Syrian goddess was, so to describes the irresistible vocation of a J ew to preach
speak, the cathedral ofThuria. Secondly, they are the repentance to the people ofNineveh (now a ruin, but
first explicit evidence for mysteries of hers. Thirdly, good as a type of hea thenism) . The sailors of J oppa
the proedreia at the mysteries explains the theatres who manned Jonah's ship are Gentiles praying every
possessed by the godd~ss at Delos, at Baalsamin-a- man to his own god, bu t the storm causes them to fear
Si, and elsewhere. We may with probability infer' a God exceedingly and to make vows to hirn. Jonah's
dramatic re-enacting of some part of the legends told message is one of repentance, and its inherent rightness
by Lucian. We know the cult ofthe Syrian goddess at is vindicated against his peevish anger.
Delos, Athens, and Aegeira, but though she became The Jewish Dispersion talked Greek and Latin
a familiar figure she did not bulk as large as Isis in (Greek predominated in the inscriptions of their ca ta-
the world as a whole. combs in Rome) but was unique from its normally
Mithras seems not to have been thus brought by exclusive attitude towards alien religion which in-
foreign groups; perhaps this is purely accidental and volved serious social bars (non-participation in festivals
due to a paucity of contacts with Cappadocia and and in meat and wine which might entail idolatrous
The Opposite Gurrent The Opposite Gurrent
contamination) from its cohesion, in many cities from its prominent in magie papyri and in aneient eurSes as
numbers (certainly so at Alexandria and Apamea, and a god of power. Further , many who werc not J ews
in those parts ofPhrygia and Lydia where An tiochus the respeeted some J ewish observanees, notably the Sab-
Great had about 200 B.C. settled 2,000Jewish families); bath, but also fasts, lamp-lighting, and some food
unique also from its possession of the synagogue with rules. Anormal pagan might weIl feel that there was
its sermons whieh would remind outsiders of a philo- something of value and use in eustoms so strenu-
sophieal school rather than atempie. U nd er these ously maintained, without being prepared to go to the
conditions it eould not be indifferent to its environment. drastie length of beeoming a proselyte, whieh meant
Commonly it grew in the conseiousness of the value a complete renuneiation of his past, an aeeeptanee of
of its peculiar beliefs which had arisen in prophetie heavy obligations previously not ineumbcnt upon hirn,
teaehings and in the experienee of the exile: often i t and not a little social disapproval or ostraeism. The
developed an eager desire to proselytize. We hear of dedieation of a proseucha or prayer-house in 102/1 B.C.,
many proselytes in Antioeh and we know elsewhere found at Alexandria, was made 'to thc great god who
of many 'fearers of God', who conformed with those hears prayer' with the eharaeteristie Egyptian 'great'
commandments binding on all mankind and partiei- (familiar of course also as an epithet in the Old Testa-
pated in the sabbath worship ofthe synagogue without ment). At Tanais in the Bosporus, in Mysia (second
either the privileges or the obligations of the real Jew or first eentury B.C.), and elsewhere there is a eult of
and without the social eondemnation which eommonly Hypsistos, the Highest God (a eommon epithet of God
rested upon theJew. Acts xiii. 43-4 implies that many in the Septuagint), by eult societies including in the
Gentiles might eome to a synagogue when a famous Bosporus 'adopted brothers' and so probahly by impli-
preaeher was expeeted, just as they would rush to hear cation originally entirely composed of Jews and yet
Dion of Prusa or Lueian. Again, Judaism might take by now suffieiently assimilated to their environment
a quietist tone and live its life either in isolation or to use onee a formula ofmanumission ending with the
in reeognition of eognate elements in contemporary common Greek phrase, 'under Zeus, earth, the sun'.
thought. At Tanais the names are, exeept for Sambation and
But we find also, what we have learned to expeet Azarion, non-Jewish and mostly barbarian: further,
from the eontaet of Greeks with an Oriental national the group had priests (as weIl as the regular presbyteroi)
religion, first the reeognition by Greeks of the god of and perhaps therefore a saerifieial eultus (whieh would
the J ews as a fit objeet of worship and as eapable of to an orthodoxJew be illieit), and in texts ofthe third
equation with a deity of their own (Zeus or Dionysus eentury A.D. it is sometimes ealled 'The assoeiation
or Attis); seeondly, the formation of new composite around the highest God and the priest N', whieh
products as a result of give and take on both sides. involves an un-Jewish intimaey with deity. Late in the
The god of the J ews (under thc name Iao) is fourth century A.D. we hear of a seet of Hypsistarii in
The Opposite Gurrent The Opposite Gurrent 65
Cappadocia, survivors of this movement. The father has been noted, the desire to please the Ptolemies,
of Gregory N azianzen belonged to this before his applies only to the worship of Isis and Sarapis in areas
conversion, and his son characterizes it as a mixture where Ptolemaic favour was worth winning. There
of Hellenic (i.e. Gentile) error and the humbug of the must therefore be other factors. At times it might be
law, honouring fire (probably from the Persian element that the immigrant group if it attained full civic rights
in Cappadocia) and lamps and the Sabbath and food would surpass the old inhabitants in wealth and vvould
regulations while rejecting circumcision. Similar be- therefore hold magistracies. Yet more often the issue
lievers existed in Phoenicia and Pales tine, and even must have turned on the attraction ofnovelty, and on
in the West. Again, we know in Cilicia a society of the feeling tha t the old cul ts were in a measure ou tworn
Sabbatistai, and there is evidence that a certain fusion and ineffective, and the old deities unable to protect
took place between the cult of J ehovah as conceived you in the immense new universe which had taken the
by some of the Jews settled by Antiochus in Phrygia pI ace of the limited horizon of the city-state world,
and the native cult of Zeus Sabazios. Such fusion was unable again to protect you against the universal
not then out of the question; the Maccabee movement power of Fate or the capriciousness of Fortune. Men
had not yet come to heightenJewish self-consciousness, of conservative temper were always restoring and
and even the hierarchy at Jerusalem was very ready to enlarging old ceremonies, but it is doubtful whether
compromise; in later times Philo had to complain of except in Arcadia the populace shared their enthu-
Jews who feIt themselves to be emancipated. The siasm, and the new cults were presen ted in such a way
Jews in Phrygia married Gentiles, and we later find as to have the merit of novelty without the defect of
the descendants of such marriages as priests of the being too strange. To these problems we shall return
Emperor's worship. This connexion with Sabazios is in Chapters VI and VII.
probably due to the similarity of name with Sabaoth,
which to a man speaking Greek seemed to be a proper
name in the nominative and not the genitive 'ofhosts'.
There are indications of this fusion at Apamea and
in Rome.
In the last chapter we saw the formation of blended
worships with a capacity for success in the world at
large. We have he re considered the way in which they
were carried by migrants, commonly just as their own
form of worship, and how in the Hellenistic period
some of them acquired an important position even
among the official cults of the city. One cause which
The Patlz to Rome
V thc rcturning soldicry sometimes carried back strange
cults with them, as Sulla's soldiers perhaps carried Ma
THE PATH TO ROME from Comana: i t is said tha t their c0mmander had
'AND so they journeyed towards Rome.' As Rome avision of her on his first march to Rome. Tacitus
.t1. became first a world power and then the world tclls how as day broke on the desperate struggle before
power, merchants came in their hundreds slaves in Cremona in A.D. 69, the soldicrs of the third legion
. '
thelr tens of thousands, and others again who had gone saluted the rising sun; 'That iso the way in Syria'
forth from Rome as soldiers or traders returned wi th (Histories, iii. 24)' The influence of trade appears in
new ideas and beliefs. Let us take two concrete ex- the fact that the Syrian festival of Maioumas became
amples, which though later than the beginning of this a civic celebration at Ostia and that as carly as 105 B.C.
development throw light upon it. An inscription at there was a public temple of Sarapis at Puteoli:
Puteoli dated 29 May, A.D. 79, says: 'The god Helios whether this is in any large measure due to returning
Sarap~enos (that is the .Baal of Sarapta betwcen Tyre Italians is however doubtful) for, although we have
and Sldon) came on Shlp from Tyre to Puteoli. Elim records of their interest in the worships of the Levant,
brought hirn in accordance with a command.' Elim is the evidence on Delos indicates that the mercan-
li~~ Apollonios of Delos. Again we have an inscription
tile colony of Italians living there was at least in its
glvlng a letter sen t by the Tyrians at Pu teoli to their domestic cultus fairly conservative.
mother city in A.D. 174, which refers to the expense of New cults when they came to Rome entered an
the worship of their national deities as heavy on them atmosphere different from that of the Hellenistic cities
with their now shrunken numbers. Inscriptions from in which they had previously found acceptance. In
the Syrian temple on the J aniculum show that its those cities, indeed, as in Rome, public worship was
cu!t~s was mostly an affair of Syrian immigrants, and
a public concern, and we have seen occasional inter-
thlS IS true also of the priests and officers of the Roman ference by the authorities against unwarranted innova-
cult society of Juppiter Dolichenus. tion. In Rome this was far more systematic and
'fhe part which slavescan play is familiar from the thoroughgoing. The religion of the republic was a
story ofNaaman'sJewish handmaiden. We may recall relationship between the State and the gods. The
the Syrian Eunus in Sicily, who claimed to have special State did its part and looked confidently to the gods
revelations from the Syrian goddess and to know that \ to do theirs. Further, thc State took over thc responsi-
~e would be a king, wherefore his master brought hirn
bilities of individual citizens and, freed them from
In to amuse guests after dinner by his prophecies, and religio, uneasy fear of the supernatural, an emotion
the guests made hirn small presen ts, asking hirn to always latent and liable from time to time to break
remember them when he should become king. Again, out in panic. The attitude of the State towards in-
dividuals was exactly like the attitude then of the
68 The Path to Rome The Path to Rome 69
head of a household to its members. The elder Cato, eorresponds to the annual civic priests of Isis in Gr~ek
in his treatise on agriculture, gives this advice about eities noted earlier.) The Trojan legend helped to glve
the bailiff's ""ife, 'Let her not perform ceremonies or her importance, and the lauatio or washing of her
bid another do so for her without the command ofher image in the Almo on 27 March certainly becam~ a
master or mistress. Let her know that her master does public ceremonial of the state in the time of ClaudIus,
worship for the whole household' (eh. 143). when the cult was fully naturalized. Theneeforward
Rome's range of worships was not, however, fixed the archigallus was not a eunuch and was a Roman
once and for all. In early days the cults of various citizen. The public proeession and dramatic cere-
conquered communities were absorbed, and other monies of the Mother's consort Attis were in time
cults were from time to time introduced from abroad celebrated with great pomp as part of the State's
to satisfy popular emotion in time of panic: so for in- religious calendar. The festival occupied six days. On
stance the Greek practice of putting the images of the 15 March 'the reed entered' , on 22 March 'the tree
gods on couches and setting a banquet before them, so entered' , the 24th was the day of blood, the 2?th that
again in the plague of 293 B.a. the cult of Aesculapius, of joy, the 26th that of rest, the 27th the washing, but
in 217 B.a. Venus Erycina from Sicily, and in 205 B.G. the first certain evidence for days other than the
the cult of the Great Mother Cybele from Pessinus. lauatio does not eome till the time of Mareus Aurelius.
I t is characteristic of the Roman instinct for govern- The ealendar of Philocalus adds Initium Caiani as the
ment that there was a special commission (ultimately name of the 28th. This may refer to the sanctuary of
of fifteen) in charge of all foreign worship. In a time Cybele on the Vatican, perhaps to mysteries a.ttached
of stress men were liable to think that the traditional to the eult: it does not appear to have been an Integral
proceedings were inadequate: this feeling is exemplified part of the eyde. In any ease, we are in the dark as
by the burying alive of a Greek man and woman and far as such mysteries are eoneerned, though there are
a Gaulish man and woman in occasional erises. When undeniable indieations that initiations existed. We
the Great Mother came, what was imported was know more of the taurobolium. The reeipient descended
strictly speaking just a rite. The eunuch priests of into a hole dug in the ground and a bull was slaugh-
Phrygian stock performed their ceremonies privately tered over hirn: i ts blood dripped over hirn and he
and the State derived the appropriate benefit. No saw to it that it fell on eheeks and ears and lips and
Roman citizen might become a eunuch priest, and nose and eyes, actually catching some on his tongue.
we hear of the banishmen t of a slave who eastrated He was then adored by the onlookers. The rite may
hirnself. At the same time the goddess received offieial originally have been the sequel of the lassooing of
sacrifices from the praetor who presided at the games a bull, as the term has been thought to indicate. The
given in her honour, and banquets for her festival were
.
first inscriptional re cords tell us nothing of the meaning
eonducted by aristocratic Roman societies. (This of the act, except that it was done on behalf of the
The Path to Rome The Path to Rome 71
Empire: later we read that the recipient was 'reborn taurobolium in the West (at Puteoli, A.D. 134) was in
for twenty years'; later still 'reborn for ever'. Whatever honour of Venus Caelesta (that is, Atargatis) and the
the original meaning ,vas, the rite was therc as some- rite occasionally attached itself to 1-fithraism. So,
thing which a devotec could undergo ifhe could afford though Cybele's, it was not ~ers exclusively; and it
the nccessary bull (as also the criobolium if he could had no basis in her myth and dld not always take place
afford the necessary ram). Here again as with Isiac du ring her festival. I t was an act like sacrifice. People
initiation there was the idea that it could not bc done wcre attracted by having seen it (it drcw a crowd), by
without divine sanction: thc phrase ex uaticinatione the hope of getting special grace, by thc dcsire t~ show
archigalli, 'in accordance with the divination of the loyalty to the Empire, by adesirc to have promlnence
archigallus', occurs not merely in numerous records for amoment; perhaps at timcs by adesire to show
but also in a legal text (a taurobolium so conducted in tha t they could afford i t.
Portus, thc harbour of Ostia, for the Emperor's safety We see here the gradual developmcnt of a cult which
excused one from the duties of guardian, a fact which the State had acccpted, its full expansion being in
reveals anew the official recognition of this worship). and after the An tonine period. I t belonged to the
At the same time it is to be noted that this ceremony sacra publica controlled by the commissio~ of ~ft?en.
was attachcd to the Frigianum or sanctuary on the This centralized authority is illustrated by lnscnptlons
Vatican and not to the old temple on the Palatine. which show them as conferring the insignia of priest-
Around this rite there crystallized a great deal of hood on pricsts of the Great Mother in towns other
feeling in the last days of paganism: an inscription on than Rome.
an altar found ne ar St. Peter's records how a man This is the perfeet story of thc Romanization of an
performed the taurobolium and criobolium, scattered the alien cult. Othcr strange religions came in unob-
darkness of twenty-eight years, and brought light trusively and if they attracted attention were liable
again-the darkncss being no doubt th(:' time of Con- to be suppressed by a magistrate acting on the Senate's
stans and Constantius, and the text a document of the advice as what we should call a police measure. There
Julianic revival. A modern man cannot but feel that was a 'particular zeal to prevent a~y sort of rel~gio~s
the performance of so distasteful a rite must be the professional quack, of the type dlS?Ussed earher In
product of considerable religious devotion. But we connexion with Orphism, from gettlng a hold upon
have only to contemplate ancient superstitions regard- the popular imagination and disturbing the public
ing reHes from gladiatorial contests to realize how tranquillity. The classic instance is tha.t of 186 B.C.,
intense was belief in the efficacy of blood, and the when a religious movement, suddenly dlscovered and
medicine of the Empire as of later times is fuH of thought to be a grave menace to public order and
nauseating remedies, composed of excrement and the safety, was suppressed. According to Li~y's ~cc~unt
like. Further, it must benoted that theearliestrecorded (xxxix. 8 ff.) a Greek had brought Dionyslac ntes lnto
72 The Path to Rome The Path to Rome 73
Etruria: he is described in the familiar way as making miracle (torches dipped in the Tiber and brought out
money out of popular superstitions, and performing alight), of supposed carrying off of men by the gods.
nocturnal ceremonies. The ceremonies were originally She said that there was a great multitude offollowers,
given to a few and then spread widely with the added almost a second people. The authorities in fact feared that
attraction of wine and banquets and mixed company they had to face a mass-movemen t: the second people is
by night. From Etruria it spread to Rome. There very reminiscent of Christianity.
it was discovered through a chain of circumstances. The guilty were punished, all temples which could
The mother and step-father of P. Aebutius desired his not claim antiquity were destroyed: no such meetings
undoing and the mother told hirn that when he was were to be held in future at Rome or in Italy: but, if
sick she had vowed that she would initiate hirn in the there were any who said that it was necessary for them
Bacchic mysteries as soon as he recovered. For ten to have a Bacchanal (a si te given up to the cult)) they
days he must be chaste: then, after he had dined and should come to the praetor urbanus at Rome and when
bathed, she would take hirn to the sanctuary. His their case had been heard the Senate should decide
mistress Hispala Fecenia saved hirn from this, telling (a quorum of one hundred present being obligatory
hirn of the dangers which would threaten hirn there, during the discussion): no man was to approach the
and then word having reached the consul, she was Bacchae without consultation of the praetor urbanus
constrained to tell hirn all about this cult, though she and adecision given by hirn with the approval of
avowed fear of the gods and much greater fear of the a quorum of the Senate. In the ceremonies which
other devotees. Her account was that the temple had would thus be permitted for conscience' sake not more
originally been one frequented only by women, to than five must be present, there must be no common
which no man was admitted and in which initiations chest, and no president of the rites or priest. The
took place on three fixed days in the year and different suppression was not complete in 181 B.C.
matrons were priestesses in turn. Then Paculla Annia We see here areal movement ofreligious enthusiasm,
from Campania changed everything, claiming that with an idea of divine compulsion wh ich even the
she did so on the advice of the gods. She initiated her State recognizes. The suppression was not for ever.
sons, she transferred the ceremonies from the day to the Arecent find at Tusculum has given us the list of the
night, and she substituted five initiation days a month members of a college of initiates there in the first half
for three a year. (It will be noticed th3.t Hispala's of the second century A.D. arranged according to their
account is different from that first given by Livy, in religious rank; the list includes nearly five hundred
which the movement was from the beginning one in names and the head was J ulia Agrippinilla, her slaves
which the sexes were mixed.) Hispala then told of and freedmen being among the members. Such asso-
nocturnal licence (a characteristic of sects persecu ted ciations existed commonly in the Empire, and the
or suppressed), of prophesying in wild ecstasy, of influence exercised by their ideas is shown by thc
74 The Path to Rome The Path to Rome 75
predominance ofDionysiac imagery on sarcophagi and became official and Isis and Sarapis obtained a public
its importance in Pompeian paintings and art and in double temple in the Campus Martius (still outside
the decorations of the Casa Farnesina at Rome. the pomerium): two centuries later, under Caracalla,
The policy of checking the in trusion of alien Sarapis obtained a public temple on the Quirinal. So
elements, unless sanctioned and in fact introduced the African Liber and Hercules received their public
by the quindecimuiri, continued. As early as 18r B.C. tempI es under Septimius Severus, Sol Inuictus Elagabal
certain supposed books of Numa Pompilius, said to his (temporary) temple under Elagabalus, Dea Suria
have been found on the Janiculum, were burnt in hers und er Alexander Severus, Sol Inuictus (in a
public with the approval of the Senate, since the Roman form) under Aurelian, and Bellona Puluinensis
praetor adjudged that they tended in the main to the probably, Juppiter Dolichenus possibly, in this century.
break up ofbeliefs; in 139 Chaldeans, that is astrologers, Elagabalus and Aurelian acted from personal motives,
and Jews making proselytes were banished, as vvere but otherwise the final step of canonization is the
astrologers and magicians in 33 too (when Agrippa culmination of a process of private growth.
took action). So long as new cults of this type kept Mithras alone remains private and yet fully approved,
quiet, no action was taken, but when altars ofIsis were for (1) Mithraism was primarily, what the others were
put up on the Capitol they were destroyed in 59, 53, only secondarily, a mystery religion and had no public
probably 50, and 48 B.C.: in the last year atempie of ceremonies: a civic cult would have had little raison
Bellona was destroyed. The triumvirs voted a public d'Cire; (2) Mithraism was unquestionably loyal and
temple to Isis in 43 B.C., perhaps to conciliate the also markedly successful with the official dass; (3)
masses, but it was probably never built. In the war there was no shade of impropriety in the cult; (4) it
against Cleopatra, Augustus was compelled to assurne could seem to be a specialized form of the Sun worship
a strongly nationalist pose as the champion of the which became official; (5) it had not a professional
Roman order and Roman religion, and under his priestly dass without secular activities. So it continued
regime even private shrines to the Egyptian deities its existence in sm all cryptlike temples, having some-
were exduded, first in 28 B.C. from the pomerium or times porticoes, on ground privately owned (by
official city bounds, then, when they were again enter- individual benefactors or collegia).
ing in 21 B.C., from a cirde ofa mile outside it. Under Of course many of the incoming cults did not
Tiberius as a result of a scandal (p. 153 later), in succeed in establishing themselves. The Syrian gods
A.D. 19 a temple was destroyed, the image thrown into seldom won such a place as Isis did: their worship was
the Tiber, and 4,000 freedmen addicted to this cult often just an affair of the local Syrian group, or of the
or to Judaism, against which another piece of sharp mendican t priests of the Syrian goddess who drew
practice was charged, banished, others being given alms from all and sundry. We can imagine people
a time limit to recant. But under Caligula the cult feeling that there probably was something in this
T'

The Path to Rome


exotic devotion and a small gift would not hurt, also
VI
that the priests were liable to curse and a curse was
a terrible thing. Again, the attempt of Elagabalus to HOW EASTERN CULTS TRAVELLED
make the worship of his god Elagabal the central
of these various cults succeeded in different
worship of the Empire provoked areaction: when
Aurelian introduced the Syrian cult of the Sun it was
M ANY
degrees in attracting outsiders. We must here ask,
How were they presented? and ho\v far can we speak
in strictly Roman form, as part, if apredominant part
of missionary activity and propaganda? reserving for
of the Pantheon: it was an addition changing the
the next chapter the further question, What psycho-
balance of power, not a change like those effected by
logical needs did they answer ? Here we shall be con-
Constantine or Julian.
cerned with the following modes of presentation: in-
In general Rome was receiving: but she gave some-
dividual propaganda, teachings, external cultus and
thing. Wherever a colony was founded there was a
pr.ocessions, mendicant priests, public penitents, and
miniature Capitol; there was one at Oxyrhynchus,
mirade and its re cord in literary propaganda and in
and Zeus Kapetolios was worshipped in various cities
art.
in the Eastern provinces. Any such influence was no
Mithraism, Christianity in its various forms, and
doubt fairly superficial. It is quite a different story in
small private mysteries must have depended for new
the Western provinces. Here Latin was the language
adherents mainly on the bringing in of one individual
of the superior culture, as Greek was in the East,
by another to the collegium or temple. Literary allu-
supplanting native tongues, and native deities were
sions make it dear that any one would have heard of
identified with Roman gods.
Mithras and would probably know that there were
mysteries connected with hirn: some feeling of the
effective otherness of the cult may have been inspired
by the sight of a Mithraist at a banquet refusing the
wreath offered to hirn, as, if he had reached the grade
of miles, he was bound to do. Many of uso owe our
first acquaintance with Catholicism to some parental
explanation of why So-and-so did not eat me at on
Friday. There must also have been some general idea
that these rites affected the future of your soul: cer-
tainly this was so with the Dionysiac societies.
Judaism must have attracted men largelY in this
way through individual propaganda in households by

1
How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 79
slaves and freedmen or casual acquaintances: J uvenal, his Jewish Antiquities and Against Apion, an apologetic
vi. 542, men tions a J ewess among the various religious for Judaism, to the rich freedman Epaphroditus.
quacks battening on women's superstition. Judaism Certain works of Philo, as for instance On the Contem-
appeared as something like a philosophy. 1ts mono- plative Lift and That Every Virtuous Man is Free, are
theism would incidentally free you from a number of definitely addressed to Gentiles, and the latter is in
religious expenses, though of course if you took it substance based on popular Hellenistic diatribe: it is
seriously it would at the same time exclude you from remarkable thatin theforty-secondsection (ii, p. 452 M.)
festivities. This teaching was presented in the syna- he speaks of the companions of kings and the com-
gogue, with its reading of the Scripture in Greek and panions of the Olympian gods and adds, 'The lawgiver
its sermon. Nothing in paganism before the Julianic of the J ews goes even farther'. Bu t there is no evidence
revival corresponded to this: in a mystery there was that Philo's intention had any success: there is one
a prorrhesis or proclarnation, warning the unfit not to citation of hirn in Heliodorus, and that is all in pagan
present themselves and the rest of those present to literature. Certainly there is no indication of sub-
purify themselves, and during the ceremony a certain stantial knowledge of the Septuagint except as heard
amount was said, but it was in the nature of the text by those who frequented synagogues or were con-
of a liturgy and apparently without much explanation. cerned to write polemical treatises against Christianity:
This teaching was the more effective by reason of its as a book it was bulky, expensive, and inaccessible.
exclusiveness and absoluteness: it was sure of itsel( The quotation of Moses in the treatise On the Sublime
Judaism had no outdoor processions, but it had a (probably first century A.D.) may be due to chance
certain amount of appeal to the eye. Persius, v. 179 ff., knowledge or to the ethnographie observations of
when inveighing against superstition, says: Posidonius: at the same time it is notable that Posi-
donius did not know of the Jewish prophets when he
'But when the days of Herod are come and thc violet
wreathed lamps, set in order in the greased window, have enumerated specimens of the type all over the known
poured a thick cloud of smoke and the tail of the tunny- world. Again, there is no evidence that the Judaizing
fish curls round the red dish and is afloat, and the white redaction of the Sibylline oracles and of certain Orphic
jar is bursting with wine, then you move your lips without texts exercised any influence outside J udaism and
speaking and grow pale with fear before the Sabbath of Christianity, though it is noteworthy that a Jewish
the circumcised.' story about Alexander's visit to Jerusalem and another
1t may be asked whether literary propaganda is to about his shutting out of Gog and Magog found their
be reckoned among the ways in which Judaism was way into the popular redaction of the legendary
spread. Writings of Artapanos and others in later his tory of Alexander passing under the name of Callis-
Ptolemaic times sough t to show tha t the origin of thenes. The use of Genesis i in the cosmogonies of
Egyptian culture was Jewish, and Josephus dedicated Corpus Hermeticum i and iii is familiar: the first quotes
80 How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 81

a supra-Hebraized form, 'increase with increase, and I business might create an impression of professional
-t
multiply with multiplication', and both represent an I skiIl. Traditional worship, carried on generally by
I men whose priestly functions were incidental, might in
unmistakable fusion of Jewish and other ideas. ...l

We may pass to the direct appeal to the eye. Isis and comparison seem easy-going and amateurish, though
Cybele had this in a marked degree. Isis had such I must confess that I know no dircct evidence for such
visible rites as the Ship olIsis, the blessing of sailing at an attitude, and we could hardly expect to find it
the opening of the season, and solemn processions which expressed by men of the literary dass; in their eyes this
we find represented in art as weIl as described in sort of religious professionalism when in their midst
literature, and again imposing ceremonies in the tem- belonged to vulgar superstition, ready as they might
ple from which the public was not exduded (the morn- be to idealize the native priesthood of Egypt and
ing ceremony of opening the temple and the toilet Persia.
of the images, sacred dances, the adoration of the urn So it \vas 'with Cybele. She had her anger. In
of supposed Nile water as shown in a painting from 38 H.C. it was reckoned as a portent that certain persons,
Herculaneum, the drama of Osiris, the coming forth becoming possessed by the Mother of the gods, de-
of the initiate dressed as the Sun-god). Moreover, dared that the goddess was angry with them. And
there was something to strike the imagination in the she had her public ceremonies. Lucretius (ii. 608 ff.)
whole aspect ofthese ostentatiously exotic temples with gives a striking picture of how 'The image of the divine
niches in front, often no doubt with elaborate precincts mother is carried in dread fashion through mighty
and pious residents. At Pompeii the priests lived in the lands. Various races according to the ancient custom
Iseum: at Corinth Lucius before his initiation spent ofthe rite call her the Idaean mother'; the GaIli walk in
aperiod of retreat in an ab ode within the temple the procession to the sound of timbrels and cymbals
precinct: at Smyrna, just as at Memphis, there were and horns and flutes, they carry weapons as signs of
katochoi living there, men on whom there lay some their mad frenzy, able to overpower with fear of the
divine constraint compelling them to abide in the deity's might the thankless hearts and impious breasts
temple. of the crowd. 'So when first she rides through mighty
The eye was struck also by penitents sitting as cities and with closed lips showers an unvoiced blessing
suppliants before the temple oflsis or shouting through on mortals they strew all the \vay with silver and
the streets, 'for my sins my sight was taken from me', bronze, offering liberal alms; roses fall from them like
or doing strange penances. The shorn priests and the snow on the Mother and the throngs ofher attendants.'
daily services, the noisy hymns of the faithful, the in- Lucretius closes his accOlint in accordance with his
comprehensible hieroglyphic inscriptions might give principles, 'Although these things are weIl and excel-
a sense of continuous religious life and otherness; Iently arranged, yet they are far removed from the true
and their residence in the temple and absorption in its view', but he has for a moment made even us feel the
82 How Eastern Cults travelled
thrill of the crowds, the still majesty of the image: we
r
I How Eastern Cults travelled
were directed towards the influencing of those who
83

can hardly fail to think of the atmosphere which heard and saw them to the practice of regular personal
surrounds a procession of the Host. U nder Claudius devotion to Cybele or Dea Suria. They wanted money
the dramatic processions and visible ritual became for a religious purpose, and they had a technique,
part of the State's round of festival.s and acquired new religious in their eyes, for securing it. Marius had
splendour. So also Bellona had processions and a cult a Syrian prophetess whom he took about with him
society called hastiferi. and he performed sacrifice at her bidding, but it did
These hot long ceremonies of our church not change his personal attitude, any more than the
Cost us a little-oh, they pay the price. consultation of a medical quack would have changed
his views, if any, of the physical nature of the universe.
Again the populace was reminded of several of these Celsus teIls of many prophets who went about in Syria
cults by begging priests. We find these attached to the and Palestine begging and moved as in prophecy.
cult of Cybele and of the Dea Suria and to that of Isis,
'lt is easy and usual for each to say, I am God, or the son
and know best those who exercised their profession for
ofGod, or a divine spirit. I have come, for the world is already
the Syrian goddess. They went everywhere, carrying perishing and you, 0 men, are going to destruction hecause
around her image, dancing as dervishes do, cutting of iniquities. I wish to save you, and you shall see mc
their arms with knives, accusing themselves in frenzy coming again with heavenly power. Blessed is he who has
of sins against her, scourging themselves, and then worshipped me now; on every one else, on cities and lands,
begging alms for her, able on occasions to prophesy and I shall cast everlasting fire. And men who do not know the
to invoke celestial pains and penalties on their mockers. penalties which they incur will in vain repent and groan;
We have the dedication of one of them saying that on hut those who have oheyed me I shall keep in eternity.'
twenty journeys he had filled forty sacks, and we have He says that he had hinlself confuted these men. This
a grim picture of their life drawn by Apuleius, Meta- picture seems to owe some of its features to Celsus'
morphoses, viii. 24 ff. His enthusiasm for Isis may have hostility to Christianity: the threat of cosmic destruc-
added some blackness to the picture, but they were no tion so put is applicable only in a Messianic context.
doubt a despised class. Still, their threats inspired fear There was another me ans of winning adherents
in a world which ascribed great power to the spoken which is particularly important to students of the rise
curse: they spoke in the name of a deity. The fanatics of Christianity. I refer to the supposed miracles done
of Bellona were similar. by these gods and the literary propaganda which made
Cicero in his treatise On Laws, ii. 40, forbids all such them known and enhanced their value. These miracles
begging save for Cybele on a few days, 'for it fills men's would be largely miracles of healing, but were not
minds with superstition and drains their resources'. limited to that. Aristides, who teIls us at length else-
But there is no reason to believe that their activities where about the various divine graces bestowed on
How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 85
hirn in his illnesses, says in his prose hymn to Sarapis time Aristides came to Alexandria this had become
(written towards the middle ofthe second century A.D.), a typical achievement of Sarapis. A similar miracle
'Who the god is and what nature he has may be left has been inferred by Vogt. An inscribed altar of the
to the priests and the learned among the Egyptians to year A.D. 108/9 at Wadi Fatire in Upper Egypt speaks
say and know. Our praise will be sufficient for the of the most fortunate water-jinding named in honour of TraJan
momen t if we tell of all the varied blessings wh ich Dacicus. A weH had been found and a weH station
he is shown to bring to men, and through these very made. Now a coin of Alexandria of I I 1/2 shows
things his nature can be seen.' Aristides mentions Sarapis sitting by a water-basin, which is being filled
mirac1es of various kinds and stresses wonders per- from a lion's head (the regular mouthpiece for a
formed by Sarapis for sailors. As thc god of the spring) : the standard of a company ofsoldiers is behind.
grcatest port in the Mediterranean he might weH care This coin type, repeated under later emperors, prob-
for them: this devclopment is probably late HeHenistic ably means in its first use that the finding of the water
if not Imperial, for in the early Hellenistic period the was regarded as a special mercy of Sarapis. The
Cabiri of Samothrace were actually more worshipped priesthood at Alexandria could in aH good faith regard
than before the time of Alexander. Aristides says: the accidental as providential (mere coincidence was
'He it is who is really steward of the winds much more not a popular hypothesis in antiquity) and was in elose
than the islander in Homer (Aeolus). He has power to enough contact with the Roman authorities to secure
still and rouse which he will. He it is who has sent up the expression of these ideas in coinage, which in those
drinkable water in mid sea, who has raiscd the fallen, who days served purposes now served commonly by postage
has caused the dear light of the sun to shine on beholders, stamps and occasionaHy by postmarks.
whose achievements fill countless volumes on the sacred shelves.' Miraeles of healing would be numerous. Thus
Sarapis gave orders in sleep to a blind man and a lame
Now we possess on a papyrus of the second century
man to go to Vespasian, and they were cu red of their
A.D. the end of a short record of the type to which
infirmities. Ovid teHs the story in Metamorphoses, ix.
Aristides refers:
667 ff., of Telethusa, a woman of Phaestus in Crete.
'He said, For your sake I will grant the water to the men Her husband had told her that if the child she was
of Pharos: and having saluted hirn he sailed out and gave about to bear was a girl it must be exposed. Isis
the watcr to the men of Pharos and received from them as
appeared to her by night, attended by the other
a price one hundred drachmas of silver. This mirade is
Egyptian deities, and said: '0 Telethusa, who art one
recorded in the libraries of Mercurium. Do all of you who
of mine own, lay aside your heavy cares and elude
are present say There is one Zelts Sarapis.'
your husband's bidding. And do not hesitate to rear
There follows the book's tide, 'The Miraele of Zeus whatever offspring there shaH be when Lucina relieves
Helios, great Sarapis, done to Syrion the Pilot'. By the you by a birth. I am a deity strang to help. I bring
86 How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled
aid when invoked; you will not complain that you human nature. He received mercy and teIls us how
worshipped an ungrateful deity.' A girl Iphis was (go ff.):
born, reared as a boy, and in time betrothed to a girl. 'It was night, when every living thing save those in pain
The mother invoked Isis, reminding her that she had was at rest, and the deity appeared to me in special power.
obeyed her commands, and Iphis immediately became 1 was afire with a violent fever and convulsed with diffi-
a youth. This story is probably based on the legend, culty of breathing and cough from the pain arising from
intended to explain a Phaestian festival, the Ekdysia, of my side. Yet in a stupor of pain 1 was drowsing into sleep,
Leto, to whom the mother called Galatea had directed and my mother in great distress at my tortures, as mothers
her prayer; it has been changed in Ovid to an areta- will be for a child (and indeed she is by nature affectionate),
logy. The work by Artemon of Miletus on dreams sat by me enjoying no sleep at alle Then of a sudden-not
included an accoun t of commands and cu res by in a dream or sleep-for her eyes were immovably open,
but they did not discern precisely, for a divine vision came
Sarapis.
on her, inspiring fear and preventing her from discerning
There is a most important parallel text in honour
readily, she saw the figure (whether it was the god or his
of Imouthes, an Egyptian deity commonly identified attendant)-anyhow it was some one passing high, ofmore
with Asclepius and forming part of the circle of deities than human stature, clothed in radiant linen, with a book
round Sarapis at Memphis. This, a papyrus of the in his left hand. He did but contemplate me from top to
second century A.D., teIls us how the (unnamed) author toe twice or three times and vanished. And she came to
had often intended to translate into Greek a book her senses and, quivering as she still was, tried to waken
connecting the god's worship with Menecheres (Men- me. She found me rid of the fever and streaming with
kaura, the Mycerinus of Herodotus: of the fourth sweat, so she gave glory to the god for his epiphany and
dynasty), supposed to have been found by Nectanebus, wiped the sweat off me and brought me to myself. She
the last independent ruler of Egypt and a popular would fain have told me ofthe god's miraculous goodness,
figure in legend. This book was said to have been but 1 spoke first and told her all: for a dream had revealed
a factor in causing the god to be greatly revered (2g f.). to me all that she had seen with her eyes. The pains in
my side ceased and the god gave me yet another remedy
The writer had, however, been hindered by the great-
stilling distress, and I proceeded to proclaim the hene.fits which he
ness ofthe story, 'for it is within the reach of gods alone
had done to me. And when we had again propitiated hirn
and not of mortals, to describe the mighty deeds of the with the sacrifices which were in our power, he, through
gods' (40 f.). As he lingered, fever came upon his the channel of the priest who serves hirn in the life of
mother. She and he went to the god as suppliants, and discipline, asked for the promise made to hirn long ago.
Imouthes appeared to her in a dream and cured her We knew that we had not failed to render what was due
by simple methods, and she and her son sacrificed in in sacrifices and votives but nevertheless hesought his
thankfulness. Then the writer was seized with a sudden favour with them again. But when he frequently sa.id that
pain in the right side and hastened to the helper of his pleasure was not in them, hut in that which had been
D
88 How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 89
previously undertaken, I was bafHed, and with difficulty Now it is of the utmost importance that these
did the divine obligation to write prevail over my dis- miracles were written down in book form. The papyrus
paraging of it. However, as soon as I reeognized, 0 which has just been quoted addrcsscs itsclf to a wide
master, that I was neglecting the divine book, I invoked
public. The story of the "vater-finding professes to
thy providenee and being filled with thy divinity I hurried
be arecord made for archives hut is a copy found
to the inspired task of thy record and I think that I shall
sanetify it, telling in prophetie way thy intention, for in
up country, and there mnst have been others. Its
another book I set forth truly the story of the making of conclusion ,vith the acclamation to Sarapis is most
the universe put in a reasonable way on a physieal theory. significant. An acclamation by those present at a
Through the whole writing I have supplied what was miracle is very common in popular stories of Christian
lacking and removed what was superfluous and I have wonders; thus in apocryphal Acts of Apostles the crowd
told shortly a tale sometimes long, simply a story which is generally exclaims 'Great is the god of the Christians'
eomplicated. Aeeordingly I reckon, Master, that the book (or 'ofPeter', 'of Andrcw', &c.). Such an acclamation
has been eompleted in aeeordanee with thy favour and before an _expected wonder (not fulfill~d) is ascribed
not with my intelligenee; for such a writing suits thy to pa gans in the Confession of St. Cyprian of Antioch.
divinity.... And every Creek tongue shall tell of thy story and But this is an imperative, Do )'OU Sq)', and an imperative
every Creek shall reverence Imouthes the son of Phtha. Come here plural addressed to hearers. In effect i t corresponds to
together, 0 men of good will and virtue, go henee, 0
Laus tibi Christe after the Gospel in the Mass to-day. I t
envious and impious, eome here all ... who having served
presupposes a public wh ich hears such holy stories
the god have gained release from diseases, all who handle
the art of healing, all that will eome as seekers after virtue, recited. This tradition revived in the libelli recording
all that have been prospered with great abundanee of miraculous cures, the composition of which became
blessings, all that have been saved from peril by sea. The usual in the African Church in the time of St. Augus-
power of the god has gone into every place to save. I am about tine; here, however, the libellus was read only once (in
to tell ofhis marvellous epiphanies, and ofmighty blessings one case it was cOlnposed within twenty-fonr hours and
of his power.' read within forty-eight hours of thc event).
In fact we know that such recitation existed. There
Then the story starts and the papyrus soon breaks off. was attached to the cult of Sarapis and Isis a class of
Here a present-day miracle is combined with supposed men called aretalogi, tellers of the god's wonders; we
wonders ofthe past. It should be remarked that, while find them in Egypt at Memphis, and in Delos. Even
the book may have been an adaptation of an Egyptian at the end of thc fifth century A.D. ,\Te find a miracle
text, it may equally be an original composition like claimed for Isis at lVfenouthi, the giving of a child to a
the Dream of N ectanebus in a Leiden papyrus, or the childless man after priestly interpretation ofhis dreams;
literature current under the name of Thrice-greatest the Christian account is that it was the illegitimate
Hermes (that is, Thoth). offspring of a priestess.
9° How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 91
This propaganda is important as an analogy for our Aelian's Concerning Divine Manifestations and Concerning
study ofthe advance ofChristianity and was no doubt Providence, both books being elaborate refutations of
effective; much later the cult ofSt. Cyrus and St. John scepticism by reference to miracle. To this century
of Menouthi was brought to Rome by those who said belongs a papyrus dialogue between a man believing
that they had been healed at their shrine. One feature in oracles and a doubter, in which the argument
ofthe time was a marked credulity. Anything reported appears to have ended in a coup de thiatre. From the
on any authority was to the man of education possible beginning of the next century we have the Heroicus of
and to the man in the street probable or even certain. Philostratus, which describes the conversion by a vine-
The parody of this attitude in Lucian's Lover of Lies is tender devoted to the hero Protesilaus of a Phoe-
not exaggerated. We have only to .look at the letters nician trader who is sceptical but sympathetic (the
of Pliny, and to read his story of the dolphin which vine-tender does it by telling what the hero had done
took a boy to school, or glance at the wri ters known as for hirn and told hirn). The same writer's work on
paradoxographi who told ofmiracles and other unnatural Apollonius of Tyana is a justification by miracle and
history. sanctity of the special position claimed for Apollonius.
The recording of wonders and epi phanies in temple Lives of Pythagoras written under the Empire are
inscriptions was an old Greek practice; we have similar: and Lucian's Alexander is the parody of such
remarked it at Lindos and Epidaurus. It was a matter writing.
also of civic pride: the local historian of Chersonesos The recording of miracles for the benefit of private
on the Black Sea, Syriscus, at the end of the third individuals appears to be confined to A.sclepius, the
century B.C., was thanked by his fellow citizens for Egyptian deities and Christianity, though we find the
having laboriously written an account of the manifes- recoJ.ding ofpunishments for sin (equally wonders) by
tations of the Maiden and read it aloud, and this the Mother goddess in Lydia and by Anaitis and Men
gratitude was immortalized on stone. We know in this at Sardis. At the same time, while a miracle did not
context the acclamations noticed earlier. There is necessarily attract all who saw it to new worship, the
at Panamara in Caria an inscription describing the principle was fully accepted that miracle proved deity.
miracle which defended the shrine from an attack, 'I make you a god in his eyes: I tell of your virtues
probably that of Labienus in 41/0 B.C.; it speaks of the (which can mean virtues or miracles),' says a character
people as shouting loudly, Great is ;:ßus Panamaros. in the Adelphi of Terence (535 f.), and a curious
Furthermore, in and after the Hellenistic period writers papyrus catechism includes, 'What is a god? That
composed general works on such topics, as for instance which is strong. What is a king? He who is equal to
that ofIstrus (about 200 B.C.), Epiphanies of Apollo, and the Divine.'
that of Phylarchus, of about the same date, On the Further, this recording of miracles, expressly so de-
Appearance of Zeus, and in the second century A.D. scribed, is only a special form of the general glorification
92 How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 93
of a dcity before others by hymns and votive offerings The individual's record was primarily directed to thc
and \\'orks of art". Thc hymn told thc world at largc god; it was a transaction between the two of then1.
of thc greatncss of a god. Let us take an illustration But it also had a certain value as visible to the world
from thc third century B.C. Artemidorus of Perga at large. The picturcs o[ those whü had been saved
settled on the island ofThera and put up ~nscriptions from shipwreck by Isis and Sarapis or the Samothra-
to Hecate and Priapus: cian dei ties, the records of those w ho had made
'Artemidorus set up this Heeate, of many names, the taurobolia, the epitaphs which described the religious
light-bringer, honoured by all who dweIl in the land. dignities which the dead man had enjoyed, could all
Artemidorus made these steps as a memorial of the city of excite interest and curiosity and imitation. How this
Thera and stablished a black stone. I, Priapus of Lamp- served a religious purpose is dear from the way
sacus, am come to this city of Thera, bearing imperishable in which the Augustan restoration of older Roman
wealth. I am here as a benefactor and adefender to all religious ways found artistic as well as literary expres-
the citizens and to the strangers who dweIl here.' sion. The reliefs on the Altar of Peace taugh t the same
U nder the Empire there ,,,-as a considerablc production lesson as the Aeneid.
of hymns in verse and prose. The fact that the leading We have discussed the ways in which a cult was
rhetoricians, men who enjoyed a very high standing spread by the obscure activity of scattered individuals.
in the public eye, wrote these hymns no doubt gave We may condude this chapter by considering how one
a certain prestige to the cults thus favoured: it made determined man disseminated a worship in which he
it dear that they \-\-Tere in the fashion. Hymns acquired had a strong personal interest. About the middle ofthe
yet greater significance when they were put in the second century of our era Alexander of Abonutichus,
service of dogma tic religions and expressed their a small city in Paphlagonia, came before the notice of
tenets in a form which could reach the popular intelli- the public in general. He had when young been the
gence: this "vas notably so with gnostic sects and pupil of a doctor who had been a follower of Apollonius
Manichaeism, but is illustrated also by St. Augustine's of Tyana, a famous Neopythagorean and what we
Psalm against the Donatists, in which by the use of a non- should call a prophet. From hirn he learnt, says
literary measure he addressed hirnself to the people. Lucian, magical tricks to aid people in their love-
The religious revival of Augustus was not dogmatic in affairs and in the finding of buried treasure-and no
character; but the Secular HJ'mn of Horace is very doubt some rather more serious religious ideas. Then
definitely didactic. he struck up a partnership with one Cocconas, a writer
Any one who thought he had received favour from of choral songs, and they bought a large tarne serpent,
a deity or wished to show his piety might set up an ~nd decided to found an orade as a means of enriching
inscription or a votive work of art. This was an ancient themselves. They wen t to Chalcedon and buried
custom in Greece and Rome and Egypt and Syria. bronze tablets, stating that in the near future Asdepius
94 How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 95
and his father Apollo with hirn would migrate to as a human being when reinearnated took a new name,
Pontus and settle in Abonutiehus. These tablets were might not Aselepius in this new snaky form?
found and the people of Abonutiehus, who had already Alexander now announeed that from a partieular
a eult of Asclepius, at onee voted to build atempie date the new god would make prophecies. People
and set about digging the foundations. Coeeonas was were to wri te in aseroll wha t they wished to know and
left behind in Chalcedon, eomposing ambiguous pro- to tie it up and seal it. He then took the seraIl into the
pheeies, and there died. Alexander went on first, and haly of holies, summoned by herald and priest those
appeared dressed like Perseus and declaiming an who had presented the serolls, and gave baek the
oracle whieh proclaimed that he was aseion of Perseus serolls sealed as befare, with answers appended. This
and of the blood of Podalirius. A Sibylline propheey involved a little elementary triekery; but everything
of his aetivity was also produeed. was organized, and now Alexander sent abroad men
Thus the stage was set by propheey, a faetor the to ereate rumours among various raees about the
importanee of whieh we shall see in Chapter XIII. oracle and ta tell of his sueeessful predietions. People
Alexander proeeeded to ereate the impression of the then eame from all sides wi th saerifiees and votive
miraeulous by foaming at the mouth and then eon- offerings and liberal gifts for the prophet hirnself.
trived the diseovery of an egg in the temple founda- This is a point ofpeeuliar interest. Undoubtedly the
tions; the idea was spread abroad that a small snake farne ofthe oracle would have spread on its own merits,
whieh emerged was in very truth Asclepius. After a 'but we eannot doubt that the prophet left nothing to
few days he displayed his original large snake, into ehanee and engaged in real propaganda. The good
whieh the baby snake had supposedly grown with eommunieations whieh the roads af the Roman
wondrous speed; i ts head was eoneealed and instead Empire provided and the mutual intelligibility whieh
there was a linen head showing beside his own beard. prevailed within it made sueh work possible and fruit-
The simple folk filed past in wonder. The god had ful. Further, Alexander is said to have polemized
eome in the freshness of young vigour to a world in against the unbelieving attitude of Epieureans. In
whieh the traditional divine figures appeared old and time he won the allegianee of Rutilianus, a Roman of
remote. The news spread, and people from Bithynia, high rank and the governor of Asia, who married the
Galatia, and Thraee poured in and the making of daughter whom Alexander had, as he said, by the
paintings, statues, and eult-images began. The god Moon. The prophet's ambitions rose. He se nt emis-
aequired a new name, Glyeon. A supernatural figure saries to eities throughout the Empire, warning them
eould aequire a new name; aeeording to the late myth against perils of plague and fire and earthquake and
Hippolytus, when restored to life and settled in a fresh promising to them help whieh eould not fail.
existenee at Nemi, was known asVirbius. There is In this we see the widespread desire for direet super-
perhaps some influenee here ofPythagorean ideas; just natural information whieh will be diseussed in the
96 How Eastern Cults travelled How Eastern Cults travelled 97
next chapter. Alexander met other religious needs and which suggests that he was dccply shocked with
also. He established an annual celebration of mys:- what to hirn seemed very successful but very palpable
teries which lasted three days, and enacted the birth fraud.
of Asdepius, the manifestation of Glycon, the union of Better established cults did undoubtedly produce
Podalirius and his own mother, and finally the love of artificial mirades. The incense which at Gnathia
the Moon for himsclf and the birth of their daughter. melted without the application of a flame, thc bowls
In these ceremonies the faithful could see his thigh, of water annually turned into wine at Elis, thc spring
made to look golden, as though he were connected of wine which annually appeared in Dionysiac festivals
with Pythagoras; the exact relation was dedared in in Andros and Teos required manipulation, and what
an orade. In this we see the popularity of the visible may be evidence for the techniquc has bcen found at
showing forth of a sacred story and of the presentation Corinth; and we have reason to believe in thc cxistence
of myth in act. of certain deliberatcly produced supernatural effects in
In due course the prophet died. Some of his Egyptian temples under the Empire, though it is not
associates hoped to succeed hirn, but Rutilianus de- dear that the ingenious devices of Heran to cause
cided that the post ofprophetmustremainAlexander's. a shrine to open when fire was lit for sacrifice, elose
The cult ofGlycon remained in honour at Abonutichus, when it was extinguished, to make a trumpet sound
as we learn from the presence ofthe man-headed snake when the temple doors were opened, and so forth were
on its coins till n1inting ceased; we have evidence at in use. Even in dealing wi th these phenomena we
Nicomedia also and a dedication at Apulum in Illyria. must beware of being over free with charges of
In this way a cult, which blended old and new ideas in deliberate bad faith. Ancient Egyptian magic and
a skilful manner and knew how to employ methods of ritual rested on the assumption that material objects
publicity, won an enduring position in the world of its and persans could be given a new and supernatural
time. The will to accept and, if not quit~ in our sense, content and significance: and the Dionysiac wonders
to believe was strong. were dramatic ceremonies, presenting under con-
This is a perfect example of the methods by which ditions of time and space what the god and his ideal
a cult could be commended to the attention of the followers were thought to have done in thc early days.
public. Alexander certainly has many of the marks of In any case men could and can adopt a position in
a charlatan, although a certain caution is needed in which they never allow themselves to ask just what
considering what Lucian wrote, for Lucian was deeply they mean by what they are doing.
out of sympathy with popular religion and in the Further we may apply the old legal test, Cui bono?
tradition of ancient invective same very unpleasant The priests of Isis, as also the mendicant servants
charges were conventional. Nevertheless, Lucian here ofDea Suria or Cybele, had an interest in the amount
speaks with a depth of feeling which is unusual in hirn of alms which they could coHect, and in the general

1
98 How Eastern Cults travelled
principle, 'Nothing like leather'. But there can be
no doubt of the sincerity of those who recorded the VII
miracles by which they believed themselves to have
THE APPEAL OF THESE CULTS
benefited, or of Aristides or Apuleius.
So in these forms of propaganda we must recognize E have surveyed some of the methods by which
what we should call a religious spirit, even though we
cannot in our sense give the name of a religion to the
W cults and beliefs brough t themselves before the
notice o'findividuals and communities. What were the
things in the service of which it was spent. Religious psychological factors of attraction which caused these
spirit does not need to be deliberately purposeful or methods to bcar frui t ? Difficul t as i t is to ans wer this
dogmatic: in this as in so much else the reasons which question, we must make an attempt. The acceptance
we ourselves give for our actions are often merely of Roman cults by the conquered peoplcs of the West
rationalizations of our conservatism and of our is a simple phenomenon, much more so than the accept-
impulses. ance ofChristianity by natives in modern colonies. There
was little at stake except the use of Roman names in
place ofCeltic, and the Roman name had the authority
given by cultural and political superiority. The accept-
ance ofthe other cults which we have surveyed is more
complicated, and in its development the formative
impulse came largely from the recipients of new cults.
How was this?
Some of thc relevant factors are clear. The con-
quests of Alexander broke old ties and associations, and
created a consequent demand for new groups. We have
seen earlier the attraction of new cults qua new and of
mysteries not tied to a particular place. We must now
consider (I) the picture of the universe which arose,
above all from astrology, (2) the interest in immortality,
(3) an inquisitiveness about the supernatural resulting
in a general increase in the tendency to believe.
(I) Political events had changed the world out of
all recognition. Zeus and Athena had been good
protectors for the citizen of a town which was one of
a number oftowns living as it were in a smalliuminous
100 The Appeal of these Cults The Appeal of these Cults 101
area. But now this little worId was swallowed up sized is tha t now for the first time the man in the street
in the oikoumene, the inhabited worId as known, and found his existence and weIl-being related to cosmic
a vast uncertainty had come into men's lives. This universals. Earlier he had had dealing~ with Zeus and
was no neat little world in which Zeus or the provi- Athena and Artemis, accessible and placable Greeks
dence of the gods saw to it that the just man had a of a larger build. Now there happened to hirn in this
reasonable measure of prosperity and the unjust man sphere something even more revolutionary tha.n t~e
ofpunishmcnt. It might be ruled by a blind Fortune, political transformation of the times, whereby hIS CI~y
or again by an unchangeable Fate written in the stars had been for all practical purposes swallowed up In
or determined by them. This last doctrine, commonly a larger entity. He was und er a universal law. ~he
called astrology, made a great change in the outlook logical inference was that stated by a technical
not merely of the studious bu t also of thc man in the astrologer, Valens Vettius, 'It is impossible for any man
street. In native Creek ideas the stars have their by prayers and sacrifices to overcome what is fixed
influence on weather: the Watchman in the Agamemnon from the beginning and to alter it to his taste; what
teIls how in the course of his duties he has become has been assigned to us will happen without our pray-
familiar with 'those who bring winter and sumn1er to ing for it, what is not fated will not happen for our
mortals, the bright rulers shining in the firmament', prayers' (v. 9). The Emperor Tiberius, says Suetonius
and the natural connexion ofthe moon with birth and ( Tiberius, 69), neglected worshi p as useless in view of
growth is found in earlier Creece as elsewhere; so is the certainty of astrological predestination. That was
a conception of fate, and in philosophers an idea of not a popular attitude: the effective answer was to
naturallaw. But it was reserved for the time of contact make the gods lords of the stars. We find under the
with Babylonian observations and calculations con- Empire not merely a general rise in. the imp~rtance. of
cerning the movements of the heavenly bodies and celestial divinities but also the investlng of AttiS (earher
determinations of the future from their position to a figureconnected with the fruits of the. e~rth) ~ith
accept the system which we call astrology and to find a starry cap on the coins ofPessinus and hIS Invocatlon
a visible embodiment of this fate in the courses of the as 'shepherd of the white stars' in a popular poem of
heavenly bodies. Destructive criticism was levelled at thc second century A.D.
astrology: nevertheless for the plain man it acquired Man was committed to relations with a universal
an axiomatic validity which it retained everywhere order, and he was as we have seen an individual
till the seventeenth century, and which for some it facing it.
still hase lastranger and afraid
The general importance of this change is clear and In a world I never made.
the desire for some sort of deliverance from this deter- A deity who commands his homage must be superior
minist order was natural. What is here to be empha- to this order. So Bel is Fortunae rector, lord ofFortune
102 The Appeal of these Cults The Appeal oJ these Cults 103
and able to change its deerees. We shall meet later the her epitaph represented as saying to hirn that he freed
statement of Isis to Lucius that she ean prolong his her from the allotted fate of death (by initiations).
life beyond the term fixed by Fate. One text deseribing In the first eentury A.D. the educated eommonly
amirade of Sarapis indudes an overruling of Moira, doubted survival, hut the strength of Pliny's protest
Destiny, though not of astral fate, for the disease is indicates that this was not universal, and many feared
transferred to another man born under the same eon- a cold disconsolate shadow life, like that portrayed in
stellation. I t is partieularly notable that the quasi- Odyssey xi, or positive pains and penalties. It was not
eanonieal Praises of Isis and Osiris mentioned earlier a wholly imaginary bogy from which the Epieureans
says, 'I eonquer fate and fate obeys me'. The strength sough t to free mankind. Immortali ty, on the other
of the desire which lies behind these beliefs is shown by hand, sometimes appeared as a sort ofprize to be won.
the regularity with whieh its satisfaction is promised in Christianity was taunted for its appeal to rewards and
the esoteric eeremonies which came into being. The punishments, but the taunt shows that the appeal was
so-called Chaldaic Orades, professedly translated from not wholly ineffective.
Zoroaster and perhaps a product ofthe second eentury Now there wasa demand for more eomprehensive
of our era, promise that theurgoi, practitioners of the promises, for sacraments or faith able to give to the in-
occult rites prescribed in them, do not fall under fate: dividual a new and dignified relation to the dangerous
a Hermetic fragment promises as much to the 'pious': realm outside. The esoteric rites just mentioned illus-
Servius knows of certain 'eonsecrations' which protect trate this best: man wants 'to become possessed of a
men against the attacks of fortune and which unless na ture like i god': i t is so in the promises of magie
taken from them prevent them from dying. in the taurobolium, in the statement (Eph. vi. 12) about
(2) We have seen earlier the attraction at Eleusis the relation of Christians to the Kosmokratores, the
of a guarantee against an uncomfortable hereafter. planetary lords, in the Marcosian sacrament (Irenaeus,
That eontinued to be important: it was elearly i. 14), in the account ofthe transformation ofthe elect
emphasized in Dionysiac private mysteries (and it deseribed in Corpus Hermeticum i and xiii, and in the
must not be forgotten how large apart Dionysiac final prayer of the Asclepius, in Philo's dass of 'men of
symbols play in funerary art under the Empire), in vision', and in his remarks on the prophetie vocation
Mithraism, in Isiac initiations, and in the private of Moses.
magical rites of which we shall speak later. Augustine
'Sinee when the prophetie intelleet has beeome initiated
in his summary of Books VI to X of his City of God
in divine things and a bearer of god, it is like unity, not
(Retractationes, ii. 43) gives as one of his purposes the being fundamentally eommingled with any of those things
refu ta tion of the idea tha t sacrifice to pagan gods was which show communion with duality. He indeed who has
useful beeause of the life tha t there would be after come into elose attaehment to the nature of unity is said
dea th: the wife of Vettius Agorius Praetexta tus is in to have approaehed god by a eloseness of kinship, for
104 The Appeal of these Cults The Appeal of these Cults 105
having left all mortal kinds, he is transmuted into the society of this period as demon-ridden. The pheno-
divine, so that he becomes akin to God and really divine.' menon of possession was known and the practice of
The desire is negative ('Defend me against every exorcism not unfamiliar, and there was a fear of the
superiority of power both of spirit') and positive, and evil eye and ofbewitchment: but superstition provides
it is not limited to any one cult or circle. One of the its remedies, just as apopulace exposed to infectious
really significant things is the popularity of elaborate diseases sometimes develops its immunities, and there
gnostic systems: this is so for instance in Egypt, wherc was a traditional apparatus of amulets and purifica-·
there are such importan t manifesta tions in Coptic, tions which was used by all except the few who held
the special language of a backwa ter. If you reall y a rationalist point of view. Paganism had plenty of
knew how the wheels went round, you could in some deities who were to be feared if you did not take the
measure control their revolutions. right steps to appease them, but paganism knew the
I have spoken of the significance of this idea of Fate right steps to take.
and of desires for some sort of liberation from it. Greece and Rome had not (like Persia, J udaea under
Writers on the rise of Christianity have commonly Persian influences, and Egypt) an existing organized
referred also to adesire for protection against thc celestial opposition, and as we shall see in Chapter XIII,
activity of demons and possession by demons. It is daemones were for them neither good nor bad. The
certain that exorcism was a Christian curative activity anti thesis ofGod and the angels over against daemones
which impressed the popular imagination: that we as necessarily evil was spread by Judaism and Christi-
know from the remarks of Celsus. But Celsus rightly anity, to whom the gods ofthe pagans were devils.
calls attention to the fact that there were other con- (3) We may pass to the factor of religious inquisitive-
temporary exorcisms. The significant thing about ness. This could be casual. Horace, idling in Rome,
Christian exorcism was that it was a deliberate and stood by the soothsayers as one might listen to a
official activity and not, like that of the sons of Scaeva cheapjack hawking his wares (Satires, i. 6, 114). It
at Ephesus, a private trade pursued for profit: in could take a purely speculative and intellectual form,
Christianity it was an activity that was an integral whh an antiquarian or ethnological colour. Thus we
part of a religion. In any case it does not bear on the know ofVarro's great work on the religious antiquities
topic of this chapter, for there are no indications of of the Roman people, Apion's on the symbolic meaning
exorcisms as religious practices of the other riyal faiths, of Egyptian hieroglyphs and rites, Chaeremon's on
exceptJudaism, and the promises ofsecurity made by Egyptian priestly life, Pallas and Eubulus on Persian
Isis and her priest to Lucius say nothing of this. No religion: we possess more popular works drawing on
doubt ifyou were attached to one such cult you looked them, as für instance Plutarch's Isis and Osiris, Creek
to its deity or deities for protection in general. In any (Luestions, and Roman (Luestions and parts of his Table
case it would be wrong to picture Graeco-Roman Talk (which includes remarks on Jewish religious
106 The Appeal oJ these Cults The Appeal oJ these Cults 10 7
customs), and incidental digressions in historical works different names to one deity (which view became
by Posidonius (for instance that on the religious official in Graeco-Egyptian piety), or in the theory that
fanaticism of Eunus) and Julius Caesar and Tacitus the phenomena so studied contained primitive wisdom
(in the Germanz'a, and again in Annals xii. 13 on the veiled in allegory, or in the refinement thereof accord-
Parthian hunter god, in Hist. v on the J ews) , and ing to which there was in most beliefs a superimposition
Nicolaus of Damascus, and Mnaseas of Patara, and of priestcraft and false subtlety on this wisdom.
again in poetry (as for instance Lucan's treatment of But the religious curiosity of the time was not
Celtic religion). Josephus hoped for and perhaps had satisfied with these intellectualist answers. There is a
Gentile readers for his Jewish Antiquities, and certainly widelyattested desire for information coming straight
directed his ReJoinder to Apion to a Gentile public. We from the sanctuary and even from the god, for en-
know again the interest in the exotic as such: examples lightenment in its fullest sense. A~ excellent illus-
are Nero's interest in the Persian rites which Tiridates tration by parody is the opening of the Menippus of
brough t from Armenia and his passing devotion to an Lucian. The Cynic hero professes to have come back
image of the Syrian goddess, and the fashion which from the underworld. He had been brought up on
in Pliny's time made rings with representations of the popular myths, and had then found them at
Harpocrates common, and again the questions which variance with the ideas of right and wrong contained
Lucan makes Julius Caesar address to the aged in the laws. Next he had gone to philosophers and
Egyptian priest (x. 176 ff.), and the remarks made by found them at variance with one another and acting
Statius to a friend about to sail to Egypt (Siluae, iii. in a manner diametrically opposed to their principles.
2, 107). I t is an invocation to Isis: So he decided to journey to BabyIon and there to
'Und er thy protection let hirn learn whence comes the consult one of the Magi, the disciples and successors
fruitful freedom of the marshy Nile, why the shallows of Zoroaster, 'having heard that \vith certain speIls
subside and the bank marked with mud laid by Attic and ri tes they could open the gates of Hades and take
swallows res trains the waters, why Memphis is envious, or in whom they would and bring hirn back': there he
why the shore of Therapnaean Canopus is sportive, why could consult Teiresias. There follows a parody ofthe
the Doorkeeper of Lethe holds the altars of Pharos: why ceremonial required and an account of the journey
common animals are on a par with the great gods: what and of the return by way of the sanctuary of Tro-
altars the long-lived phoenix prepares for itself: what phonius at Lebadea. The central idea of consulting
fields Apis, adored by eager shepherds, deigns to inhabit, Teiresias goes back to the Odyssey, and its humorous
or in what eddy ofthe Nile he lays hirn.'
use no doubt to Menippus (another parody is found
The learned interest in alien belief and practice might in Horace, Satires, ii. 5). But the opening is most
be detached: or it might assurne a theological tone, in significan t.
the common view that all worships were directed under As has been often observed, it is extraordinarily like
108 The Appeal of these Cults The Appeal of these Cults lOg

the beginning of the Christian romance called the chose Asclepius in spite of the priest's reluctance.
Clementine Homilies. There Clement is represented Meanwhile the priest had prepared a 'house'. Thes-
as (like Justin) so distressed by puzzling on death and salus sat in front ofthe god's throne and the priest went
on the nature and origin of the world that he grew out and shut hirn in. Immediately the god appeared
pale and was ted away, but could not keep his mind alone to him alone in marvellous beauty, lifted his right
off these topics. Having visited in vain the schools of hand and greeted hirn with these words, 'Blessed
the philosophers, he decided to go to Egypt and seek Thessalus, who art already honoured by God and wilt
a Magian who could bring up a soul from Hades to in the future be revered by men as a god when thy
setde the question of immortali ty. Circumstances pu t success is kno\vn; ask what thou willest; gladly will
hirn in the way of Barnabas and salvation. There is I grant thee all'. Thessalus, who had smuggled in
a parallel of extraordinary interest. Prefixed to an paper, asked why he had obtained no success with
astrological work on botany is a letter of Thessalus to Nechepso's recipes on the powers of plants, and heard
the Emperor (probably of the famous doctor and that Nechepso gave them not from divine revelation
ast:ologer Thessalus of Tralles to N erD or Claudius). but from his knowledge, excellent in itself: what he did
ThlS letter relates how the author after receiving his not know was when and where they should be gathered.
schooling in Asia Minor went to Alexandria and there These facts were now revealed by Asclepius and taken
pursued his studies. He was unsuccessful in his attempt down by Thessalus.
to use a (su pposed) wri ting of King N echepso and The general schema is found in a number of other
came to adespair which seemed to hirn harder than parallels. One is afforded by the Rabbinic type of
death. So he went into the interior of Egypt, his soul true proselytes, J oshua, N aaman, and Rahab, who go
prophesying to hirn that he would have converse with through all heathen cults and schools without finding
the gods. He continually held up his hands to heaven peace, but they find rest and satisfaction in the haven
in prayer that there might be vouchsafed to hirn by of the Bible and the Prophets, because the sacred Word
a ~ision in sleep or by divine inspiration something alone can ensure peace of soul and kno,vledge of God.
WhlCh would send hirn back in exul ta ti on to Alexandria Here we have a striking parallel to what Augustine
and his homeland. Everywhere he asked if there was said he found. Another is an inscription in the temple
anything of magic force left. Finally, when he found of Mandulis, the solar deity at Talmis (Kalabscheh)
an honourable old priest who said that he would show in Upper Egypt, giving a visitor's re cord of his
visions.in a dish (ofwater), he fell at this man's feet and expenence:
wept bitterly till he was promised a revelation. After '0 ray-shooting lord Mandulis, having seen certain
a three days' fast by both of them (which seemed to radiant signs of thee I pondered on them and was busied
Thessalus to last for years) the priest gave hirn the therewith, wishing to know accurately whether thou art the
choice of intercourse with a spirit or with a gode He Sun-god. I made myself astranger to all vice and all
110 The Appeal of these Cults The Appeal of these Cults 1I I

godlessness, was chaste for a considerable period, and made the kernel of the contents of our magie papyri. And
an incense offering for holy piety. I saw thee and found we may recall I Cor. xiii. 2, 'though I understand all
rest. Thou didst grant my prayer and didst show thyself secrets and have all gnosis'.
to me, going in thy golden boat (?) through the heaven, The most authoritative guidance comes direct from
when, washing in the holy water of immortality, thou the gods, as to Nechepso or Thessalus or the writer of
appearest anew. Thou camest making thy rising in due
the Revelaticn or Hermas or the Katochoi: ecstasy is
season, giving breath and great power to thy image and
another way. Again, we may turn to the orades.
temple. There I knew thee, Mandulis, to be the Sun, the
all-seeing master, king of all, almighty Eternity. 0 happy
Their function had earlier been limited to the answer-
people that dweIl in the city beloved by the Sun Mandulis, ing of practical questions and to the giving of advice
even holy Talmis, which is under the sceptre of fair-haired on ritual and religious institutions. But in the third
Isis of the countless namcs.' century Porphyry as a young man wrote a work On
the Philosophy to be drawnfrom Oracles, giving orades from
This is wri tten in vulgar Greek, and proves the pene- Apollo of Claros and shrines of Hecate which not
tration of such ideas into popular cirdes. A third is merely prescribed cultus but also defined the nature
the Confession of St. Cyprian of Antioch, a Christian of god and asserted the existence of one Supreme
romance not later than the fifth century A.D. recording Being who is Eternity (Aion), the ordinary gods of
the conversion of a supposed magician. He recounts paganism being his 'angels' : another orade saying that
his experiences. His parents wished hirn to know the the Supreme Being is lao (that is jehovah), identified
occult virtues of all things, so he, passed through all with Hades, Zeus, He1ios, is quoted by Cornelius
available initiations, including a private initiation on Labeo, who probably belongs to the early part of the
Mt. Olympus (probably invented), and studied magie same century. Now, while these oracles have a per-
with the experts of various lands. A familiar and haps suspicious resemblance to a literary work probably
popular motif is thus elaborated with a wealth of of the second century, the Chaldaic Orades, which
detaillargely drawn from the writer's imagination. answered a similar need and became a holy book to
Such a re1igious quest was often no doubt areal later Neoplatonism, the connexion of so me at least
experience, as for justin Martyr and for St. Augustine. of the supposed Clarian utterances with Claros is
The Thessalus letter is of peculiar importance, since rendered very probable by the dedications To the gods
it takes back the attitude and the literary form to the and goddesses in accordance with the interpretation of the
first century A.D. lt may seem surpri,sing to find these Clarian oracle found on the Roman wall in England,
ideas coming from a doctor of eminence, but after all at Nora in Sardinia, in Dalmatia, and in North Africa.
the work of Pamphilus on herbs, as we know from Apollo had apparently ordered this universalizing
Galen, used Hermetic revelations. The first century piety. What is of particular importance for us is that
A.D. is, further, the century back to which we can trace the inscription at Nora is on grounds of lettering
112 The Appeal oJ these Cults The Appeal oJ these Cults 113

ascribed to the first century A.D. If this is trustworthy, Further, . men could and did turn to mysteries for
the orade's interest in theological questions goes back enlightenment. This does not to us appear justified by
to that time, to the age when Germanicus on his visit the facts. Aristotle said that those being initiated \verc
to the East turned aside to visit it; and we have another not to learn something bu t to go through an experience
indication of this attitude then. But the orades can and to be put into astate of mind. It has been
hardly have counted for much in that age as answering remarked earlier that what an initiate carried away
man's questions. Cicero speaks of the decay of Delphi, was the impression made by the liturgy: in interpreta-
Lucan speaks of its silence. This may be regarded as tion he had a wide field left to hirnself. N ow the
rhetorical exaggeration, but the treatise of Plutarch commonplace that we find in a religion what we bring
On the Decay 01 the Oracles, which is of real weight to it applies here also. There is a special cause operant
in view of Plutarch's connexion with Delphi and the in our period, which is the conviction that the various
priesthood which he held there, bears witness to the mysteries were founded very early by prophets of deep
reality of the dedine. Further, Maximus of Tyre, wisdom: Orpheus, Musaeus, and the other creators
writing in the second half of the second century A.D., of rite and legend were philosophers, using symbols
says: 'Would that there were an orade of Zeus or suited to a humanity for which pure truth
Apollo not giving obscure or ambiguous answers! ... sears too much
let Apollo of Delphi give me one dear answer on the The sense of conscious creatures to be borne.
subject of Zeus, or let Zeus give it hirnself!' It is hard
to believe that theological orades were then widely The idea is strange to us, to whom the past is something
curren t, al though in the second cen tury some orades interesting and in respects perhaps worthy ofimitation,
were rising in importance, as we see from the sudden but essentially the past, for to us the notion of progress
emergence of the oracular shrine of Glykon at Abonu- is axiomatic. To the ancients it was not so: individual
tichus in Pontus with Alexander as its prophet, and philosophers held such views, but their ideas did not
the record by Nearchus of his pilgrimage to Libya command general sympathy. Most men \vere ready to
'where Ammon gives orades to all men'. I t is not accept the concept of the wisdom of the past and many
surprising that Claros rather than Delphi should held that what we call progress was in fact decline from
benefit from this revival of interest. There are fashions a Golden Age of noble simplicity. The political ideals
in religion as in everything else. Again men might of antiquity are static constitutions with careful safe-
turn to the individual with supernatural gifts. Philo- guards against change. The fundamental difference
demus, a contemporary of Cicero's, says of the masses, lies in certain facts. First, the geographical horizon had
'wherefore they think that not the advice of the sage not widened as ours haSe There was not between
but all the injunctions of the men called divine should Plutarch and Solon the gap which there is between us
be received'. and Dr. J ohnson (to Claudian, for instance, the typical
114 The Appeal oJ these Cults The Appeal oJ these Cults 115
globe-trotter is the "man who go es to farthest Spain). years since in my first days at Oca in a public discourse on
Secondly, the advances of experimental science had the majesty of Aesculapius I made thc same declaration
not really changed the outlook even ofspeculative men and recorded all the rites known to me. That speech is
and had not seemed to make a new world. Thirdly, very weIl known; it is read commonly; it was not so much
my eloquence as the mention of Acsculapius which made
at all times the common goal of Creek thinkers was
it dear to the pious men of Oea.'
a simple key to the understanding of phenomena. The
generalization was more dignified than the individual That is it, studio ueri, the motive pretended by Menip-
fact, and in the Hellenistic age the philosophie centre pus, described by Clement and Cyprian in the
of interest became primarily ethical. Ancient specu- romances ; and Apuleius was and claimed to be a
lation never lost the conviction that there was a philosoph er. This was no doubt one of the motives of
straightforward explanation of the universe. the other enthusiastic pagans who took initiation after
Men turned then to the mysteries. Up to a point initiation, like Julian, of whom Libanius says that he
they c.ould do this by reading books and theorizing, 'consorted with daimones in countless rites (teletai) ' , or
like Plutarch (though he had been initiated in Creek Vettius Agorius Praetextatus, whose wife says to hirn
mysteries), or like the au thor of the N aassene theology in his epitaph, 'Thou didst witness my initiation in all
preserved by Hippolytus. Logically, on the theory that mysteries' .
the various divine names belonged to one unity, one Such a man turned to the normal civic and private
mystery might suffice. But initiates were bound to mysteries of the time and was initiated in some or all
secrecy and what was divulged was not the whole story. ofthem. What he found we do not often kno\v: but it
So if a man was to get to the heart of the matter he was probably for the most part ideas which he already
must be initiated in as many mysteries as possible. had of the nature of the soul and its hope of bliss and
Thus Apuleius in his defence against acharge of magie of the symbolic expression of natural processes, and
says (eh. 55): he gained a sense of intimate and special personal
relationship to the universe and the spiritual force~
'In Greece I took part in very many initiations. I keep underlying its operations. The interpretation of mys-
carefully certain symbols and memorials of them handed teries as veiling fundamen tal tru th we know from
to me by the priests. What I say is nothing unusual or
Plutarch, and we find strikingly set out in a document
unknown. Those of you present who are initiated in the
preserved in Hippolytus, Refutation of alt Heresies, v, and
rites only of Father Liber, for instance, know what you
keep concealed at horne and worship far from all profane professing to give the views of a Christian sect called
persons. But I, as I have said, learnt worship on worship, the Naassenes. This document takes the form of an
rites beyond number, and various ceremonies in my zealfor exegesis of a hymn to Attis sung in theatres by men
truth and in my dutifulness to the gods. This is no tale put who know not what they do say. It expounds the
together to serve the moment: it is something like three content of various legends on the first man, throws
116 The Appeal of these Cults The Appeal of these Cults 1 17
light on the tripie nature of the soul from 'Assyrian a share in a better and happier life?' The criticism
mysteries' (the cult legend of Adonis), and refers to is to some extent a Jewish commonplace against
Phrygian, Egyptian, and Greek mysteries, the Phrygian mysteries, but fits this type weIl. As instances of it we
and the Greek both giving the concept of abisexual may adduce (a) the Chaldaic Oracles, a work in Greek
Hcavenly Man-all in this style. What is particularly hexameters supposedly translated from Zoroaster, out-
to be noted is that it does not confine itself to matter lining a theology of the sanctity of fire and the soul' s
which we might cxpect it to draw from learned books ascent to Heaven, and prescribing private cultus
on the mysteries or from any literature which respected and private mysteries of Hecate (dated on general
thc discipline of silence; at least this is true of Eleusis, grounds in the second cen tury of our era); (b ) the
for the solemn and secret act of the holding up of the piety represented by parts of the so-called Her-
corn ear and the hierophant's cry are described. Here metic literature (supposedly translated from Thoth,
this view is combined with a symbolical interpretation an Egyptian god called by their writers 'Thrice-
of Je\vish and Christian texts used just as in Philo or greatest Hermes') . Much of it is nothing but the
in Clement of Alexandria. commonplace of Hellenistic philosophy put in this
Demand creates supply, and this demand was met authoritative form, and unconnected with any cultus.
by the rise of private mysteries. We have seen earlier But the first tractate of our-probably fortuitous-
the popularity of Orphic rites and their continued collection, the so-called Poimandres, while saying no-
cxistence (p. 26): we have seen also the popularity of thing of sacrament or church, records a prophetie
private Dionysiac rites, and we may remark here on message of salvation which could have produced a
the rise ofNeopythagorean societies in the first century community (pp. 3f.). In tractate IV there is a meta-
B.C., for these also were really cult-sodalities. Here lies phorical baptism, in XIII a rebirth by auto-suggestion:
one of the roots of the vogue of the costly individual at the end of the Asclepius, another work from this
initiations in templ~s of Oriental gods in the world at school, there is a 'spiritual sacrifice' and we find
large. From the same root came also private mysteries specified times of prayer and specified forms of prayer
celebrated in private houses (as we saw the Egyptian and praise, one of which (from the end of the Poi-
cults start at Delos, and as Mithraism no doubt started; mandres) passed into a Christian collection of prayers
it remained a cult 'on private soil') or lonely spots. by the end of the third century and a gnostic gern,
Philo in his polemic against mystery devotees asks, another into a magical papyrus. Whether genuine
'Why, 0 initiates, if these things are fine and useful, communities were or were not formed, we have here
do you shut yourselves up in deep darkness and do something doing the work of a sect; the mode of
good to three or four only when you could do it to all operation would be that described by St. Augustine,
mankind by setting the source ofbenefit in the market- for from one loving heart another is kindled. Further , we
place, in order that all might be able freely to obtain have, in the tractates named, a feeling of otherness from
118 The Appeal of these Cults The Appeal of these Cults 119
the world and a concept of conversion. The latter Further, the setting in which we find them indicates
bears a relation to the analogies from philosophy to thay they were used by popular circles, and this is
which we co me in a later chapter: the former is very confirmed by vernacular Coptic works of Christian
striking. The Asclepius says (22), 'There are not many, gnostic sects in Egypt, such as the Pistis Sophia. We
or rather there are very few who can be called truly may recall 2 Tim. iii. 6 f. (quoted by Origen, Contra
religious, so tha t even in the world they could be Celsum, vi. 24, apropos ofthe Ophites), 'menwhoworm
counted'. Corpus xiii says: 'I have become ready and their way into houses and captivate women filledwith
have manfully turned my soul from the deceitfulness sins, led about by various desires, always learning and
of the world.' never able to come to a recognition of truth'.
(c) Further indications of the genesis of private The memory of these gnostic sects reminds us of
channels of grace and illumination are afforded by our an important fact: their desire for information had a
Greek magic papyri. They are texts found on papyrus, strongly practical side, the safety of the soul hereafter.
dating from the second century A.D. to the fifth, but Some sort of passport for the. after life was a common
for the most part from the late third to the early fifth. thing (Orphic and Egyptian paralleIs occur at once).
They are collections of recipes mainly for the attain- But the astrological scheme of the universe, if coupled
ment of practical objects and above all-for success in with Jewish or Christian ideas of a fall of man, intro-
love, the harming of one's enemies, and the curing duced new terrors. How is the animula uagula blandula
of ailments, and so far correspond to similar texts in to get past? Hence the complicated diagram of the
Demotic and Coptic, with which they are combined. Ophites. The very difficulty (as we see it) ofvisualizing
We must regard them as the working copies of prac- the details of these schemes probably appeared to
tical magicians: in fact a number of them almost indicate their inspiration.
certainly belong to a single ancient library. To such To resurne, curiosi ty was widespread-an eagerness
an expert the private man turned for a. speIl as he to penetrate the mysteries of the universe. The aim of
needed it, and it may be remarked that the texts this curiosity, whether pagan or Christian, is gnosis,
contain numerous indications of the comparatively special knowledge ofthe nature ofthings giving to man
humble character of the clientele. The surprising special privileges here and hereafter. Piety will give
thing is the presence in these of methods of securing you knowledge. This is the attitude of those who
less trivial advantages, as for instance, personal intro- trusted cults rather than speculation. The harder
duction to the Sun-god and immortalization. These think.ers held the opposite proposition, which we find
texts indicate what are in effect private mysteries, in Hellenistic philosophy, that knowledge, and above
and they have the characteristic features of the official all knowledge of God, is or produces piety: that is to
mysteries of the time, rebirth, the guarantee of the say, you cannot have a right attitude to the super-
hereafter, the intimate personal relation to deity. natural unless you are in the way of right thinking.
E
120 The Appeal of these Gults The Appeal of these Gults 121

This can be mystical, as in Plutarch's Theology is the which was not common. Further, the rise of Rome to
goal of philosophy, but it can· be quite hard and intel- power set higher and high er values on practical gifts,
lectual. F ew books are more unemotional than the on the administration of things as they were rather
Summary of Creek Theology by Cornu tus: for him the than on the interpretation of things. As the seope of
gods are simply natural forces, and their qualities philosophy narrowed till it became almost entirely
and attributes explicable either thence or as a disease ethieal, it naturally tended to use religious sanctions
of language. Yet Cornutus states his purpose thus and, though the range of its influence inereased, it
(ch. 35): beeame less and less purely intelleetual and more and
'Concerning these things and the service of the gods and more often shallow. The generali ty of men had of
all that is fitly done in their honour in accordance with course never risen to the level of philosophie though t:
ancestral custom you will receive the perfect explanation. the eontemporaries of Soerates, though they could
It is only so that the young are led to piety and not to laugh with him at the Birds, could fall into a frenzy of
superstition and are taught to sacrifice and pray and swear panic over the mutilation of the statue of Hermes.
correctly at the right times and in the suitable order.' What mattered now was that the salt ofthe earth had
The con trast of these two a tti tudes shows to us a very lost its savour, that faith in the intelleet was nearly
significant development. From the fifth century B.G. gone. Philosophy eould not make windows in heaven.
to the end ofthe first century A.D. Greek and Roman Could religion?
thinkers had for the most part maintained a cool
respect towards religious tradition, regarding it as
something which was to be retained bu t was in
need of interpretation, sometimes drastic interpreta-
tion. They did not, however, regard it as a source of
enlightenment. It was for them a satisfaction, at least a
useful weapon in discussion and in the spreading of their
tenets, to be able to read those tenets into it. But,
Pythagoreans apart, they could not pretend to them-
selves that they '\vere drawing from it tenets or a way
of life. This now changed, not of course abruptly or
completely, but yet visibly. The path of the intellect,
though it had so often seemed promising, was not
le~ding to sure resul ts; the various keys used to unlock
the secrets of the universe never quite fitted the lock;
and academic suspense called for a mental austerity
The Success oJ these Cults in the Roman Empire 12 3
with the first. The ,third was more diverse. Many of
VIII the poets and writers who belonged to it enjoyed the
THE SUCCESS OF THESE CULTS IN patronage of members of the first and what ma~ be
THE ROMAN EMPIRE called a status as temporary gentlemen: they vOlced
.WEcultshavefromnowthesurveyed the processes by which
hellenized East made their way
in general the attitudes which commended them-
selves to their patrons. Some ofthem, and some ofthe
other members of their class, came from the Italian
through the Roman world and the needs which they countryside and retained a feeling for its gods and rites
satisfied; and we have also noted how some of them together wi th a strength ofnational emotion which made
passed into the official body of State cults in Rome it easy for them to embrace eagerly Roman tradition.
itself. We must now turn to the most difficult question Mariymembers ofthe third dass,however, wereLevan-
-the measure of success obtained by these incomers, tine in tempere The Capitoline gods meant nothing
how widely they established themselves, and how great to -them, not even the patriotic emotion which they
an ascefldancy they obtained over men's minds in inspired in sceptical senators. They worshipped Isis
the period in which Christianity was spreading. Our and the Syrian goddess and were so lacking in any
answer is of course condi tioned by the limi ta tions of feeling of Roman propriety as to erect shrines to their
our material, which is at its fullest, first, from the favourite deities on the Capitol, which was like holding a
Antonine period to the middle ofthe third century A.D., Salvation Army meeting in the square before St. Peter's.
and secondly, for the fourth century. Certain con- Even they, however, would assurne Roman modes of
clusions do, however, emerge clearly. expression and fashion in religion, if they rose in society.
In the last century of the Roman Republic society Literature then, as at most times till the eighteenth
fell into three classes-the ruling class, represented by century, depended on patronage. This could be
the Senate and composed ofthose who had held public afforded by rich parvenus, like Epaphroditus, to whom
office, nobility belonging to those who could show Josephus dedicated his Jewish Antiquities and his work
a pedigree of such holding; the financial dass of free- Against Apion, but it came in general from the ruling
born Romans who were called the Knights; and the class and from those who had money but not standing
third dass which comprised the rest, induding doctors, and aped the ways and preferences of their betters. In
architects, poets (unless offamily), and hucksters alike. the Empire fashion spread swiftly downward and the
The first had those prejudices which humanity usually views of the aristocracy have domina ted the literature
dignifies with the name of principles; they stood for which survives, and without doubt dominated most of
the maintenance of Roman ways and of a conserva- the far larger literature which has perished. There
tive nationalism. The feelings of the second are less were no righteous poor, no critics of society except the
weIl known to us, but their natural tendency was to go philosophers, and they, too, had and needed backers.
12 4 The Success of these Cults in the Roman Empire 12 5

Augustus, when he became master of the world, set Down to the death of Nero the old senatorial dass
hirns elf to restore the outward and visible forms of the retained its prestige. Rich freedmen like Pallas and
old order and to seek for them the sympathy of all fortunate soldiers like Sejanus had much ofthe effective
dass es of society by the magnificence of the restored power: but appearances were as they bad been. When
temples, by the appeal to the eye and to the heart Claudius planned his expedition to Britain in 43 the
of the Secular Games, and by the persuasive power troops were loath to leave Gaul and the world which
of literary propaganda. He had the governing ranks they knew. The Imperial freedman Narcissus was sent
behind hirn. This was a natural consequence of their to the camp and tried to address the troops, but they
tradition and is illustrated by the so-called Campana mocked at hirn, saying, '10 Saturnalia,' toindicate that
reliefs (plaques used in early Imperial times to adorn they regarded hirn as a slave, and straightway followed
the ceilings and walls of houses and graves in Rome their commander .Aulus Plautius. After 70 we see a
and other I talian cities) which show throughout only great change.
Greek mythologie al and ritual subjects, the occasional The old senatorial nobility was now greatly reduced
scenes from Egyptian cultus being merely curiosities, in numbers or financially weakened and continued to
like the Egyptian landscapes in contemporary art or dedine, the equestrian dass was in many ways rising in
Chinese landscapes in the eighteenth century.Oriental importance, and Senate and knights alike were largely
religious subjects are very infrequent also in the recruited from self-made men of the municipalities and
Arretine pottery used by the poor, but it would not the Latinized provinces. Vespasian was of this Italian
appear that Augustus succeeded in changing materially stock and his regime introduced a bourgeois economy,
the attitude of the third class. Tibullus, Propertius, and as both Pliny the elder and Tacitus teach uso These
Ovid all bear witness to the popularity of Isis in the men, though they might become more conservative
demi-monde, and the incident of Paulina in A.D. 19 than the conservatives (as, for instance, Tacitus did),
(p. 1 53) shows this goddess as firmly accepted in eques- were less influenced by traditional Roman aristocratic
trian cirdes, and illustrates once more the official feelings of superiority to the worships of subject races.
attitude of discouraging alien cults whenever trouble- The mass of dwellers in Rome was no more cosmo-
some. Caligula, indeed, gave to Isis her first public politan in the second century than in the first, in fact
temple, and under hirn the dramatic festival of Osiris probably more Romanized: but the tone ofsociety was
was established in Rome, but his conduct hangs set by the ruling dass and the composition of this had
together with his notable contempt for the established changed.
tradition and did not raise the general standing of the It is therefore not surprising that the Flavian period
Egyptian deities in Rome. The enlargement of the saw a rise in the importance of the Egyptian gods.
worship of Cybele under Claudius was, as we have They remain outside the official city boundary, but
seen, done in a Roman way. appear on Roman coins in 71 and 73, and for the first
126 The Success of these Cults in the Roman Emptre 12 7

time on the coins of Alexandria (which had an official Ofcourse, conservativefeeling did not whollydisappear:
character) Sarapis is called Zeus Sarapis. Domitian it is notable that, in the age of Phlegon's collection of
both rebuilt the sanctuary of 1sis and Sarapis in the mirades, Suetonius describes Domitian's escape in
Campus Martius after a fire, and ordered two obelisks the dress of an 1siac ministrant as 'among the petty
to be sent from Egypt to atempie of 1sis built at sacrificers of a vain superstition', interque sacrificulos
Beneventum in the eighth year of his rule (A.D. 88). uanae (so late MSS.; earlier uariae) superstitioizis (eh. I),
Vespasian had received help in Egypt from the priest- andJuvenal, vi. SI I ff., speaks with bitter contempt of
hood: the miracles performed by hirn in the Sarapeum women's superstition and teIls with emphasis of their
at Alexandria represent an adaptation of religious credulous submission to the representatives of Bellona,
propaganda to his support, and Domitian had escaped Cybele, 1sis, .and Judaism. 1t is remarkable also that
the sack of the Capitol in the dress of an 1siac priest. the dedications of veterans leaving the equites singulares
The main colour of official religion is unchanged and in Rome (a body recruited from the Rhine and Danube
Roman: in fact the most notable deity in Domitian's provinces) between A.D. I 18 and 158 are directed only
coinage is Minerva, but the alien element has now such to the old Roman deities and to their native gods, and
recognition as would have seemed impossible under that among the divine names given to ships in the
Augustus. Statius speaks respectfully of1sis and Cybele, Roman N avy .1sis is the only one of Oriental origin,
and knows not merely the name of Mithras but the and she, as protectress of the sea, could hardly be
well-known scene of the god slaying the bull, which he ignored. Further, Hadrian was intensely unpopular
mentions with the emphasis given by its being the with the senatorial class. Still, there is an unmistakable
last line of the book (Thebaid, i. 720). rise in the importance of these cults from 70 to 134, and
Hadrian's accession, as we know above all from art, the Antonine age is the age of Apuleius and Aristides
meant a great emphasis on Greek fashions, and these and that in which our taurobolic inscriptions begin
induded the hellenized Egyptian cults (just as the and the full festival of Cybele is attested at Rome, and
Emperor's villa at Tibur included a Canopus). He had curious.local types emerge on the coinage of Alex-
in his entourage an Egyptian prophet, Pachrates, and andria.
the death of his favourite Antinous was followed by By the Antonine age the trend of social change has
a deification in Egypt which was related to the local had time to bear full frui t. The governing dass is now
concepts that a man could be immortalized by drown- recruited from the whole Empire, East and West alike:
ing in the Nile. Sarapis now appears on Alexandrian we find men born in the province of Asia holding time-
coins in a type which has attributes of other gods also. honoured priesthood~ in Rome itself. The mood of the
Again, aseries of coins (possibly issued after Hadrian's time is represented by the two works of Aelian men-
death) shows the cult types, some hellenized types of tioned above (p. 91): belief in the gods is in them
Oriental deities, of the cities visited by theEmperor. demonstrated by miracles and not least by malignant
128 The Success of these Cults in the Roman Emptre 12 9

defamation ofEpicurus and Epicureans and by legends centre in Syria, and till her death, which followed
relating how heaven's hand had fallen heavily on them. quicklyon Caracalla's, occupied a dominating posi-
Lucian and Celsus raised their voices on the other side, tion in intellectual society. Philostratus claims to have
and uttered their contempt of mythology and foreign received from her the memoirs of Damis on Apollo-
gods and rite and miracle, but there is in their works nius of Tyana, and certainly enjoyed her patronage.
a very clear note of loneliness. The majority, even of Caracalla built a shrine forApollonius. vVhat Philo-
philosophers, had chosen to walk by the. light of un- stratus offers is a paganism interpreted by philosophy
reason. Marcus Aurelius hirnself illustrates the tran- and approximating to a religious system. In this Life,
sition. His fundamental attitude to the universe is the and in the Heroicus (p. 91 above), there is a clear rise
old heroie Stoic poise, and yet he thanks the gods for in the tension of piety: this appears again in the
dream revelations which relieved hirn ofblood-spitting soldier' s creed from Carvoran, to which we shall come
and giddiness (i. 17. 20), and in obedience to an oracle (p. 13 6). Under Septimius there is no plain indication
from Abonutichus threw two livelionsintothe Danube. of Orientalization in official worship, and there are no
Whether we do or do not believe the story that at the clearly Oriental religious types on his coinage. He
outbreak of the war with the Marcomanni he sum- built atempIe to the African Liber and Hereules in
moned priests from all sides and performed foreign Rome, but they were the gods ofhis native Africa, and
rites in Rome, there is a queer sign of the times in in 2 0 4 he celebrated Secular Games in accordance with
a coin with the legend Relig(io) Aug(usta) and a ancient precedent. Caracalla, on the contrary, built
representation of atempIe of an Egyptian deity. His atempIe of Sarapis in the Quirinal and showed such
successor, Commodus, was devoted to the rites of Isis devotion to this worship as to be called philosarapis,
and Mithras. lover of Sarapis, and Elagabalus in his brief speIl of
The next landmark is the Severan dynasty, which power transported the black stone of Emesa (the god
ruled from 193 to 235. Hitherto, although Imperial Elagabal) to a temple on the Palatine, transferred
rule ,vas in effect absolutist and in reality rested on the thither what he believed to be the palladium from the
army, both facts were for the most part weIl shrouded temple of Vesta, and set his fetish at the head of the
in legal fiction. The fiction does not disappear, but it Roman pantheon.
is now much less in evidence. Even earlier we have Although there is at least one reflection in military
remarked on the influence exercised by an emperor's dedica tions of this violent policy, i t does not represen t
personal tastes, and that is very clear in this period. Roman feeling at the time, and it was followed by
The fact of special importance is the temperament of a conservative reaction. Cassius Dio, whose boyhood
Iulia Domna, wife of Septimius Severus, mother of had been spent under the very different rule ofMarcus
Caracalla, great-aunt of Elagabalus and of Severus Aurelius, though no rationalist and no despiser of
Alexander. She was born at Emesa, a famous religious dreams and portents, speaks with bitter hostility of
13 0 The Success of these Cults in the Roman Empire
Isis and Sarapis (40 . 47. 3) and ",,·ithout sympathy of sider the Julianic reaction in Chapter X: it had not so
the temple to the African Liber and Hercules (7 6. small a chance of success as the attempt of Eugenius in
16. 3). 392, but it was a forlorn hope.
The economic circumstances of the time no dou bt Religious development under the Empire falls there-
curtailed some of the old cults: the distribution of fore into clearly defined periods:
money to the Arval Brothers recorded in 241 was one- Augustan Severan
quarter of the old sumo The pendulum clearly swings Claudian Reaction of Decius
back under Trajan Decius (249-51); the persecution Flavian and Diocletian
of Christianity, probably in effect tolerated by the Antonine Constantine
Severi, is accompanied by a positive revival of Roman
This agrees remarkably with the periods into which
religious feeling which continues under Diocletian and
the history oE Imperial art falls.
his colleagues in spite of their devotion to Mithras as
patron of their rule (A.D. 307). The Decian require- We pass now to the question of the relative strength
ment of sacrifice applied to every citizen, not only to of Oriental religions during the central period, from
suspected Christians : in effect it defined paganism. about 120-260, for which we have most material. For
When in 274 Aurelian introduced the worship of Sol the Western provinces Toutain has studied the evidence
Invictus, the unconquered Sun, at Rome, it was a and drawn these conclusions: (I) the Egyptian cults
Romanized cul t wi th a college of pontifices. This was, in spread mainly in regions wh ich had relations with
a sense, an apogee of pagan religion, casting as it did Egypt or which had foreign and, above all, military
into a traditional mould the vigorous beliefs of the elements: the worshippers who have left records con-
hellenized Syria which found so much to share with sisted on the one hand of officials high or low, on the
contemporary speculation. other of freedmen and slaves, commonly Greek or
There, as so often, climax and end feIl near one Oriental, and contained hardly any un-Romanized
another. Apart from the small building consecrated provincials; men coming from Rome played a notable
by Maxentius in 307 to his deified son Romulus, part. (2) The Syrian cults flourished mainly in regions
this was the last official Roman temple to be built. occupied by troops, legionary and auxiliary; there is
Over the Western provinces dedications to Oriental no epigraphic trace of them in the peaceful province
deities declined greatly. The world was impoverished, of Africa proconsularis, and their worshippers are
there was probably less influx of merchants from the mainly either military-of all ranks-or of Oriental
East, and Christianity was gaining. Diocletian and his origin. No native provincials are found among them;
colleagues did not exterminate it; their failure led once more Rome and Italy have played a significant
inevitably to its recognition, and its recognition equally part, though a certain importance belongs to troops
inevitably to its exclusive domination. We shall con- which had been raised or quartered in Syria. (3) The
132 The Success of these Cutts in the Roman Empire 133
Anatolian cults found their adherents for the most part, though we must not ignore Cumont's warning against
not in thc nlilitary frontier provinces, but in Africa and insecure arguments fronl statistics and his reminder-of
Gaul; above all, in ports or in towns along the great the accidental nature of much of our information,. and
roads connecting them with Italy; the worshippers one or two points can now be added. The Mithraeum
include very few soldiers and Imperial functionaries recently found at Dieburg was built by a man of native
and many provincial and municipal dignitaries, only extraction, and there and at Königshofen statuettes of
one slave and one freedman, but a number of people native deities have been found in the shrines.
whose names prove their Gaulish or Spanish descent. I need hardly say that the difference which we see
Cybele became a really popular figure in Gaul and between Cybele' s area of diffusion and those of the
the taurobolium obtained a firm hold on the popular other Oriental deities does not point to any sort of
imagination. The cult was very much Illore a muni- competition. Cybele was early Romanized and did
cipal affair than the other cults in the list, which is not seem exotic in anything like the same measure
natural sincc she had early been given an outstanding as these other cults with Oriental origins: further, as
part in the worship of Rome and her cult was directly Toutain remarks, she suited the interests of an agri-
under the supervision of the quindecimuiri. (4) Mithra- cultural population. I think the paucity of adhesion
ism found its adherents mostly in the military frontier among men with native names indicates that except in
provinces, to some extent on the great roads and the neighbourhood ofa temple of exceptional influence
in seaports. These adherents consist of governors of -as that of Sarapis at Alexandria-the real impulse
provinces, high military officials-not in general till to advance was not strong. There was at least little
the third century,-lower ranks in the army (some demonstrativeness. C. H. Moore has reckoned that in
Mithraea being actually built by military labour), men certain selected towns ofNarbonese Gaul the Oriental
of the procura tori al career, tha t is the financial service gods have not quite 14 per cent. of extant dedications,
of the Empire: there is no known case of a city or in Bordeaux, Lyons, and Trier somewhat over 15 per
municipality building a Mithraeum and little evidence cent., in Mainz, Heddernheim, Köln, and Vetera a
of interest shown in the cult by municipal officials little over 14 per cent.-and that in spite of the great
or priests: there are many worshippers of Greek or popularity of Juppiter Dolichenus and Mithras at
Eastern extraction and very few of the native stocks of Heddernheim, where the figure is over 63 per cent.,
the West. The vitality of the cult is most conspicuous leaving under I per cent. for the other three towns.
(a) under Commodus, the Severi, and the Gordians, These proportions are probably too high rather than
(b) between 284 and 313, (c) in the last pagan revivals. too low, for the worshipper of astrange god was more
Toutain's conclusions relate purely to the Roman likely than that of an old to demonstrate his piety by
provinces of the West, not to I taly or to the rest of the a votive offering with an inscription. The restoration
Empire. For the West they are in general convincing, of temples to such deities was more likely to evoke
134 The Success of these Cults in the Roman Empire 135
private generosity than the restoration of temples to But that is all , before Christianity had attained sub-
the old gods. stantial proportions and by so doing given paganism
These facts from the Western provinces are interest- a self-consciousness. And while you can become
ing and significant, and a similar analysis of the attached to a cult without theology or hierarchy-as
position at Rome and in Italy would be very welcome. Nero was for a time to an image ofthe Dea Suria-it is
Rome is not merely the point at which all influences in hard for you to be converted to it: there is nothing to
religion as in other things converged: it is also the point seize. The mysteries gave a revelation but not a dogma.
from which ordinances and functionaries go forth. I t A hierarchie organization did not exist except when
need not invent, but it can impose. Already it is the Maximinus Daia in the first and Julian in the sixth
eternal city, and, as to Ludus, the holy city. At the decade of the fourth century created it, following
end of the fourth century it remains 'the temple of Christian precedents. We shall see later that when
the whole universe' and the home of the old aristo- Lucius after his Isiac initiation at Corinth came to
cratic circles for which paganism and the old classical Rome he went to the temple of Isis in the Campus
culture were inseparable. Martius and feIt 'a stranger to the temple but at home
in the faith', but even so he was pressed to take another
If the extension of these alien cults is hard to deter- initiation and there is not the faintest suggestion of
mine, it is much harder to form any just idea of the anything like Christian letters of introduction to a new
extent to which they affected men's religious thinking diocese or of a holy Isiac church throughout the world.
and of the proportion of adhesions which were of the There was a will to power in the Alexandrian priest-
nature of conversion. hood of Isis and Sarapis, as we see in their propaganda,
Conversion inlplies turning from something to some- but no oecumenical organization. There was a univer-
thing else: you put earlier loyalties behind you. This salist point of view; Isis and Imouthes were to be
was at once involved in adhesion to Christianity or in praised by every tongue, but the supposed or desired
fuH adhesion to Judaism and in a lesser degree in the piety of the world is no more than an aggregate of
piety of the Gentiles who partly accepted the minimal individual pieties. I t is so with other worships of the
demands of J udaism. I t was not involved in adhesion type: there are strong centres, Ephesus for Artemis,
to the cult of Isis or Mithras or their compeers. The from the fame of which she was in many places called
importance of one cult, the helpfulness of one deity Ephesia, the mons Vaticanus for Cybele at Rome (so
may be greatly stressed, and there is occasional rivalry, holy that she has a cult pi ace so called at Lyons and
as when an altar set in a Mithraeum at Rome under the kindred Virtus Bellona has one at Civitas Mat-
Caracalla, who favoured Egyptian deities, was at first tiacorum in Germany), the temple of the Dea Suria
inscribed, There is one .?.eus Sarapis, the Sun, ruler of the at Hierapolis, and in particular cities there are cult
world, and Mithras was later substituted for Sarapis. dignitaries, the archigallus for Cybele, the pater patratus
The Success of these Cults in the Roman Empire 137
for Mithraism: the quindecimuiri at Rome, as we have the epithet pantheus and by the representations of one
noted, approved the gift of the appropriate insignia to of them with attributes of others. The latter begin in
Cybele's priest at Lyonsand elsewhere. Butwemissany the second century B.C., but the widest extent of the
sort of general organization and feeling of unity. development is from the end of the first century of our
There was indeed a theology which finds expression era. There is interesting evidence at that time of such
in many ofthese cults. To take a striking example: we thinking in the hymn to Apollo with which Statius
possess the short creed in verse which a soldier in the ends the first book of his Thebaid (Apollo = Titan =
third century caused to be inserted on a stone tablet Osiris=Mithras), and later in the model prose hymn
found at Carvoran in Northumbria on the Roman to Apollo written by the rhetorician Menander at the
wall. beginning of the third century of our era. This specu-
'Opposite the Lion in the heavenly place is the Virgin~ lation is drawn into the religious sphere and made
wreathed with corn ears, inventress ofJustice, foundress of dogma; but it means 'This is the significance of your
cities, the gifts from which it has been our fortune to know earlier faith, of all men's faith': it completes and
the gods. So she is at one and the same time the mother systematizes what was there, but it does not substitute
of the gods, Peace, Virtue, Ceres, the Syrian goddess, things new for things old. I t is a theology of unity
weighing life and rights in the balance. Syria brought and mutual understanding, and not of conflict. Adhe-
forth a constellation seen in heaven to receive the homage sion to a new cult was thus made easier: it need involve
o[ Libya. Hence we have alt learned. So Marcus Caecilius no more than the devotion of Catholics to the cultus
Donatianus serving as tribune in the duty of prefect by
of a new saint.
favour of the Emperor understood, led by thy deity.'

Here the cult is a religion in which all humanity joins


and a religion communicated of favour by revelation.
The detail of this is no doubt due to themovement
fostered by the Severan dynasty at Rome, but the
basic idea-that the worship in question is a form (at
most the best form, using the deity's favourite name)
of the religion of all men-is widespread. We shall see
this as an integral element in belief in Isis and Sarapis
in the second century A.D. (p. ISO, below): we have s~en
it as explicit in a Clarian oracle, and in the Naassene
sect (pp. I I I, I 15, above): we shall see it later in
Maximus of Madaura (p. 260). Its popularity is
shown by the common ascription to various deities of
The Conversion of Lucius 139
IX speaks of her festival of the morrow and says: 'At my
direction a priest on the very ou tskirts of the procession
THE CONVERSION OF LUCIUS will bear in his right hand a wreath of roses attached
o UR survey of paganis~ has given us li ttle reason to
expect that the adheslon of any individual to a cult
to a sistrum (ra ttle ) . So wi thou t hesi ta tion part the
crowd and h~ste to join the procession, relying on my
wou~d involve .any marked spiritual reorientation, any favour. Come elose to the priest and gently, as though
recoIl f~om hIs mo:al and religious past, any idea you were kissing his hand, reach for the rose and rid
of st~rtIng a new IIfe. For adhesion to acquire the yours~lf of the skin of that animal that I have so long

emotIonal values of conversion special personal circum- hated. Do not fear any of my instructions as difficult,
stances were necessary, and we find such in the story for at this same moment at which I come to you I am
told i~ the ~leventh book of the Metamorphoses of there also present and am enjoining on my priest in his
Apulelus. Thls strange and beautiful work, written sleep wh at he must do. At my bidding the closely
under Marcus Aurelius, is based upon a Creek romance packed throngs will make way for you .... You will
telling how a young man was led by an amour in to remember absolutely and always keep stored in your
~areless da b bling in magie and was as a resul t changed he art of hearts one thing, that the remaining course of
l~tO the shape ofan ass. In the original story he regained your life till you draw the last breath is made over to
hIs shape th~nks. to the antidote (eating rose-Ieaves), me. It is right that you should owe all the existence
a?d the endlng IS burlesque. Apuleius gave to it a which is to be yours to her thanks to whom you have
dIfferent conelusion, in which there is more than returned to humanity. But your life will be happy,
a t~u~h of au.tobiography. We must follow it elosely, nay glorious, under my protection, and when you have
for It IS the hlgh-water mark of the piety which grew accomplished your span and descended to the under-
out of the mystery religions. world there also, even in the lower hemisphere, you
will as a dweller in the Elysian fields constantly adore
. The ~ero, ~vhile still in the shape of an ass, a\vaking me whom you now see, shining in the darkness of
l~ the nlght, Invokes the aid ofIsis, 'being sure that the Acheron, reigning in the recesses of Styx, and you will
hlghest goddess is strong in the majesty that is all her find me gracious toward you. And ifby acts of diligent
own,. and that human affairs are wholly guided by her obedience, faithful devotion, and steadfast self-disci-
provldence, and that not only animals tarne and wild pline you des erve well of my godhead, you shall know
b~t also inanimate things are given life by the divine that I and I alone have the power to prolong your life
wIll of her light and deity'. She appears to hirn in a beyond the bounds appointed by your fate.'
dr~am, teIls hirn of herself, the object of the worship He awakened straightway and pondered over all the
pald by all the world to various divine names, and injunctions ,,,,hich he had received. The sun rose and
all nature seemed to rejoice. The procession took its
The Conversion of Lucius The Conversion of Lucius
course and the priest in question appeared. Ludus did power against those whose lives have been claimed as
not like to rush forward, bu t crept in, the people making hers by the majesty of our goddess. What profit did
way. The priest, seeing all happen in accordance with spiteful Fortune derive from robbers or wild beasts or
the orders which he had received from Isis, stopped slavery or the hardest of journeys, bringing you back
suddenly, put forth his right hand, and held the wreath to where you started, or the daily fear of death? Now
before the lips ofLudus, and he was a man again. The you have been taken under the protection of Fortune,
throngs marvelled, the faithful paid homage to the yes, and a Fortune that sees, that by the splendour of
miracle. They raised their hands to heaven and with her radiance gives light even to the other gods. Put on
loud harmonious voices bore witness to this manifest nowa more cheerful countenance to match your white
goodness of the goddess. We know their cry, Great is raiment, join with glad steps the procession of the
Isis and we know their mood; it is as at Lourdes when goddess who is your deliverer. Let the irreligious see, let
the word go es forth that there is a cure. them see and learn how wrong they are. Lo, Ludus freed
Lucius, restored to human shape, was speechless from his old woes by the providence of great Isis
with depth of feeling. 'The priest, knowing somehow triumphs joyously over his own fortune. Yet that you
by divine admonition all my misfortunes from the may be safer and more protected, enrol in this holy
beginning, although hirns elf also profoundly stirred by soldiering, to which you were but now bidden to pledge
this striking miracle, signed to the people to give me yourself, and even now dedicate yourself to the follow-
a linen garment to cover mys elf. ... When this was ing of our religion and take on yourself the voluntary
done, with smiling and in truth unearthly face, in yoke ofservice. For when you have begun to serve the
wonder at thesight ofme, he spoke thus: "After bearing goddess, then you will the more perceive the fruit of the
many and various labours, after being driven about by liberty which is yours.'"
great tempests of Fortune and mighty storms you have The priest delivered his oracle and ceased in weari-
at last come, Ludus, to the harbour of calm and the ness. Ludus walked on in the procession and all the
altar ofmercy. Neither your birth nor your rank, nor people said: 'This· man has this day been restored to
the learning which adorns you availed you at all, but human shape by· the august will of the all-powerful
in the slippery time of you thful vigour you sank to the goddess~ Happy is he, thrice blessed is he who of a
pleasures of a slave and obtained a sorry reward for your surety by the innocence and good faith of his earlier
ill-starred inquisitiveness. But, however it was, the life has deserved such conspicuous help from heaven,
blindness of Fortune, while torturing you with the so that having been in a way reborn he should at once
worst of perils, has with a malice which proved short- be wedded to the service of holy things.' Then follows
sighted brought you to this pious happiness. Let her the description of the ceremony of the Ship of Isis,
go now and rage with her worst frenzy and seek some which was as it were a blessing of the waters at the
other object for her cruelty: for hostile chance has no beginning of the sailing season.
14 2 The Conversion of Lucius The Conversion of Lucius 143
The fri~nds of Lucius, who had despaired of his all this was duly accomplished the religious filled the
safety, heard of his deliverance and came in joy to temple with- their loud salutation of the new day,
welcome hirn and to shower gifts upon hirn. Then announcing the first hour.
Lucius hastened back to the contemplation of the Then there came to the temple his slaves from
goddess and hired an abode within the temple pl'ecinct, Hypata, with his white horse, too, which fulfilled his
where he lived wi th the priests and devoted hirns elf to dream about the slave Candidus. Lucius treated this as
their solemn rites. There was not a night or a sleep an earnest of future blessings and repeatedly besought
which was not nourished by avision and guidance thc chief priest to initiate hirn. 'But he, a man of high
fromthe goddess: by frequent commands she bade hirn seriousness and distinguished for his strict keeping of
now at last to be initiated in her rites, for which he had austere religion, held back my eagerness, gently and
this long ti.me been destined. But he, though willing kindly, just as parents regulate children's wishes when
and eager, was held back by a scrupulous fear, for unsuitable to their years. By holding out the consola-
he had found by careful inquiry that it was hard to tions of a better hope he calmed my anxious spirits.
observe the religion and that the keeping ofthe periods For, said he, the goddess indicates the day on which
of abstinence was somewhat difficult. As he thought each man can be initiated and her providence chooses
time and again on these things, he delayed for all his the priest who should perform the rite and a similar
eager haste. On a certain night he dreamed that the instruction fixes the expenditure necessary for the cere-
chief priest presented to hirn his bosorn full of gifts and, monies. All this you, too, must bear with exemplary
when asked what it meant, replied that those things patience. You must above all beware of over-eagerness
had been sent to Lucius from Thessaly and that a slave and obstinacy and avoid both faults: you must neither
ofhis named Candidus had also arrived thence. When tarry when summoned nor hasten when not bidden.
he awakened, he kept turning over this vision in his There is no one in our number so mad, so bent on self-
mind to discover its meaning: the chief difficulty was destruction that, unless the Mistress gave hirn also
that he was quite certain that he had never had a slave separate instructions, he would dare to undertake a
of that name. But he was assured that the gift meant rash and sacrilegious ministry and incur the guil t of
some gain, whatever the sense of this omeh in sleep. mortal sin, for the keys of Hell and the guardianship
Accordingly, with this anxiety and awed expectation of our safety are in the hands of the goddess and the
of some happy issue, he waited for the temple to open actual transmission of the mystery is celebrated in the
in the morning. The shining veils were drawn apart likeness of a voluntary death and a safety given on
and they prayed to the adorable sight of the goddess: sufferance. When the space of life is over and men are
the priest went round the altars duly set and performed on the very threshold of darkness, and the great secrets
his solemn service ofprayer, drew water from the inner of religion may safely be entrusted to them, then the
rOOID, and made libation with a sacred vessel. When might ofthe goddess is wont to choose them and byher
I44 The Conversion oJ Lucius The Conversion of Lucius I45
providence to give them as it were a second birth and He did as he was commanded and then was led among
set them back in the paths of a new health. So there- the band ofpious to the nearestbaths. There he washed
fore you, too, must await the heavenly ordinance, as usual and the priest prayed and besprinkled hirn, set
although the clear and manifest condescension of the hirn before the feet of the goddess and gave certain
great deity has shown that you are long since named teaching in private and also instructions in public to
and destined for her blessed service. You, too, like the abstain from meat and wine and to curtail all enjoy-
other worshippers, must abstain from impure and evil ment of food for ten days.
foods, in order that you may the more rightly go to the Lucius obeyed, and the sun sank and brought on
hidden mysteries of the most holy worship. evening. In accordance with ancient custom the faith-
'The priest finished speaking and my obedient service ful came together from every side, honouring hirn with
was not spoilt by impatience, but with my mind set on their several gifts. All who were not holy were removed,
calm repose and laudable silence I was daily busied and the priest clothed hirn in a linen garment and led
with the service of attendance on holy things. The hirn to the holy of holies.
saving goodness of the mighty goddess did not cheat 'You, 0 zealous reader, will perhaps ask eagerly
me or torture me with long delays, but by clear biddings enough, wh at was then said and what was done. I
in the dark of night plainly told me that there had come would tell you if I might, but ear and tongue would
the day ever desirable to me on which she would fulfil incur the same guilt of rash inquisitiveness. Yet I will
for me the greatest of wishes. She told me at what cost not torture you with long suspense, when you are
I should appease her with solemn rites and decided perhaps aglow with pious yearning. So hear, yes, and
that Mithras hirnself, that specially dear priest of hers, believe the things which are true. I visited the bounds
was by some divine conjoining of the stars, as she said, ofdeath: I trod Proserpina's threshold: Ipassed through
yoked to me as the minister of the rite.' Lucius, though all the elements and returned. It was midnight, but
it was barely dawn, hastened to the priest. And as soon I saw the sun radiant with bright light. I came into
as the priest saw hirn, he said: '0 Lucius, happy are the vety presence of the gods below and the gods a bove
you, bIest are you, whom the majestic deity honours so and I adored them face to face. WeH, I have told you
greatly with her gracious goodwill. Why do you now things of which though you have heard them you must
stand idly and keep yourselfwaiting? This is the day notknow.
for which your steadfast prayers have asked, the day on 'Therefore I will relate the one thing which can with-
which at the divine commands of Her of many names out sin be proclaimed to the minds of those outside.
you are by these hands of mine to be led into the most I t was morning: the ri tes were done and I came forth
holy secrets of her rites.' The priest did the morning consecrated in twelve robes. The dress is sacred in
ceremonies, produced his hieroglyphic book of ritual, truth, but there is nothing which bids me to be silent
and told Lucius what he must procure for the initiation. concerning it, for very many were then present and
146 The Conversion of Lucius The Conversion oJ Lucius 147
saw it. As I was bidden, I stood on a wooden platform to offer sacrifice: my abundance ofwords is not enough
set in the very centre ofthe temple before the image of to say all that I feel concerning thy majesty, nor would
the goddess. I was before all eyes, in a linen garment, a thousand mouths, a thousand tongues be enough.
but one decorated with patterns of flowers. A costly So I will set myself to do all tha t can be done by one
cloth hung on my back from my shoulders to my heels. devoted but poor: I will ever keep thy divine face and
From whichever side you beheld me I was adorned thy most holy deity in the sanctuary of my heart and
with animals marked out in various colours: here were picture them to myself. ' He embraced the priest who
Indian dragons, there Hyperborean griffins, creatures had initiated hirn and who was now his father, and
of the other part of the world in the likeness of winged made his way horne. Then in a few days at the
birds. Those who have been sanctified call this the prompting of the goddess he packed his baggage and
Olympian vestment. In my right hand I bore a blazing went to Rome, reaching the holy city on 14 December.
toreh; my head was duly bound with a wreath ofgleam- 'Nor was there anything thereafter to which I devoted
ing palm, the leaves standing out like rays. So when myself so eagerly as daily to pray to the high power of
I was arrayed in the fashion of the Sun and set there queen Isis, who taking the name of Campensis from
like an image the veils were suddenly drawn back, and the place of her temple is worshipped with deepest
the people streamed in to see me. Then I kept the most reverence. In a word, I was a constant worshipper, a
joyous birthday ofthe rite: there was a charming feast stranger to the temple, but at horne in the religion.'
and merry banquet. The third day also was celebrated 'And behold, the great sun had run his circle and
wi th a similar ceremonial rite: there was a sole mn finished the year, and again there broke in on my sleep
breakfast and legal completing of the initiation. I the watchful care of the kindly deity and again 'it
remained there for a few days and drew a pleasure turned my thoughts to initiation and rite.' Ludus
which cannot be told from the divine image, to which wondered what this might mean (was he not most
I was bound by a favour for which no return of grati- fully initiated?) and discussed it with the holy. Then
tude could be made. Still at length, at the bidding of he learned that he had received the rites of Isis but
the goddess, having paid humble thanks, not indeed was not yet illuminated with the ceremonies ofuncon-
fully, but to the best of my abilities, I at length made quered Osiris, the great god and highest father of the
preparations to go horne, slow in all conscience, for gods; the gods were related but the initiations different.
I found it hard to break the chains ofmost eager desire Now Osiris sought Ludus for his servante Another
which held me back.' dream relating to his horne convinced hirn: once more
He fell before the image of Isis, his face pressed another man (this time a pastophorus, a term denoting
against her feet, and poured forth his thanks and his in Egypt one of a class of minor clergy and here an
consciousness of their insuffidency, concluding, 'But I honorary office, like tha t of deacon in some denomina-
am weak of intellect to tell thy praises, poor in resources tions) had had a corresponding dream. All seemed
148 The Conversion of Lucius The Conversion of Lucius 149
clear, but Lucius lacked money. The commands declared what was needed. I did not postpone the
continued and were urgent, and he sold his clothes to matter or cast it back into idle delay, but at once told
provide what was necessary. All preparations were my priest the things which I had seen and straightway
made: he passed another ten days of purification, submitted to the yoke of meatless abstinence and with
shaved his head and was illuminated with the nightly voluntary self-restraint multiplied the ten days which
mysteries of the chief of the gods. Then with full the unbroken law prescribed. Then I provided what
assurance he frequented divine worship and settled was wanted for the initiation liberally, contributing
down to legal practice. everything according to the zeal of my piety rather
'And be hold after a very short time, the unexpected than the measure of my resources. I did not at all
and ever wonderful commands of the gods broke in regret my toil or expenditure, for through the liberal
upon me again and compelled me to undergo yet providence of the gods I was now enriched with legal
a third initiation.' Lucius was very upset and even fees. Finally, after a very few days, I saw in a dream
came to doubt the judgement of the priests who had the god who is mightier than the great gods, highest
initiated hirn. He was almost beside hirnself with of the greater gods, greatest of the highest, ruler of the
anxiety, when the kindly vision of the deity reassured great, Osiris, not transformed into the shape of any
hirn saying, 'There is no reason why the long chain of other: he honoured me by speaking to me face to face
rites should cause you to be frightened as though some- in his majesty and received me. I was bidden unhesitat-
thing had been omitted earlier. Rather rejoice in this ingly to ply Iny calling as advocate with glory in the
continued condescension of the deities. Enjoy your Forum and not to fear the rumours ofill-wishers which
happiness and be exultant, for that you are to be thrice assailed the knowledge which I won by diligent study;
what is barely granted once to another, and from this he did not suffer me to serve his rites in the common
number of ceremonies have the surety that you will throng but admitted me to the college of his pastophori,
always be happy, as you deserve. Moreover, the im- nay among the very quinquennales of the dec~rions
pending initiation is very necessary for you, as you (i.e. the governing body). Again, with head elose
will see if you reflect that the cast-off garment of the shorn, I gladly went about the business of that most
goddess which you took upon yourself in the province ancient college founded in the famous days of Sulla,
remains laid in the tenlple and that you cannot in neither veiling nor covering my baldness, but leaving
Rome either pray to it, or when it is enjoined upon it for every man to see.'
you be glorified by that bl~ssed garb. Follow then the
leading of the great gods and with a joyous heart be I have let Apuleius tell the story ofLucius. It is, as he
again initiated in the mysteries, and may it be to your hints, in some measure his own story. Is it trustworthy?
blessing and happiness and deliverance.' or is it an idealized picture, bearing little relation to the
'So far the persuasive majesty of the divine dream mood in which the cult was normally contemplated?
15 0 The Conversion cif Lucius The Conversion cif Lucius 15 1

The external facts are ofcourse trustworthy: Apuleius places at which they were used. Some of the cult
was dealing with things which many or most of his names, even for places in Egypt, are Greek:
readers would have seen. The second and third initia- 'At Aphrodites Polis in the Prosopite nome, mistress of
tion have been regarded as invented by the Roman fleets, many-shaped Aphrodite; . . . at Nithine in the
priesthood for their personal gain: the ministers of Gynaecopolite nome, Aphrodite; at Pephremis, Isis, queen,
Isis lived by their religion, and were notalways thought Hestia, mistress of every country; . . . in the Saite nome,
to be above considerations ofprofit (p. 153, later), but Victorious Athena, nymph (or, bride); ... in Sais, Hera,
it is possible that these additional ceremonies were queen, fuH grown; in Iseum, Isis; in Sebennytos, intelli-
gence, ruler, Hera, holy; in Hermopolis, Aphrodite, queen,
genuine and due to a tendency elsewhere observed to
holy; . . . in Apis, wisdom; in Leuke Akte, Aphrodite,
multiply rites. Two points particularly deserve to be
Mouchis, Eseremphis; at Cynospolis in the Busirite nome,
checked, the theology implied and the concept of Praxidike; at Busiris, Good Fortune; ... at Tanis, gracious
divine command. in form, Hera.'
Ludus, befor.e his transformation, prays to the
Queen of Heaven, whether she be Ceres worshipped But the list proceeds to include many pi aces outside
at Eleusis or heavenly Venus worshipped at Paphos, Egypt and to give for each an epithet or the name
or Diana worshipped at Ephesus or Proserpine. She of a local deity equated with Isis.
appears and teIls hirn that the Phrygians worship 'In Arabia, great goddess; in Syria, Leto; at Myra in
her as the Mother of the gods, the Athenians as Min- Lycia, trusty, Eleuthera; in Crete, Dictynnis; at Chalcedon,
erva, the Cypriots as celestial Venus of Paphos, the Themis; in Rome, Warlike (?); at Pathmos [sie], young;
Cretans as Dictynna, the Sicilians as Proserpine, the ... atPaphos, holy; ... at Chios, marching; at Salamis,
Eleusinians as Ceres, and others as Juno or Bellona watcher; in Cyprus, bountiful; in Chalcidice, holy; in
Pieria, blooming; in Asia, she of the cross roads; at Petra,
or Hecate or Nemesis, but the Ethiopians and the
saviour; at Hypsele, greatest; in Samos, holy; in Hellespont,
Egyptians with their ancient learning worship her with initiate; in Myndus, divine; in Bithynia, Helen; in Tenedos,
the ceremonies which are peculiarly her own and call the eye ofthe Sun; in Caria, Hecate.'
her by her true name, Queen Isis.
We know the theory weIl, but what is important to The list includes pi aces in Syria and Phoenicia, and
notice is that theory and form alike were at horne also the Amazons, and Indians and Persians, and
in the cult: ~yrionyma is a regular epithet for her and Magi, and Italy. It agrees with Apuleius in mention-
we find the descriptive phrase una quae es omnia. An ing not merely Hecate and Hera, but also the more
Oxyrhynchus papyrus (No. 1380), assigned on grounds recondi te Dictynnis.
of script to the early second century A.D., gives us Now this papyrus list is not, as it stands, an original
a long invocation of Isis. The initial verb of address is composition: so much is shown by a number ofsuper-
lost. The text opens with a list of cult names with the fici al corruptions and by the fact that various pi aces
J!
15 2 The Conversion of Lucius The Conversion of Lucius 153
are mentioned out ofthe geographie sequence. In the seen commands of Sarapis earlier, given to Zoilus and
list of Cypriot cities Chios suddenly appears, in that to the priest on Delos (pp. 49, 5 I). Pausanias teIls that
of Syrian cities Sinope and Delphi, and further Syrian the temple of Isis at Tithorea was the holiest of all the
names come after another interval. It is ofinterest also sanctuaries made by Greeks for the Egyptian goddess
that no distinction is made between genuine epithets (x. 32. 13):
holy, mightiest, unde.filed, and the names of other deities 'For the Tithoreans deern it not lawful to dweIl round
identified with Isis. That is to say, the identifications about and there i::. no admission to the shrine except for
are regarded as complete and the local names of other those whom Isis herself has favoured with an invitation in
goddesses so eq.uated as pure epithets of Isis. a dream. The same thing is done also by the underworld
After this long invocation in the accusative follows gods in the cities on the Maeander: they send visions in
further descriptive matter, giving general aspects of dreams to whomsoever they wish to enter their shrines.'
Isis; and then comes a direct hymnologie al description Their commands could be special and specific.
in the second person. J osephus (Jewish Antiquities, xviii. 65 ff.) teIls how in
'Thou willest that women in health cast anchor with the year A.D. 19 a Roman knight, Decius Mundus, had
men, all the old sacrifice in [ ], all the maidens at tried in vain to seduce one Paulina. A freedwoman of
Heracleopolis praise thee and speed to thee and have dedi- his, seeing his distress and knowing that Paulina was
cated the land to thee. Those who invoke thee in their trust in greatly devoted to Isis, bribed the priests of the goddess,
thee see thee . ... The grace of thy two commands is gentle and the oldest of them went to Paulina and said Anubis
and easily won.' was in love with her and bade her come to hirn. She
There follows a description in this style of the benefits camegladlywithher husband's consent, having boasted
conferred by Isis on mankind, very like the description to her friends of the honour done to her. N ext day she
in the first person ascribed to Isis in the Praises of Isis told her husband ofthe god's epiphany and gloried in
and Osirz's discussed earlier. We may note in particular it. Her women friends were sceptical and Mundus
1. 202, 'Thou didst found Isea in cities for all time and told her the truth: her husband told Tiberius, who
to all give ordinances and aperfect year . . . in every crucified the freedwoman and the priests, destroyed the
place thou didst sho\v, that all men might know, that temple, had the image ofIsis thrown into the Tiber, and
the heaven was stablished by thee.' banished Mundus. The story may contain invention,
In this universalist scherne, therefore, Apuleius is and it certainly sounds like Dr. Achilli's revelations
following the tradition of the cult as weIl as the ten- on the inner conduct of the Catholic Church, but
dency of his time. It is so likewise with the idea of the persecution is certain. Again, the katochoi in the
command and vocation. At every point from his first temples of Sarapis appear to have resided there until
appeal to Isis his conduct is prescribed by visions and the god indicated that they might go, and they received
such prescription counts as a special grace. We have numerous prophetie dreams.
154 The Conversion of Lucius The Conversion oJ Lucius 155
N ow the idea of divine commands given by oracles god' are very comrnon and we read of 'those whom
or dreams is known in earlier Greece, especially in Juppiter Optimus Maximus Dolichenus has chosen to
connexion with Asclepius and his activity as a healer serve hirn'.
(where aga in a dream is something which needs to be There is, therefore, a certain change of atmosphere.
interpreted by the priesthood). Divine commands are In classical Greece some men, as for instance Pindar,
mainly associated with the direct official pronounce- had a special devotion to a particular deity, but the
ments of an oracle, but Dionysus, when playing the normal ideal was that of the man who performed aIl
part of one of his ministers in the Bacchae, answets the due observances punctually and weIl without seeking
question 'Whence did you bring these rites to Greece?' particular light and leading.
by saying 'Dionysus the son of Zeus set me in thern', We have reason to trust Apuleius. The picture
and Pentheus asks (469) Did he compel thee by night or in which he draws us is very remarkable. It is like that
thy sight? The reply is He saw me and I saw hirn and he of a man received into the Catholic Church, spending
gave me the mysteries. Here it is assumed that the god's a season in retreat in a monastic house: fora time, like
chosen vessel was impressed by hirn into his service, some in the early centuries, putting offbaptism because
and when the Bacchanalia were put down provision ofthe obligations which it imposed: then eager to push
was made for those who said it was necessary for them ahead (as it might be to try his vocation in the religious
to have such worship (p. 73 above). Socrates says life) and held back, and finally becoming a member
(Plato, Apo logy , p. 33 c) of his habit of questioning of the Third Order of St. Francis anu living in the
people: 'The command to do this has been given me world bu t not as of the world. The priest who gives
by the god through oracles and drearns and every the first initiation is a kind but firm spiritual director.
other medium by which any divine destiny ever The ideal expressed is one of submission and faith and
ordered a man to do anything.' Greece and Rome joy fortified by contemplation of the image of the
knew weIl dreams conveying comrnands. Greece goddess, by dream revelations of her will, and by the
knew also the idea of the vocation of particular indi- daily round of the Divine Office .. Lucius is not for-
duals, priests and seers (above all the founders of or bidden to take part in other cults, and formal public
mernbers of families carrying on the concern), and observances he would no doubt make, but any other
poets, and Stoicism emphasized the duty ofindividual worship must to hirn appear tarne and inferior. His
vocation. But the idea of commands to individuals devotion is the devotion of a man delivered from evil
and that of vocation are far more emphasized in straits: it is an outpouring of love and gratitude. It
Graeco-Oriental cults, which had in their background cannot be supposed that his is anormallevel ofpagan
the Oriental conception of god as autocrat, master, religious emotion, but it should certainly be rernem-
and patron, and of man as subject, slave, favourite. bered that it is a level which it could and did reach.
Dedications 'in accordance with the command of the
The Last Phase 157
Now we find Porphyry, according to a tradition which
X need not be doubted, a Christian for a time, only to
THE LAST PHASE return to the faith of his fathers and to attack Chris-
tianity with the enthusiasm of a convert from it.
HE strength of paganism is seen in the power of
T resistance it displayed in face of the growing in-
The best known ofthese conversions is that ofJulia!'-
Here we are fairly weIl informed on the details of the
fluence of Christianity. Its tenacity strengthened as process. J ulian hirns elf speaks of the way in which the
it lost ground. In its last phase we find conversions sun's rays and light fascinated hirn from childhood,
back to paganism, not merely people lapsing in times and teIls us of the library of George of Cappadocia, to
of persecution. There had always been defections from which he had access du ring his life at Macellum: it
Christianity. Pliny teIls in his famous letter of converts contained 'all kinds of philosophers, many commen-
who said that they had abandoned Christianity before tators and not least plenty of writings of every kind
there was any inquiry, some many years before. The of the Galilaeans'. Then came the contacts at Nico-
first fine careless rapture could disappear in face of the media with Libanius, which deepened if they did not
ever-present loss of social amenities, club life, and actually inspire his passion for hellenism as a cultural
festivals: or the Christian might have sinned and been force. Libanius, a sympathizer who was a notable
excluded from communion by a conservative church rhetorician, says in a speech delivered at Antioch to
which did not hold with penance and recoriciliation. welcome hirn (Oratio xiii. I I): 'There was in conceal-
So Lucian speaks of Peregrinus as put out of the body. ment here (at Nicomedia) a spark of the prophetic art
Even in Paul and Acts endurance is a characteristic term which had with difficulty escaped the hands of the
of Christians being constant, and the word was in the impious. This first enabled thee to pursue the tru~h,
first century A.D. used in the south Russian records of and under the softening influence of the prophecles
manumitted slaves who were made conlpletely free thou didst check thy violent hatred against the
except for the obligation of respect for the synagogue gods.' This is most important, for it shows us Juli~n
and faithful attendance. It was a question not only of as an eager Christian, and his writings reveal hIrn
resisting social pressure and occasional persecution but as throughout saturated with Christian thought. A
ofholding out against boredom, astate as weIl known prophecy moved hirn, no doubt an oracle reminding
in antiquity as to-day. From this point ·of view the hirn of the devotion ofhis ancestors to the Sun, perhaps
strife against gnostic views and the early Christological substantially like the words of the Sun to the young
controversies were probably very valuable: they gave man in his myth, 'We wish to purify thy ancestral
men continued objects of love and hate. house out of respect for thy ancestors. So remember
Down to the middle of the third century men relapsed that thy soul is immortal and descended from us, and
into paganism: we do not hear of their embracing it. that if thou followest us thou wilt be a god and wilt
The Last Phase The Last Phase 159
with us see our father.' Somehow Julian heard of the Church with equal ease; possible again, having entered
surviving Neoplatonists who still practised theurgy, it, to come later to view the misfortunes of the Empire
and went to Aedesius, Eusebius, and Chrysanthius at as due to its defection from the Roman gods. St.
Pergamon,and then to Maximus at Ephesus. Maximus Augustine's City of Godmay weIl be directed against
initiated hirn in the Neoplatonic mysteries based on regretful Christi ans rather than recalcitrant pagans.
the Chaldaic Oracles mentioned earlier. Other factors The two opposing forces had drawn ne ar one
may have entered in; dislike of Constantius, the excite- another. Paganismhad moved largely towards a sort
ment of the rising of Magnentius and his temporary of monotheism, and Julian's revival depended on the
restoration of full rights to paganism in Rome, but in giving to it of those features which had in Christianity
the main Julian's conversion is due to a cultural ideal been most effective, theological and moral dogma,
quickened by the sense of a personal and at the same hierarchic organization, and systematic works of charity
time hereditary mission; this feeling came as a result and benevolence. J ulian purposed, we are told, to
of religious experience. 1t was an emotional and not adorn pagan temples with the equipment and order
an intellectual quest: it was therein different from that ofChristian piety, with seats according to dignity, with
of St. Augustine, although they resemble one another teachers and readers of pagan dogmas and exhorta-
in that each ends in areturn to something which has tions, with establishments for men and women who
all the time been in the background. had decided to be philosophers, with hostelries for
To the passionate nature ofJulian the issues between strangers and beggars and general benefaction to those
Christianity and the new paganism was an Entweder- in need, with penance and letters of introduction like
oder: between the two rivals there was a great gulf those given by Christian bishops. Augustine, who was
fixed, and it was not to be passed except by psycho- eight years old when Julian died, remembers this
logical crisis. 1t would be wrong to generalize from attempt at religious teaching, which no doubt out-
hirn or to suppose that the enthusiastic support which lasted the Emperor's death. 'Only the other day we
he received in various parts of the Empire (above all heard such healthful interpretations being recited in
Syria, where a deep-rooted local feeling centred around the temples to the assembled people'; he is speaking
the great temples) represents piety of his type and of allegorical interpretations of myth, freeing it from
earnestness, and adesire to convert humanity: men objectionable elements.
felt joy at the abolition of interference with good old But areturn might always be passionate, and there
customs. Even Julian had been content to yield ex- is another instance to add to that of Julian. A poem
ternal conformity,like Bishop Pegasius. It was now wrongly ascribed to Cyprian and probably belonging
possible to enter the Church without any profound to the fourth cen tury is addressed To a senator who had
changes of mental furniture and spiritual orientation, turned from the Christian religion to he the slave of idols. 1t
and, if Julian or Eugenius was in power, to leave the complains of his return to the service of Cybele with
160 The Last Phase The Last Phase 161

her eunuch priests and of Isis, in whose honour (like this view, and to doctrines of redemption and original
Lucius) he has shaved his head and wears the dog sin and grace. To the ancients the essence of religion
mask of Anubis. 'It is common talk which has reached was the rite, which was thought of as a process for
our ears that you have actually said, "0 goddess, I have securing and maintaining correct relations with the
sinned: forgive me. I have returned".' Later the poet says, world of uncharted forces around man, and thc myth,
'You pretend you are a philosopher in your change of which gave the traditional reason for the rite and the
opinion. For ifthe people's anger stirs your wrath you traditional (but changing) view of those forces.
will turn J ew and you are deemed al together lacking Everything made fer the conservation of custom.
in stable purpose.' Later at Rome itself paganism, We are used to a certain recoiling by one generation
revived for a moment, hangs together closely with the from the views of its predecessor: the son of a church-
old culture: the last pagans are known to us as students go er often becomes a freethinker, and the son of a
and editors of the Latin classics. freethinker often embraces a dogmatic religion. As the
At the same time, the suppression of paganism took father of a musician who is a friend of mine said to hirn,
the form of the prohibition of cultus and seasonal 'We were brought up on Bach and have come to love
observances, the destruction or appropriation of temples Gilbert and Sullivan: you were brought up on Gilbert
and the exclusion of recalcitrants from office and the and Sullivan and have come to love Bach.' At one
army. There is no persecution in the Decian or Dio- point in the his tory of Greece this was so-in the fifth
cletianic sense: there was nothing to persecute in that century B.C., when the younger men werefascinated by
way: and there are no pagan martyrs. - - the new thought then in the air and destructive criti-
cis m was fashionable among them. This was excep-
We have from this point of view surveyed a long tional and short-lived. The humanistic education of
development. We have seen the incoming of aseries Isocrates and of his successors, the philosophical ten-
of alien cults into a world of different traditions: we dency of Plato and his, both made for fixity, and the
have seen some of them establish themselves and Cynic protest ,vas something on which the average man
consolidate their position in the culture which they looked as till recently he looked on the individual
found. Yet the surprising thing is the slightness of the doubts and doctrines ofBernard Shaw. The tendency
change which they effected in the fundamental temper to conservatism was greatly strengthened by the rise
of the people among whom they took root. Our way of Rome, which glorified parental authority, the
of thinking is throughout coloured by the nature wisdom of age, and the value of ancestral custom, and
of Christianity. We conceive of religion as 'all or had a horror of innovation. Innovation might involve
nothing' . To us it involves above all a view of the amenace to the established order. Above all , the
world and of the soul: sacrament and rite may bulk governing classes, which set the tone of society, must
very large, but they do so because of their relation to not indulge in it. Tacitus teIls how Agricola when
The Last Phase The Last Phase 163
young showed an interest in philosophy: his mother were associated with worship, which was one of the
anxiously saw to it that he should not pursue it too far. facts of life. Worship had no key to life's meaning:
Of course, anything like conversion would be a breach that was offered by philosophy: but precisely because
of etiquette: it would mean superstiiio, unreasonable worship res ted on emotion and not on conscious theory
enthusiasm characteristic of the lower orders. and thinking it had deeper roots in their natures, and
Men become angry and excited when their material was not easily refuted by reason.
needs and desires are not satisfied. If these are, and So long. as you did not try to take from these men
sometimes even if they are not, men become angry anything which they had in religion, they could not as
and excited about other matters, and commonly then a rule object to new methods and new processes. So
not about things in themselves but about their ideas long as the priest and the silent Vestal climbed the
concerning things. They love and fear not realities as Capitol, Balbus might build his Mithraeum, with the
such but realities as transformed by their imaginations, feeling that the established order was secured and that
by the power of suggestion which their surroundings he was getting something additional for hirnself, some-
exercise, by these very emotions of love and fear when thing perhaps for the community also. And so the fact
?nce called into play. Abstractions interest them just ofBalbus and his like frequenting the Mithraeum did
In so far as they can take a shape around which not usually involve conversion. But ask ofhim that he
emotion can be kindled. They desire heaven for them- should consent to the ending of the Capitoline cult,
selves: they are of Paul or Cephas -or Apollos or and he would be shocked or even frightened: and if
Newman. The abstraction has to fulfil their desires you were to win hirn you had to convince hirn, to
or to justify their prejudices. convert hirn: at least you had to do this until the time
What did the ancients love? They Ioved Iocal came when the law made paganism a thing the pro-
traditions and other traditions which, \vhile alien in fession of which required moral courage such as ,vas
origin, had become naturalized; they loved the wor- formerly needed for the profession of Christianity.
ships of the household and of the State; they loved
the reverent practices which had grown up around the
dead. What did they fear? The possible loss of the
benefits thought to be derived by State and individual
fr?~ these i~herited ways. What did they desire?
CIVIC well-belng: all the temporal blessings of this life:
and the intangible things of which we have spoken-
immortality sometimes, freedom from the ban of fate
sometimes, knowledge sometimes, a dignified status in
the universe often. These fears and loves and desires
Conversion to Philosophy 165
range, and we have in Hesiod crude tales spun around
XI imperfectly personified figures.
CONVERSION TO PHILOSOPHY Speculative interest became really powerful about
the beginning ofthe sixth century: its early manifesta-
place which Greek philosophy occupied in the
T HE
life of the ancient world does in the last instance
tions in the Ionian philosophers show at every turn a
close similarity to mythological thinking. Such specula-
arise from the special nature of Greek religion. India,
tion was thoroughly unfettered. It should not be for-
Babyion, and Egypt had centralized societies with gotten that even on the traditional scheme, freely held
priestly dasses : learning was the property of those as it was, the universe is prior to the gods actually
dasses, and served practical ends, calendar regulation,
worshipped. The natural powers, vaguely personified,
observation of the stars for portents, land measurement, who figure in Hesiod are not in the main recipients of
and the like. Greece had no such dass: Delphl cultus: the Olympians are, like the Greeks, new-comers
answered questions, but only the questions which were 'who control a fabric which they found there. The gods
put to it. Zoroastrianism, Judaism, and Christianity of popular religion had nothing to lose. A man who
have put forward as part of revealed religion a view speculated along these lines need not offend the con-
of the origin of the world and of man; and of necessity servative: he was filling a gap. He could even take a
Christianity has given further doctrine on man's nature prophetic tone like Heraditus or Empedodes. Religion
as equally part of revealed religion. Any religion of and philosophy were very elose in the Greek settlements
salvation must give some such explanation ofits poStu- of south Italy at the end of the sixth century. The
lates. But official piety in Greece and Rome was not followers of Pythagoras formed societies entered after
such a religion: Orphism was, bu t Orphism did not preliminary discipline, with ascetic doctrine and prac-
capture the established Church-in fact, as we have tices, an intense group-consciousness, and a Pythagorean
seen, there was not an established Church to capture. life prized by its followers and ridiculed by others:
Local cults went their ways \vith some reference to the affinity to Orphism is clear.
Delphi, and, while local cults preserved and cherished The philosophic movement in the main, as it pro-
their legends, the systematization of those legends ceeded in the fifth century, became more radical and
was the work of the poets, who, though often thought through the dissemination of its ideas aroused popular
to be inspired, were secular persons. There was antipathy at Athens, but it remained a professorial
not a priestly elass as such, but only priestly families movement, ready to communicate its conelusions to
with functions in individual shrines. The legends as disciples but not fired with any desire to free humanity
systematized were admittedly in detail man-made, from error or to lead it into truth. The activity of
and subject to further modification. The instinct for Socrates marks a turning-point. His sense of a mission
legend-making naturally induded cosmogony in its which led hirn finally to martyrdom, his preoccupation
166 Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy 16 7
with personality and with the quest for a basis for right something essentially akin to the attitude of Einstein
conduct, his power of attracting and influencing dis- to-day, but its solidarity was not the solidarity of
ciples, all these things through the im press which they dogma. In so far as the world at large was outside it
made on his disciples set a standard for lovers of wisdom was because it lacked the preliminary training which
and the love ofwisdom, philosophers and philosophy: it alone made it possible to join in the pursuit of truth.
is now that the words acquire popularity and definite Yet though the world could not participate, the Dia-
meaning. Adhesion to Socrates somehow meant giving logues were written largely in order to give to wider
your soul to hirn. We have in the opening of Plato's circles some idea of the direction in which truth lay,
Banquet the perfect picture of the fanatical disciple, to stimulate thought, and to enable the individual here
Apollodorus. and there who had a call to philosophy to realize his
'Now in a general way, whenever either I am talking vocation. This dual aspect of philosophie activity was
about philosophy or I hear others so doing, I reeeive very crystallized by Aristotle, and abides.
great pleasure in addition to the sense ofhaving good done
to me, but whenever I hear other talk, and espeeially that Why did these schools hold so dominant a place in the
ofyou rieh eommereial people, I am vexed by it and I fee! spiritual history of the succeeding centuries? Firstly,
sorry for you who are with me, sinee you think you are they offered intelligible explanations of phenomena.
attaining something though you are attaining nothing. The G-reek was naturally inquisitive, and the intel-
Possibly you in your turn think me a poor fool, and I sup- lectual and political ferment of the fifth century had
pose your opinion is right, but as far as you are eoneerned left many open questions. Secondly-and this is a point
I do not think it but I know it full well.' of cardinal importance-the schools offered a life with
The interlocutor replies: 'You are always the same, ascheme. One ofthe terms for a school ofphilosophy,
Apollodorus: you always revile yourself and others whatever its kind, is agoge, which means way ofteaching
alike, and I do in fact think that you consider that and way ofliving. The contrast ofthe life ofvirtue and
except for Socrates every one (yourself included) is industry with that ofsloth and vice we know in Hesiod,
wretched.' N ear the end of the dialogue Alcibiades and the fable of Heracles at the cross-roads, choosing
pays his tribute to this fascination. Socrates thus created between the two paths (ascribed to Prodicus), is a
an atmosphere of personal influence and discussion. vigorous metaphor, but it was left for philosophy to
Plato's foundation of the Academy gave to this tradi- give a raison d' Ure for the disciplined life: There was the
tion a permanent loeus standi. Like the Pythagoreans Pythagorean life, like the Orphic life, with a religious
his group had a sense of solidarity, and like the Pytha- theory of ~asceticism: that was for those who had
goreans it was fundamentally religious, and its religion deliberately chosen it, had deliberately renounced
was a reverent and living feeling for the glory and unity their former way of living, and such men there were
of the universe growing out ofits s~ientific investigation, not merely in south Italy throughout the fifth and
168 Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy 169
fourth centuries, but also at Athens in the fourth (where lessness of conventional standard~ and taught men to
they excited the derision of writers of comedy), at cut dear of the trammels of sociallife. The anecdotes
Rome and elsewhere in greater force in the first century told of the founder and of the even more famous
B.C. and the first century A.D. We know a little of this Diogenes testify to the enormous impression made by
revival, which had private religious rites (that queer this movement on society. Adhesion to such ideas
stories arose about them need not be said) , its own way meant something like conversion. We have the story
of burial and the old theory of the soul and i ts relation of the rich Hipparchia, who, loving the Cynic Crates,
to the harmony of the universe. 1t had a prominen t left her wealth and lived with hirn the Cynic life: we
representative at Rome in Nigidius Figulus, a sympa- have in the third century B.C. the causeries of Teles-
thizer in Varro: it affected the school of Sextus and called diatribes-a genre invented by Bion, and poems of
Sotion and through them Seneca, who writes (Epistles, Cercidas (a man who played a partin public life) express-
108.17), 'Since 1 have begun to set forth to you with ing these ideas with apt simple illustrations and stories.
how much greater zeal 1 betook me to philosophy The wandering Cynic talking to those who would
when young than 1 proceed with it when old, 1 shall he ar was a familiar figure later under the Empire,
not be ashamed to admit what a passion Pythagoras begging his bread, haranguing, and at times showing
inspired in me,' and proceeds to tell the reasons assigned the free speech and utter indifference (dare we say
to hirn for Pythagoras' abstinence from me at and how rudeness?) of a Christian martyr. Dio of Prusa, who
he hirns elf so abstained for a year, desisting thereafter had a sincere admiration for Diogenes hirnself and uses
at his father's advice. At that time, in the early years of hirn as the lay figure of six of his discourses, delivered
the principate of Tiberius, foreign religions were per- a speech at Alexandria (probably early in the second
secuted (p. 153 above), and abstinence from certain century A.D.), in which after mentioning philosophers
meats was a ground for suspicion; but his father's ofthe professional type he says (xxxii. 10):
motive was not fear but a dislike of philosophy. It is
'There is no small number ofthose who are called Cynics
likely that the underground basilica found in 1917 ne ar
in the city: in fact there is a crop of this as of anything else.
the Porta Maggiore in Rome was meant to serve for
It is, however, a spurious and ignoble tribe of men who
the meetings of a sodality of Pythagoreans. Here was know hardly anything, but need food. They beg at cross-
a life with a scheme and a brotherhood and religion. roads, in alleys, in the porticoes of temples and cheat slaves
Also it had its saints, a point to which we return. This and sailors and the masses of that type; stringing together
bodyfinally disappears, doubtless through being merged jests and much chatter and the well-known cheap repartees.
in the Platonic revival ofthe second century A.D. Accordingly they do no good but rather the greatest harm,
Again, there was the Cynic life of detachment and for they accustom the foolish to mock at philosophers: it is
freedom. The Cynic school, founded by Antisthenes, as though one were to accustom children to laugh at their
pu t in to practice ideas earlier advanced on the worth- teachers.'
1 70 Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy 17 1
We know the frequency of the type from references in to me: ifyou had, I should have taken the initiative in
Lucian, who gives us in his Demonax a picture· of the coming to where I am now at your call. Would you take
ideal Cynic: weIl into the fourth century we find Julian my children? I t was for you that I reared them. Or some
polemizing Against an unlearned Cynic. Now any ofthese part of my body? Take it: it is not much that I promise,
preachers migh t be seeking to effect some sort ofchange for I shall so on leave the whole. Or my life-breath? Of
of life-and the embracing of the profession meant in course I will not hinder your receiving back that which you
itself some sort of sense of vocation. have given. Whatever you seek, you will have from me
with my consent. What is it then? I would rather have
'He must know', Epictetus (iii. 22. 23) says of the true
given it than surrendered it. What need was there to take
Cynic, 'that he has been sent by Zeus to men as a messenger
it? You could have it as a gift: even as it is, you do not take
(angelos), in order to show them that in questions of good
it away, for only the man who holds on to a thing is deprived
and evil they have gone astray and are seeking the true
ofit.'
nature of good and evil where it is not, while never noticing
where it iso The Cynic is a scout meant to spy out what The doctrine of moral progress in later Stoicism gave
things are friendly to men and what hostile.' to the individual a way of self-improvement of which
This. is in a picture drawn for the benefit ofan intending theoretically there had been no hope when the orthodox
Cynlc and drawn by a Stoic who says (iii. 2 I. 18) ofthe view left nothing between the complete wisdom of the
teaching profession that one needs to have been advised sage and the complete madness of all others. But above
by God to take it up 'as God counselled Socrates to all it made the universe intelligible: in Edwyn Bevan's
take the task of confuting men's opinions, Diogenes phrase, 'it made man at horne in the universe' . And in
that ofrebuking men in a kingly manner, Zeno that of Posidonius it created the idea ofa lofty detached piety-
instructing men and laying down doctrines'. something very like the speech put in St. Paul's mouth
Stoicism also, throughout its development, supplied in Acts xvii, ifwe subtract therefrom the references to
a motive for the life of discipline and for the taming of J esus and to the Resurrection.
the passions in its doctrine ofnaturallaw and ofman's So again Epicureanism gave to its ideal of the calm
conformity thereunto, in its emphasis on the writing of life the driving force of a joy rooted in deliverance from
the law in man's reason, on the ideal standards of its fears of capricious divine action and of supernatural
paradoxes concerning the Wise Man, and (in its later terrors, the joy we may say of a great simplification of
form) on an active doing of good, and throughout, on life which others must be enabled to share. We may
the acceptance of the world-order in a ready obedience. recall the outburst ofLucretius iii. 1053 ff. on the futility
This reaches a climax in the prayer which Seneca says and boredom ofhis contemporaries: it would not be so,
he heard from the Cynic Demetrius (Dial. i. 5· 5): he cries, ifthey knew the causes of their emotions.
'The only complaint which I can make concerning you, 'Often a man grows weary of being at horne and goes
o irnmortals, is that you did not first rnake your will known forth from his stately halls and suddenly returns, since he
Conversion to Philosoplzy Conversioll to Philosoph) 173
perceives that it is not a whit better outside. He speeds his living and a luxurious table nor the refinements of
ponies and rushes to his villa as though he were in hot haste sexual pleasure, but philosophy can alone secure, this
to take help to a blazing house, and as soon as he has 1 shall set forth later.' Epicuri de grege porcus?
reached the threshold he at once yawns, or sinks heavily Philosophy at this time appeared as in a sense a unity,
to sleep and seeks forgetfulness, or even hurries to the city as to J uvenal xiii. 19 ff. and to the lexicographer Pollux,
again. In this way each one flees from himself-and the who a little later (iv. 39 f.) defines the philosopher as
self he cannot escape dings to hirn against his will-and
the man able to relieve humanity ofthis and that failing,
hates hirnself, since in his sickness he does not know the
and his functions as reproaching and exhorting and
cause of the complaint. Each one if he saw this weIl, would
abandon affairs and seek first to know the nature of the
teaching. Any philosophy of the time set up a standard
universe, since ''the issue at stake is the condition of all time, of values different from those of the world outside and
not of one hour, all the existence waiting and to be expected could serve as a stimulus to astern life, and therefore
after death.' to something like conversion when it came to a nlan
The real note of Epicurus and of his followers is living carelessly. It is said that Polemo when drunk
a simple evangelical fervour. Nothing illustrates this and garlanded went into Xenocrates's lecture-room,
more strikingly than the confession of faith which one was moved to abandon his earlier ways, and devoted
Diogenes of Oenoanda caused to be inscribed in a hirnself so eagerly to philosophy that he became next
portico about the end of the second century A.D.: head ofthe schoo!. Again, in one ofLucian's Dialogues
of Courtesans (x), we read how a teacher of philosophy
'Being now through age at the setting of life and an but
has forbidden Drose' s lover to come to her, promising
on the point ofleaving it with a fair hymn ofpraise for the
that his pupil would after training in hardship be
fullness of all pIe asant things, I have wished to give help
now to an men of parts, lest death should come on me first. happy and virtuous.
As I have said before, most men suffer alike from false Dio of Prusa had been in the early years of the
opinions, just as if it were in a plague, and the number of Flavian perioda rhetorician, a man of me ans and
sufferers increases (for through imitation they catch the position, and a foe of philosophy, against which he
disease from one another like sheep). Now it is right to wrote. Und er Domitian, probably in 82, a powerful
give help to future generations (for they are ours, even if friend of his fell, and Dio hirnself was banished. He
they are yet unborn). Therefore, having regard also to the began, he tells us, to ask hirnself whether exile, poverty,
love of man kind and to the duty of giving help to strangers old age, sickness, and other such things were not heavy
who are at hand, I have decided to use this colonnade and to some and light to others, according to their strength
to set forth in it the means of safety for an to see, for the and purpose, and went to the Delphic oracle. The
benefits conferred by the written word are spread abroad.' oracle told him to go on with what he was doing and
EIsewhere he says: 'Now what it is which neither wealth to pursue his purpose to the end of the world. So he
can give nor civic reputation nor monarchy nor fine put on humble raiment and set about wandering every-
174 Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy 175
where. Some called hirn a tramp, some a beggar, and who does not rush to harm citizens or to do unjust
some a philosopher, and \vith no intention or pride on actions but contemplates the unaging order ofimmortal
his part the last name stuck to hirn and people used to nature, where and how and whenceit came to be: to
come and consult hirn. He saw their need of guidance such an one intentions of evil never occur.' His great
and followed the example of Socrates. This is a very scientific contemporary Democritus says that he would
notable story. Dio did not suddenly fee! the attraction rather find the explanation for one thing than become
of a philosophie teacher or schoo!. External events king of the Persians. Plato in his Theaetetus gives two
shattered his world and imperceptibly he gravitated striking pictures, one of the philosopher absorbed in
towards the only way of finding a scheme of values eternal verities, the other of the worldling. But the
which would make life tolerable and give it meaning. classic formulationof the idea was given by Aristotle.
The ascetic life, without a positive complement, can One of his early works, the Protrepticus or Exhortation to
attract for a time a man who is disgusted \vith himse!f: Philosophy (addressed to a Cypriot prince Themison),
declamation against luxury formed a staple feature of is a passionate plea for the supreme value of this life of
the mime, and Seneca (Epistles, 108. 9) teIls us thatlines contemplation. Much later, at the end of the Nico-
condemning avarice were applauded in the theatre, machean Ethics he says (p. 1177 b. 26 ff.), 'Such a life
but asceticism requires a positive complement. In would be better than a man's life: for he who lives so
Cynicism and in not a little popular Hellenistic philo- will live not by virtue ofhis humanity, but by virtue of
sophy this complement was the sense of freedom. Y ou the divinity in hirn .... If mind is in comparison \vith
had simplified your life: you were secure in the arsenal man divine, so also is such a life in comparison with
of your self-sufficiency: and Fortune could not hurt man's life'; in the Metaphysics contemplation is the sole
you. At worst, you would have had the satisfaction of activity of God. This enthusiasm runs through subse-
playing weIl therole dealt to you on this queer stage, quent antiquity. We have to think of its echoes not
and this, aS)\Te shall see later (p. 194), was no mere merely in the serious Virgil, but in the frivolous Pro-
conventional metapnor. Commonly the complement pertius and Ovid: we have to think of the influence
for the deeper student of philosophy was the joy of the exerted on the young Augustine by Cicero's following
life of contemplation. There is mystic contemplation- of Aristotle in his Hortensius.
as when we hear in Plato's Banquet, p. 220, of Socrates Thirdly, philosophy produced some of the most
on the campaign ofPotidaea standing wrapt in thought striking ideal types, the saints of antiquity. Around
all day and night and then at dawn saying a prayer to all the prominent figures who founded or developed
the sun and going his way. But more prominent is the schools there grew not only anecdotes but also haloes.
steady concentration on knowledge as the worthiest Plato received cultus alm ost immediately after death
occupation for a rational being. 'Blessed is he', says and soon could be spoken of as ApoIlo's son; Pytha-
Euripides, 'who has won the learning of knowledge, goras acquired a legend which grew continuaIly;
Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy 177
Epicurus is to Lucretius a god; Diogenes is to Cercidas, faded during the Hellenistic period, philosophy taking
a century after his death, 'the heavenly dog'. Apol- an interest in the theory of style and rhetoric in the
lonius of Tyana soon bccomes superhuman, Epictetus discussion of general abstract issues; from the begin-
a pagan saint. Celsus suggests Orpheus, Anaxarchus, ning of the first eentury B.C. till late in the Empire
and Epictetus as men reaIly worthy of veneration. few doubted that philosophy was the natural crown
Popular story is fuIl of philosophie martyrs who died of education: after the rudimentary stage came the
rather than flatter cruel tyrants, as for instance, grammarian's teaching, then the rhetorical school,
Theodorus, or the Stoics in Tacitus, and there was a from which those who could proceeded to philosophy.
'death-bed' literature. The literature which grew up It corresponded to going to the university. Only a
around philosophers, particularly Pythagoras, appears limited number could go to Athens or one of the other
to have had no small influence on early Christian famous centres: but a great many heard some philo-
hagiographie legend, above all ascetic legend. The sophy, for there were many private teachers scattered
philosopher was in popular imagination superhuman over their world and it is known that some of them
and liable to be thaumaturgic. Celsus speaks of his were men of standing in their cities: further, we are
being unassailable by magie. Porphyry, ad Marcellam, told that there were not a few impostors in the pro-
I I, of his being given the power of a god by God. This fession, a fact which suggests that the demand was
heroization was, of course, in the first pi ace the pro- considerable: in the later Empire the profession waned,
duct of the impression made by philosophy, but it but in the first century of our era it was at its height.
was cumulative and had a considerable effect on the Nor was a man's chance of acquiring some tinge of
popular imagination. philosophy limited to youth. We hear of. fam?us
Fourthly, there was the philosopher in person to persons dropping in at the lectures of Posldonlus;
hear, like the Cynics mentioned earlier, or like the Maximus of Tyre seems to have had audiences com-
professional philosophers lecturing to students or (as parable in social quality with some of M. Bergson's;
Dion ofPrusa) to general audiences or (as Maximus of and Lucian in his Hermotimus has drawn for all ages
Tyre) to fashionable audiences, or again the philo- the pathetic person who starts late to study the Stoic
sopher companion, as we find hirn in so many great system and is always painfully hopeful of mastering it.
Roman households. In education philosophy had very A lecture might have on any ofthese men the effect
great prestige. The development ofspeculative thought which it had on Polemo: we must recall the prominence
in the fifth century B.C. had eoincided with a wide- in popular philosophie teaching and writing of de-
spread demand for higher education: in the fourth we clamation against luxury and vice. A man who heard
know the rivalry between Plato's training by philo- Musonius Rufus or Epictetus at Rome was doing the
sophy preceded by suitable preliminary studies and thing most nearly equivalent to hearing a Christi an
the purely literary training ofIsocrates. This antithesis sermon later: the technique was in fact inherited.
178 Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy 179
Epictetus remarks, iii. 23. 37, in criticizing those who relationswith individuals: we need only think of the
read and discuss for the purpose of display, 'Or tell me, works addressed by Seneca to particular friends, or of
who, when hearing you reading a work or discoursing, the intimacy of Cornutus with Persius. And a philo-
feit in great distress about hirnself, or turned to look sopher in the flesh could receive something of the
into his soul, or having gone out said, The Philosopher homage paid to the philosoph er saints of the past,
touches me to the quick: I must no longer act thus?' as Epicurus did from Metrodorus: Seneca teIls us
(cf. Seneca, Epistles, 108. 3). His discourse (iii. 2 I) (Epistles, 108.13) how when he heard Attalus denoun-
against people who light-heartedly take up sophistic cing sin he regarded hirn as exaIted and raised above
lecturing is equally instructive for his conception of the the summit of humanity.
responsibilities and possibilities of the position. To hirn Again, philosophical literature exercised no small
the philosopher's lecture-room was a 'hospital for sick influence. In this respect Plato above all put philo-
souls' . sophy on the map: the supreme stylistic value of his
Again, a striking feature of the early Empire is the writings gave them a public which they might other-
presencein rich households ofphilosophers, commonly, wise have lacked. At Oxyrhynchus, where little other
no doubt, freedmen. We know previously the calling philosophy has been found, there is some Plato and
in of philosophers as tutors for kings' sons (as Philip a fragment of Aristotle's Protrepticus: at Memphis there
sent for Aristotle) or as advisers and companions (as was areal philosophical lihrary. It is particularly
Euphraeus was sent by Plato to Perdiccas 111, Diony- important that a large literature of elementary intro-
sius sent for Plato, and Alexander took Callisthenes ductions and summaries grew up and was widely used.
East, Callisthenes actually coming as a writer: Anti- The Christi an apologists found the concepts which they
gonus Gonatas invited Zeno to Pella and secured employed not merely ready made hut predigested.
Persaeus). The rise of Rome brought many Greek
philosophers into Roman households either as slaves We can here use the word conversion. for the turn-
who received their freedom or as free men who were ing from luxury and self-indulgence and superstition
impoverished. (another frequent object of philosophic criticism) to a
Such Greeks might come either as tutors, who would life of discipline and sometimes to a life of contempla-
stay on in the household, or as companions useful for tion, scientific or mystic. Plato spoke of the object of
various purposes in view oftheir versatility. These men education as a 'turning around of the soul' (Republic,
were, as has been remarked, the equivalent of domestic 5 I 8 D ff.): the word epistrophe, later used by Christians
chaplains: we find them at death-beds, as for instance of conversion, is applied to the effects of philosophy,
Demetrius the Cynic at Thrasea's (Tacitus, Annals, meaning there by an orientation or focusing of the soul,
xvi. 34). A philosopher who was mainly a writer or the turning of men from carelessness to true piety,
a professional teacher might also have similar close for which conuersio is used by Cicero (On the Nature of
180 Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy
the Gods, i. 77). General exhortations to humanity all expecied that devotion to philosophy would makc
include the instruction to sober up. We find metanoeo, a difference to their hearers.
the verbal correlative of metanoia, repentance, in the Further, this idea was not thought of as a matter of
Poimandres tract (p. 4 above), and the noun itself in purely intellectual conviction. The philosopher com-
a curious popular work, the Picture of Cebes, ascribed monly said not 'Follow my arguments one by one:
on internal grounds to the first century A.D. The term check and control them to the best of your ability:
implies an intellectual value judgement, and commonly truth should be dearer than Plato to you', but 'Look
a momentary realization rather than the entry on a at this picture which I paint, and can you resist its
state: it is also a ,vord used by general rather than by attractions? Can you refuse a hearing to the legitimate
philosophical writers. rhetoric which laddress to you in the name of virtue?'
Cebes wrote a moral dialogue suppc;>sed to be in- Even Epicurus says in an argument, 'Do not be de-
spired by an allegorie al painting in atempie ofKronos. ceived, men, or led astray: do not fall. There is no
It describes the good life and the bad life: the only natural fellowship between reasonable beings. Believe
deliverance from the bad life is given by Metanoia. me, those who express the other view deceive you and
The man who chooses the good life is safe (ch. 26). 'He argue you out of what is right.' Epictetus, ii. 19· 34,
wjll never be disturbed by pain or grief or incontinence also employs the same appeal, Believe me, and counters
or avarice or poverty or any other evil thing. For he opponents by arguments which appeal to the heart
is the master of all things and is superior to all that and not to the head. Inside the schools, at least in-
formerly distressed hirn, as those who exhibit snakes side the Academic school, there was an atmosphere
(are to their snakes). Nothing distresses hirn any more of hard thinking, of which something survives in the
because he has a remedy.' Earlier Cebes says (ch. 3): various commentaries on Aristotle. Yet even in the
'If a man comes to know, folly disappears and he is schools this was overcast by tradition and loyalty.
saved: he becomes blessed and happy throughout his Thus, while Plotinus was an independent genius, the
whole life.' subsequent development ofNeoplatonism is a building
The goal is a deliverance; sozesthai occurs eigh t times of thinking upon earlier thinking which has become
in this short treatise, diasozesthai once: both imply being dogma. Even technical philosophy was scholastic in
put out of re ach of certain dangers. The ultimate the less complimentary sense of that epithet. In the
authority lies in the commands given by the Daimonion last struggle Christian dogma was in conflict not with
to each man when entering on life. This deliverance the free Greek spirit, but with other dogma and with
must be sought by men with all their energy: they must fossilized tradition. The philosophy which addressed
not suffer themselves to be distracted by trivialities itself to the world at large was a dogmatic philosophy
such as the liberal arts; so says Cebes, and so says seeking to save souls.
Seneca. Other philosophers took a less rigid view, bu t What response did the appeal of philosophy evoke?
182 Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy
I t is noteworthy how often philosophers use the meta- to years of manhood, he put himself under Cornutus
phor ofinitiation or of aseries ofinitiations to describe (3 6 ff.), who received his tender years in a Socratic
the apprehension of philosophical truth: its attainment bosom. Hereupon the poet's soul feit the weight of
is an epopteia, a seeing. To take one example, Seneca reason and was eager to be overcome by it, and took
(Epistles, 90. 28) thus describes the function of philo- new features. He warns others, young and old, to
sophy: follow his example (64 f.). Most of his small book of
satires is in this vein: the formal inspiration is from
'She shows which things are evil, which only seem evil; she
frees the mind of idle nonsense; she gives solid greatness,
Horace or Lucilius, but the content is largely Stoic
while checking swollen greatness which takes airs without preaching. The second satire is in effect a diatribe on
justification; she does not allow the difference between the prayer with criticisms of popular superstition. The
great and the inflated to be miss~d; she gives a knowledge third is perhaps a veiled Corifiteor: and here again he
of all nature and of her own. She sets forth what the gods turns to humanity at large (1. 66):
are and what their nature is, what are the powers of the '0 poor wretches, learn, and co me to know the causes of
underworld, what are lares and genii, what are ~ouls given things, what we are, for wh at life we are born, what the
a permanent existence in the second shape of deities, wher~ assigned order is, where the turning-point of the course is
they are, what they do, wh at are their powers and desires. to be rounded gently, what limit to set to money, for what
These are her initiatory rites; they open not some local it is right to pray, wh at is the use of hard cash, how much
shrine but the vast temple of all the gods, the universe itself, you ought to spend on your country and on those ne ar and
whose true images and true likenesses she has brought dear to you, what kind of man God ordered you to be and
within the mind's eye.' where as a man you are placed.'
The change produced is fundamental. In an earlier The objections of the Philistine, here ~ centurion, are
letter (6. I) Seneca writes: mentioned, and a vivid imaginary dialogue afa patient
'I understand, Lucilius, that 1 am not only being im- with a doctor gives the answer by inference-'you
proved but that·1 am being transformed. 1 do not already are much worse than you will let yourself realize.
promise or hope that nothing is left in me that needs change. Let philosophy diagnose your case.' Persius would
. .. The very fact that the soul sees failings in itself which have accepted the phrase of Epictetus, iii. 23· 30 , 'the
it previously ignored is a proof of its change to a better lecture-room of a philosopher is a hospital'.
state. . .. I want to pour everything over into 'you, and I In theory, at least, this conversion could be instan-
rejoice in learning that 1 may teach.' . taneous. Plutarch says in the treatise which bears the
With these no doubt sincere professions we may ti tle A summary view of the fact that the Stoics make more
compare those of a young contemporary, the poet Paradoxical Assertions than the Poets (4):
Persius. His fifth satire, addressed to his teacher 'The man who is in the eyes of the Stoics worst at morn-
Cornutus, teIls incidentally how, as soon as he came ing is, if it happens, best at evening. He may fall asleep
o
Conversion to Philosophy Conversion to Philosophy
mad (or, capricious) and ignorant and unjust and unchaste, our souls have had into the world of becoming, while the
yes, and a slave forsooth and poor and needy, and rise up gods have not neglected us, as the sons of Atreus did hirn,
on the same day having become a king and rich and pros- but proved our saviours and not forgotten uso I invite you,
perous, and temperate andjust and firm and free from idle who have had to struggle and contend with many things
opinions. He has not grown a. beard or the signs of man- that were painful, now above all to hold to the moorings of
hood on a young and tender body: instead, on top of a philosophy-the only safe moorings-and not to give way
weak, soft, unmanly, vacillating soul he has acquired a more than you should to the distresses resulting from my
perfect mind, supreme intelligence, a godlike disposition, absence, and not in your longing for the teaching which
a knowledge set above idle opinions, and atemper free I can give to lose wh at has already been given.'
from change, and that although his wickedness never abated
before. On a sudden he has become almost a hero or a He speaks of her as thinking that in leaving hirn she
daimon or a god where he was a beast and the worst of would leave the way of salvation and the guide along
beasts.' with it (8). Here, as elsewhere, philosophy is an initia-
tion and actions are the proofs of each man's opinions;
So much for the direct contact with the philosophers.
There is one famous instance of conversion by a book.
'he who has believed must so live, in order that he may himself
St. Augustine (Confessions, iii. 4) says:
to his hearers be a witness towhat he says'; the whole tone
is religious.
'Among these people, being not yet in manhood' s strength,
In the previous chapter we have seen sporadic indi-
I was learning books of eloquence, in which I wished to
cations of conversion to religion in antiquity. Against
shine with a purpose flighty and to be condemned, in the
joy of human vanity. In the usual order of studies I had them we can set a far greater body of evidence for
come to a book ofa certain Cicero, whose speech is admired conversion to philosophy. A mystery evoked a strong
by almost all though his heart is not. But that book contains emotional response and touched the soul deeply for
his exhortation unto philosophy and is called Hortensius. a time, but philosophy was able both to turn men
Now that book changed my affections and turned my from evil and to hold before them a good, perhaps
prayers to Thee thyself, 0 Lord, and made my wishes and never to beattained, but presenting a permanentobject
desires quite other. Suddenly all vain hopes grew cheap of desire to which one seemed to draw gradually
in my eyes and I yearned for the immortality of wisdom nearer. Further, in spite of differences of ideas, philo-
with a burning zeal which passes belief and I began to rise sophy in the Hellenistic age and under the Empire was
that I might return unto Thee.' an entity and philosophers were a class falling under
He was eighteen at the time. a specific rubric; there was a general antithesis of
Again we may recall the words of Porphyry in his philosophie and common ethic and values.
Letter to Marcella, his wife (5): WhenJulian initiated his attempt to revive paganism
'Philoctetes suffered his wound from a deadly snake, you he used the one thing which could conceivably have
in full knowledge ofwhat a fall, how great a fall it is which given to it the power to hold its own, and that was the
186 Conversion to Philosophy
way of philosophy. His friend Sallustius, after a general
survey of belief, says (eh. 13), 'Of the gods and of the XII
universe and of human affairs this account will suffice THE SPREAD OF CHRISTIANITY AS A
for those who neither can be steeped in philosophy SOCIAL PHENOMENON
nor are incurably diseased in soul.' On the other
HE frame of mind in which a man interested in
side, Christianity did not aisregard these values, and
Ambrose could use his Cicero, just as, earlier, Philo T Christianity approached it was in the first place
determined largely by the impressions of it generally
and the Apologists, while regarding pagan religion as
unworthy and untrue, were eager to reconcile pagan current in society as a whole. We must here endeavour
to form some idea of the nature of these impressions
philosophy and their own teaching.
and to see Christianity not as Irenaeus or Eusebius saw
it but as theJohn Doe and Richard Roe ofthe second
century did. First, however, we must briefly review
the early evolution of the Church. The Christian
movement started as a ferment within Judaism and
was at Jerusalem so placed as to be able to influence
other J ews who came up for festivals and visiting J ews
from the Dispersion in all its extent. Such personal
contacts and carryings explain the presence of disciples
of John the Baptist at Ephesus, and the origin of
the Christian communities at Rome and Alexandria.
There was much coming and going; a rescript of
Claudius in 41 refers to the fact that the Alexandrian
J ews were in the habit of bringing in their brethren
from Syria or Egypt and forbids the practice.
It is not likely that the Apostles in Jerusalem had
a missionary aim in the full sense. Difficult as it is to
disentangle the threads of our tradition, such sayings
as Matt. x. 5-6, 'Go not into the way of the Gentiles, and into
any ciry of the Samaritans: hut go rather to the lost sheep of the
house of Israel'; x. 23, 'Te shall not have gone over the cities
of Israel, tilt the Son of Man he come'; and xv. 24, 'I am not
.sent hut unto the lost sheep of the house of Israel', ring true as
188 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 18g
indications of the character of this first period. The preciseorigins of that belief: what is relevant is that we
task of the followers ofJ esus was ideally to prepare the should observe that the Jewish prophets ascribed this
chosen people for the impending coming ofthe kingdom possession to the future Messiah and (la ter) to the
and the end ofthe present world-order; in fact, to pre- people oflsrael, that a general outpouring ofSpirit was
pare as large a proportion as they could. They did this expected to come in the days of the Messiah, that the
not by an attempt primarily at persuasiveness but by belief is very firmly fixed in our tradition, and that this
a statement of certain facts which Israel ought to know: fixation is manifested by the variety of concepts current
kerygma, heralding, implies an activity like that of the both as to the possession itself and as to the way in
town-crier. Like the town-crier they made known the which it was communicated to each individual who
resurrection of J esus as proving his divine mission, adhered to the movement. The consciousness of spirit-
the duty of repentance, and the future coming of the possession carried with it the consciousness ofauthority.
Kingdom and theJudgement ofGod. From their point The Synoptic Gospels give us an uncertain answer on
ofview theywere a movementwithinJudaism destined the nature of this Spirit experience: but in effect the
by God to proclaim to i t God's summons to fulfil its truth is thatJohn the Baptist had appeared in the guise
vocation. This purpose was radical, but in a sense of a prophet and had opened the long-closed flood-
comparable with that of the Pharisees in their begin- gates of the tide of prophecy, and J esus had thrown
ning, and with that ofthe people ofthe New Covenant them wide. The Synoptists ascribe this consciousness
at Damascus, known to us from the so-called Zadokite of authority to Jesus personally and represent him as
work (in which, be it remembered, the official caste at giving it to the Twelve and to the Seventy. This means
J erusalem is stigmatized very much as in the Synoptic that individual Jews ofthe larger world with a wider
Gospels). Of necessity the failure of the main body of perspective and freer views would be liable to feel
Jews to respond to their announcement made them, empowered to take a bolder line. Acts preserves the
like the Covenanters of Damascus or the Wesleyans in memory of the emergence of such men in its account
the Church of England, into a community within the (eh. vi), ofthe appointment ofthe Seven, all men with
community. Their interest in the reception of foreign Greek names and one a proselyte of Antioch: their
proselytes was probably no greater than that ofnormal appointmellt isexpressly described as resulting from
Judaism: perhaps it was less, for they had a special and complaints of the 'Hellenists', Greek-speaking disciples,
pressing duty with their own folk. against the Jews in the Christian community.
There was, however, in this movement, even from One of the Seven, Stephen, incurred acharge of
the earliest stage, an element which had in it the seeds blasphemy and ~as put to death after uttering a
of development in a further direction. It was the belief passionate protest against the behaviour of official
that the Spirit of God had been poured out upon the Judaism. This incident quickened the pace of events.
community. It is not necessary here to discuss the I t made the movement as a whole suspect to J ewish
190 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 191

conservatism, which did not shrink from coercive not to destroy. Paul, on the other hand, had regarded
measures: there was a dispersion. them and theirs as apostates and had thrown hirnself
'ThosewhowerescatteredafterthetribulationinStephen's heart and soul into the struggle to suppress them. For
time went as far as Phoenicia and Cyprus and Antioch, hirn to become a Christian meant in the first instance
speaking to none saveJews alone. Now there were so me of a complete change of face. I t is the first conversion to
them from Cyprus and Cyrenaica who came to Antioch Christianity of which we have knowledge. He brought
and talked to Greeks also, preaching the Lord J esus. And to it not merely a fresh enthusiasm but also an imperious
the hand of the Lord was with them and a large number inner need to discover an interpretation and reconcilia-
believed and turned to the Lord. And word concerning tion of the old and the' new in his religious life.
them reached the ears of the Church in J erusalem, and From Antioch Paul and Barnabas set out to Cyprus,
they sent Barnabas to Antioch.' (Acts xi. 19-22 .) no doubt because it was Barnabas's horne: there they
There first the disciples were called Christians. operated in synagogues. What induced Paul and Bar-
This means that in the life ofthat city, where Greek nabas to go farther afield, whether for instance the
and Semitic elements blended freely, and where there puzzling story of the encounter with Elymas before
were many Gentiles who had been drawn to Judaism, Sergius Paulus covers some real success in the wider
there grew up a full self-consciousness in the new move- world, we do not know. Movements go ahead on their
ment. While there may be an accentuated conservatism impetus and belief in the Spirit gave an authoritative
in a group living under these conditions, the inward if disciplined sanction to the sudden impulses of the
pressure of J ewish loyal ty on reformers was weaker mind.
here. To break with tradition in Jerusalem was a hard ,According to Acts, this missionary journey and those
thing; it was like starting the Protestant Reformation which succeeded it observed the principle that the
in Rome. In AntiochJudaism and this new sect within message must be preached first in synagogues. I t
it had their being in a community the extern al culture reached in this way the public of Hellenistic Jews,
of which was pagan, in spite of the presence of many proselytes, sympathizers who would not go the whole
Jews. way, and others who were drawn to the synagogue by
This community wasjoined by Paul, who had earlier the rumour that an interesting visitor was in the city:
attached hirns elf to the Christian movement under gossip travelled fast in an ancient to\vn. From the
circumstances which gave hirn a new attitude. The point of view of the last dass the coming of Paul was of
Twelve in Jerusalem, and no doubt most oftheir early the order of the arrival of Dion of Prusa orany other
adheren ts, had found in the Gospel of J esus and the wandering sophist. He talked also to individuals in the
Gospel which took shape around J esus the integration market-place at Athens and by special invitation before
and completion of the religious traditions in which the Areopagus, bu t normally he used the synagogue
they had always lived. For them he came to fulfil, and until that was made impossible for hirn, as at Corinth.
The Spread cf Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 193
where he taught for eighteen months in the house of stages) its abstinence from secular employments. I
Justus (xviii. 7), and at Ephesus, where he used the mean that the man in the street did not know this as
lecture hall of Tyrannus (xix. 9); even so at the next a type like the priests of Cybele or Isis. The magistrate
town he went to the synagogue; at Rome of necessity did, as we see from the singling out of Ignatius for
he taught in his own quarters (xxviii. 16 ff). At Lystra punishment. The one Christian type known to the
he spoke perforce to the multitude (xiv. 15 ff.), but populace was that of the martyr.
otherwise he did not, like a wandering Cynic, address We must seek to make clear to ourselves what a
popular audiences at random. martyr was from a non-Christian point of view. Law
This is no doubt characteristic ofthe early spread of has been defined as the interference of the State in the
the movement. The world as a whole did not know actions and passions of humanity. The martyr is the
much of Christians as distinct from J e\vs till the fire of man who resists this interference, who claims that his
Rome in 64, when Nero seized on them as scapegoats resistance is based on other and higher sanctions, and
to satisfy popular resentment and made the admission who will not concede a point even if compliance would
of Christianity proof of guilt. Thereafter they were in save him from the consequences of his previous dis-
the public mind, rather than in the public eye, as the obedience. Often he welcomes the opportunity of
object of the general odium directed against the Jews bearing witness to the faith which is in him. For the
for being an anti-social and highly cohesive body, and Christian there was no doubt how he must act. 'Who-
of the special odium incurred by their reputation as soever therefore shall confess me before men, hirn will
incendiaries,revolutionaries, andgenerallyabominable. I confess also before my Father which is in heaven.
But they were not conspicuous. The works directed But whosoever shall deny me before men, hirn will I
against Christianity do not allude to out-of-door preach- also deny before my Father which is in heaven' (Matt.
ing. In the second century literary works were written x. 32 -3). To fail at this point was the supreme betrayal
in defence of the new faith, but there is no indication and damnation; to succeed, the supreme proof of love
that they were read by any save Christians or men on and assurance of Heaven. Herein Christianity follows
the way to be such or professed students of the move- a Jewish tradition which crystallized in the time of the
ment such as Celsus. There was a school of religious Maccabees and appeared again under Caligula: to die
education at Alexandria at the end of the second rather than break the law was the ideal way of hallow-
century, but it did not advertise its existence, and ing God's name.
presumably people were brought to it or came to it as We have to see this as did pagan spectators. They
a result of incidental knowledge of it. There were no knew similar situations. Dionysus in the Bacchae, ap-
visible out-of-door ceremonials, no temples recognizable pearing as one of his priests and standing before
as such till much later, and no priesthood displaying Pentheus, is a perfect type: he cannot yield to the king,
its character by its dress or its tonsure, or (in the early having received his commission from the god in person
194 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 195
and he knows that the god will deliver hirn when he soldier such a citizen as he should and to produce me
wills. Four centuries later this scene comes into Horace's before 'the rest of men as a witness to wh at things are
mind as an illustration of the front which the wise man unworthy of choice. Behold, all ofyou, your fears are false,
your desires are vain. . .. Zeus shows me to men in pover~y,
can present to hostile circumstances (Epistles, i. 16.73).
out of office, in sickness: he sends me to Gyara, he carfIes
Socrates again, in Plato's Apolog), p. 29 c, makes the me off to prison, not in hatred nor in neglect . . . but by
explicit statement : way oftraining me and using me as a witness to others.'
'If you should say to me, 0 Socrates, at the moment we will
not hearken to Anytus, but we release you on this condition, that you Again Epictetus teIls of the ans.we~ whi?h Helvidius
no longer abide in this inquiry or practise philosophy-and ifyou gave to Vespasian's message forbidding hIrn to attend
are caught still doing this, you will be put to death, if then you the meeting ofthe Senate (i. 2. 19):
would release me on these conditions, I should say to you, 'It is in your power to forbid me to be a senator: but
rou have my thanks and a.ffection, men of Athens, but I will obey while I am 1 must attend.' 'WeIl, but when you attend
the god rather thanyou and, while I have breath and power, I will keep silence.' 'Do not ask my opinion and 1 will be ~ilent.'
not desistfrom practising philosophy.' 'But I must ask it.' 'And I must say what seems fIght to
Further, in Crito we are taught that he respected the me.' 'Ifyou do 1 will put you to death.' 'WeIl, did I say to
laws of the city and would not run away. For hirn you that 1 was immortal? Y ou will do y~ur par~ an? I
safety was not enough: he had to witness, not indeed mine. It is your part to put me to death, mIne to dIe.wüh-
to a dogma (for he had none) but to the imperious out a quiver, yours to send me into exile, mine to go wlthout
validity of his vocation. repining.'
The blood of martyrs is the seed of the Church: the So in a passage from Porphyry's Letter to Marcella quoted
death ofSocrates created the type ofwisdom and virtue earlier (p. 185) the word martys is used .of the constant
standing in heroie opposition to a world which can witnessing to one's tenets by one's actIons. Of cou~se
kill but which does not have the last word. We have the word martys is not a tide; it is a p:edicate descn.b-
seen that philosophie martyrs were not lacking later. ing the role of individuals who by their cond~ct testIfy
Epictetus, in a discourse On Firmness, thus sets forth the to the goodness of the scheme of the uruverse; so
lesson that we must fulfil the duties to which we are Senecasays oftheCynic Dernetrius, 'He is not a teacher
called (i. 29. 45). If a man is told to lay aside his purple- of the truth but a witness to it' (Epistles, 20. 9)·
striped robe and go forth in rags, how will he do it? We have spoken earlier of the life of Apollonius by
As a witness called by God. 'Come and hear witness to me: Philostratus. It teIls how Apollonius was brought
Jor you are worthy to be hroughtforward as a witness hy me.' before Tigellinus (iv. 44); there was a miracle, and
EIsewhere he remarks (iii. 24. I 12) : Apollonius expressed his utter indifference. 'The Go~
'Zeus wished to make me obtain from myself the proof of who allows hirn to be terrifying allows me to be unte~n­
this and hirns elf to know whether he has in me such a fied.' The judge feared that he might be fightIng
196 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 197
against God. Later, Domitian was said to desire him -so to speak, a fixed form' (x. 97). Some popular emotion
to stand his trial for treason. Apollonius wellt volun- ofsympathy might of course be aroused (Tacitus says
tarily to Rome, holding on the way at Cicero's villa it was, Annals, xv. 44), such as occurred in A.D. 61 when
a discourse in which he maintained that the wise man it was proposed to put to death the whole household of
ought to lay down his life for his tenets (vii. 14): 'he Pedanius Secundus, who had been murdered by one of
will deave to all he knows no less than to the sacred his slaves: the execution had to be carried out under
rites in which he was initiated.' When summoned strong military protection. But from the time of
before Domitian he was ready to trust the inspiration Domitian probably, Trajan: certainly, it was dear
of the moment (vii. 30): in prison he lifted his leg out that 'obstinacy' was punished and that a Christi an on
ofthe fetters and put it back again (vii. 38). He looked trial for being such could save his life by recantation.
forward to his trial as a dialectical discussion rather To a calm person like Pliny this seemed a blameworthy
than as a race to be run for his life (viii. 2). The final quality: 'I did not doubt that, whatever it was they
charges were (I) Apollonius's peculiar dress, (2) his admitted, their pertinacity and unbending obstinacy
being called a god, (3) his prophecy of the plague at ought to be punished'; and in like manner Marcus
Ephesus, (4) the sacrifice of a boy. Domitian acquitted Aurelius says (xi. 3):
hirn in the open court, which was attended byall the 'What a fine thing is the soul which is ready if it must
not~bles, but kept hirn for private discussion. Apol- here and now be freed from the body and either extinguished
lonlus uttered a few words and vanished from sight. or scattered or survive. But let this readiness come from
This type of the philosopher martyr is very notable' a personaljudgement and not out ofa mere spirit ofopposi-
in stories of persecution, Christians are represented a~ tion, like that of the Christians; let it be in a reasoned and
referring to the condemnation of Socrates as typical grave temper, capable of convincing another, and without
of the evil things done by paganism. theatricality.'
The Neronian persecution may weIl have suggested N ow this word theatricality deserves careful considera-
to the onlooker no such analogy. 1t is not dear that tion, for there was a certain fascination about self-
recantation availed then as it did later: the victims chosen death. We see this not only in the Stoic cult of
were socially inferior to the dass whose sufferings were suicide in the first century of our era (it is then the
glorified; the charge was in.substance incendiarism; and Stoic form of martyrdom par excellence), but also in
the proceedings (like the measures against magicians the constantly recurrent literary commonplace of the
and astrologers at various times, or J ews and Isiac wor- Gymnosophistae (Brahmins) who threw themselves into
shippers under Tiberius, or Jews under Claudius after the fire and thereby made a demonstration against
tumults) were police measures to secure public order. Alexander, and again in the frequent tendency of
Trajan wrote very pertinently to Pliny: eWe cannot Christians in times of persecutions to force themselves
establish any universal ordinance which should have , on the notice of the magistrates by tearing down images
198 The Spread qf Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 199
or by other demonstrations, with which we may com- both parties, sometimes other tortures. Throughout
pare the offer of Rusticus Arulenus to veto the decree there is an accent oftheatrical pose. One incident may
of the Senate against Thrasea. Clement of Alexandria suffice. In the romance of Achilles Tatius (vi. 20-1)
says: Thersandros has in his power the heroine Leucippe.
eWe ourselves hlame those who have leapt on death: for She refuses to accept his advances and he begins to
there are some who are not really ours hut share only the threateri. Leucippe says: 'If you wish to exercise
name, who are eager to deliver themselves over in hatred tyranny, then I wish to suffer it, onIy you_ shall not take
against the Creator, poor wretches, passionate for death. my virtue.' And she looks at Sosthenes and says: 'Bear
We say that these men commit suicide and are not martyrs, witness how I face evil treatment: for you wronged me
even if they are officially executed.' even more.' Sosthenesis ashamed athaving been caught
This popular attitude has various causes-a sort of out and says: 'She should be scourged with whips,
fascination of death, the aura surrounding voluntary master, and subjected to countless tortures, that .she
death in legend and life, adesire for theatrical pro mi- may learn not to despise her master.' 'Do as Sosthenes
nence, the very widespread idea of the body as a prison bids,' says Leucippe, 'for he gives excellent advice.
for the soul, and pessimism. In Christianity there is Produce your tortures. Bring a wheel: here are my
the special conviction that it was the way to life, as in hands, let hirn stretch them. Bring whips: here is my
Ignatius, who begs the Roman community not to make back, let him beat it. Bring fire: here is my body, let
interest to save him. Amor mortis conturbat me. him burn it. Bring a sword: here is my neck, let him
We must linger a little longer on these considerations, cut it. Behold a novel contest: one woman contends
for they bear materially on our understanding of the against all tortures and conquers everything.... Tell
ethos ofthe time. The Hellenistic period saw the birth me, are you not afraid of your Artemis, but do you
of the novel. The earliest complete specimen, that of force a maiden in the Maiden's city? 0 Mistress, where
Chariton, is not later than the second century of our era, is thy bow?' A little later she says, 'Arm yourself
and the genre is certainlyearlier. It is an imaginary therefore: now take against me your whips, wheel,
narrative based on romantic history: the specimens fire, sword: let your counsellor Sosthenes enter battle
preserved have plots which conform closely to a type. with you. I naked, alone, a woman, have one weapon,
A young married couple (in later forms a pair oflovers) freedom, which is neither crushed by blows nor cut by
are separated by circumstances, pass thröugh aseries the sword nor burnt by fire.' Earlier (v. 18) she writes
of tragic and violent misfortunes, and are finally re- to her lover Clitopho: 'For you have lIeft my mother
uni ted. The misfortunes generally include some very and entered on wanderings. For you I have suffered
close approximation to death, often something which shipwreck and robbers, for you I have become a victim
to the one member of the pair appears to be in truth and scapegoat and died twice aiready, for you I have
the other's death, and generally the flogging of one or been sold and bound with iron and carried a hoe and
200 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 20 I

dug the earth and been scourged; and all that I may are preparing some great and memorable example by
be to another man what you have been to another what happens to us.' That is it: they have the spot-
woman? Heaven forbid!' Such episodes are recurrent light on them, and they will go into the example~, the
in these novels. collections of instances of valour and other VIrtues
This is popular writing of a type hardly mentioned compiled
by superior persons-except by the Emperor Julian, To point a moral or adorn a tale.
when in his account ofwhat pagan priests should read In all this there is a certain stridency of self-expressio~.
he says, 'It would be suitable for us to handle histories Man stru ts his hour upon the stage: he must not fall
eomposed about real events: but we must avoid all the to make an impression on the audi~nce of the 'pres~nt
fictions written of old in the style of his tory, love and future. He will in any event dIe, but let hlm, hke
subjects and everything in fact of that type.' The a Homeric hero, die 'having done something great to
Greek novel bears wi tness to the fascina tion exereised come to the ears of those who are to be'. To most of
by the thought of invincible chastity and beautiful us it is obvious that our portion after death will very
young persons facing pain wi th reckless readiness, soon be oblivion. The men of the ancient world lived
features which we find aga in in hagiographie romance. in more limited circles, which clung to memories and
Leucippe's utterance is the popular equivalent of preserved them. The prospect o~ being forgotten was
Seneca's: 'Here is a contest worthy ofGod, a wise man to them very terrible, and to avold that a man would
at grip with Fortune.' The same attitude appears in do and suffer much. .
the school exercises in declamation of the period, for It is some distance from words to deeds, but Luclan
instance in one speech in the eollection passing under gives us an extraordinary story of how a Cynic Pere-
Quintilian's name (Declamationes maiores, vii) in which grinus, who had been a Christi an, burnt himself ~o
a poor man offers to be tortured, taunts his rich death on a pyre at Olympia as a way of apotheosls.
adversary with fears as to what he might then say, and Cassius Dio (liv. 9. 10), in commenting on the self-
enlarges on the sufferings which he is prepared to face. immolation of an Indian at Athens in 20 B.C., says:
Lucan's epic on the civil war is written in this tone:
one episode which may be mentioned is that of the 'Wishing to die either because he was of the caste ~f
cu tting off of a detachmen t of Caesar' s men under sophists (i.e. Brahmins) and was therefore mo~ed by ambI-
tion, or because of old age, in accord.ance wüh ancestral
Vulteius in the Adriatic. Before the last conflict against
custom or because he wished to make a dISplay for the benefit of
overwhelming odds Vulteius says to his men (iv. 492): Augustu~ (who had come there) and of the Athenians, he was
'The gods have set us on a boat which allies and foes initiated into the mysteries of the goddess . . . and cast
eail both see: the waters, the land, the island with its himself alive into the fire.
soaring rocks will all give witnesses; the two opposing
forces will watch from different shores. You, Fortune, It is important to realize that the common metaphor
202 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 2°3
oflife as a stage on which Fortune casts us for different be composed of people who knew one another, and
roles is no superficial metaphor. while there would be visitors from other communities
To return to methods: the definite rejection of the they would have letters of introduction. Of course in
new ideas by conservative Judaism and the withering the larger bodies, as for instance at Rome, it would
of Jewish Christianity after the disaster of 70 and its no doubt have been possible for an inquisitive person
sequel in 135 cut the connexion with the synagogue, to find his way in, as Burton did to Mecca. If he did,
thoughitsmembersand the fringe ofinterested Gentiles he was probably very disappointed. He sa\v no orgies,
remained a source of individual converts. Christianity and he saw little which would suggest to hirn wors~ip
had by now its own unobtrusive pI aces of meeting. as he knew it. He certainly witnessed nothing so
Pliny's Christians met before dawn, but the place is moving as the rite described by Walter Pater in Marius
, unspecified although, as Pliny teIls us, the numbers the Epicurean. He heard scriptural readings, a little
involved were considerable. Celsus taunts them with wearisome, perhaps, by reason of their length, an
privately doing and teaching the things which seem exhortation like those of the synagogue, and his
good to them, and speaks of Christian rites as performed impression here also may \vell have been that this
in cobblers' shops or fuIlers' shops. was of the nature of a philosophical school. If he was
We do not hear of open-air preaching to large able to stay for the central ceremony, he would have
audiences. For one thing, the early movement prob- difficulty in recognizing it as cultus in any ordinary
ably included few people of sufficient rhetorical skiIl sense. The officiants did not use a fixed form of words,
to be an attraction; for another, at any time from followed as in Roman prayers through fear that the
the Flavian period onwards, even when there was supernatural powers invoked would not give what
no direct persecution, there was the possibility: it was was desired if one syllable or gesture was varied.
wiser not to be provocative, except perhaps in Anatolia, The impression made on an educated pagan would
\vhere the numerical strength of the movement early probably be that this was of the nature of superstition,
became considerable. We find mass conversion in that is ungentlemanly popular religion. It might seem
Pontus in the third century. There Gregory the to hirn as extemporary prayer in public worship does
Thaumaturge, when he came, was a man far superior to a man brought up in the tradition of the Roman
in culture to the milieu in which he preached. liturgy. The prayer was unusual also in its absence of
It has been remarked earlier that Christianity had careful invocation by name-except for the prayers
no outdoor ceremonies capable of catching the eye. ,vhich in certain churches were probably addressed to
Their own private worship was not likely to excite J esus-and with reference to favourite seats of worship.
interest. Those on the way to baptism were excluded The culminating point was but the distribution of
from the Eucharist proper; so were outsiders. The bread and wine \vith a formula, after a long recital
group which met for these purposes in any place would of God's mercies. In pagan worship of a mystery
204 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 20 5
type what theology there was grew out of the rite; in did from a detached speculative standpoint and main-
this the rite was till the fourth century a very simple taining the distinction of superstition and piety (formu-
expression of a theology, with no deeper sense that lated in the Academy and maintained in different
would be apparent unless you were in the know. Even ways by Epicureans and Stoics but involving through-
in the fourth century, when the Eucharist acquired out a cultural distinction), in so far as Christianity is
a dignity of ceremonial appropriate to the solemn or offers a rite it may be compared with other Oriental
worship of the now dominant church, it is not to me or popular forms of worship.
clear either that there was a deli berate copying of the
'The Christians act like folk who put an illogical faith
ceremonial of the mystery dramas or that any special in those who collect alms for the Great Mother and in
appeal was made by the ritual to the new mass of examiners of portents, and in figures like Mithras and
converts. It is surely not without significance that at Sabadios or whoever it is on whom a man has chanced, or
Antioch, where there had indeed been substantial in visions of Hecate or of some other daemon or daemones.
Jewish influence in the Christian community., there Just as there wicked men often impose on the simplicity
was a tendency in the fourth century for churchmen ofthe gullible and lead them where they will, so it is among
to attend merely that part of the service which was the Christians. Some will not give or hear reason about
concerned with the reading of scripture and not to join their faith, but stick to Ask no question but believe and Thy
in the prayers and assist in the celebration of the faith shall save thee and The wisdom in the world is a bad thing
Eucharist proper. The elaboration of ceremonial and the foolishness a good.'
would appear to be in fact due to the new standing of Later he compares Christianity with Egyptian religion,
Christianity and to the influence of Old Testament with its combination of brilliant temples and animal-
ritual, and perhaps in some measure ofthe Apocalypse worship, remarking that the Christians mock at Egyp-
and its account of the worship performed in Heaven, tian piety (which suggests that Celsus has read some
certainly to the idea of the union of human and of the Christian apologetic writings: in them, as in
angelic worship. The one piece of straight copying earlier J ewish apologia, attacks on Egyptian animal-
is the screen, 'or iconostasis, and that came from the worship are de rigueur) although that piety has a sym-
theatre and not from cultus. bolic meaning. Again, before describing Christian
hole-and-corner preaching, he says, eWe see those
The True Word of Celsus which we know from in the market-places who make the most infamous
Origen's refutation and the liberal excerpts therein demonstrations and beg (Le. the priests of Dea Suria
contained gives the view taken by a highly educated or Cybele or Isis) would never come into a concourse
pagan ofthe movement in the latter part ofthe second ofmen ofintelligence or dare to show their tricks there,
century of our era. To hirn, as to other onlookers, hut are sought after and glorified wherever they see
Christianity has or is a new rite: to hirn, writing as he striplings or a crowd of slaves and fools'. He says later,
206 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 2°7
'They do these things to excite the admiration of the against ideas which seem incompatible with his high
ignorant like those who in Bacchic rites bring forward concept of the supernatural. . ...
visions and terrors'. Further, he compares the Mith- Yet to CeIsus there is a VI tal dlstlnctlon between
raic ladder as a symbol of the soul's passage through Christianity and these parallel phenomena. To him and
the spheres with the diagram of a Christian sect (the to his like Christianity is primarily a mass movement
Ophites) and draws a parallel between Christian thau- of falling away from tradition, as earlier Suetonius says
maturgywith its foreign names and the names ofpower of the Neronian persecution, which he reckons among
in Egyptian magical books. the acts of Nero which were not blameworthy (Nero,
From the standpoint of morality Celsus makes a 16. 2), 'There were punished the Christians, a race
contrast between Christianity and its rivals: (or, kind; genus) of men characterized .b~ a novel an~
'Those who invite people to other teletai make these maleficent superstition.' Both the Chnstlans and theu
preliminary announcements: Whosoever is pure of hand and opponents came to think ofthemselves as a ~ewpeop~e:
wise of tongue-or again others, Whosoever is pure from every and it is clear in the work of Celsus that hIS real alm
defilement and has no evil on his conscience and has lived well and was to persuade the Christians ~ot to forget l?y~lty to
justly. These are the preliminary announcements made by the State in their devotion to thlS new state wIthln the
those who provide me ans of cleaning away sin. But let us State. Other Oriental incomers were to Celsus mildly
hear whom these people invite: Whosoever, they say, is a contemptible: this was a social phenomenon fraught
sinn er, whosoever is unwise, whosoever is foolish-in a word, with danger . I t is to be noted that, thou~h the test
whosoever is a wretch-he will be received into the Kingdom ofGod.' before Pliny was invocation of the gods In a form
He again draws a parallel between Christianity and prescribed by him, the offering ~f incen~e and ~in,e
other religions of salvation when he asks: ~ to the Emperor's image and cursIng Chnst, TraJan s
'If they introduce this one (Christ), and others another, reply indicates that 'prayer to .our go~s' .would . be
and all have the common formula ready to hand, Believe if a sufficient indication of conformIty to glve ImmUnItY'
you would be saved, or go away, what will be done by those who and in the serious persecution of Decius only a docu-
really wish to be saved? Will they cast dice and so get an ment recording past piety, the performance of sacrifice
omen for the path which they are to take and the people and libation, and tasting of the victims in the presence
whom they are tojoin?' of a commissioner was required. That is to say, there
Celsus thus far puts Christianityon a level with popular was no formal and explicit abjuration of Christian
mysteries and immigrant Oriental cults in general. cultus.
He is not a rationalist and his theism is not purely The average man in antiquity has left liule record
theoretical. But like most serious thinkers of antiquity ofhis thoughts. We know his epitaphs, his dedications,
he objects to what he regards as the piety ofthe ignorant his proverbs, but ancient literat~r~ is aristocratic an?
and gullible, and he has a genuine moral indignation little interested in the ordinary cItlzen except as a fod
208 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 2°9
or as the material for a genre study. So far as we can spread readiness to believe the strange stories of sexual
infer his attitude to Christianity, it was not altogether excesses and ritual murder and cannibalism which
unlike that of Celsus. To hirn, as we saw, it was at always attach themselves to a sect which is under the
first something indistinguishable from J udaism, and ban of social disa pproval. All this was powerful and
then a subdivision which bore the odium of the fire gave strength to the resistance of paganism. Dur
in Rome and under Domitian was perhaps particularly concern in the remaining chapters is with the analysis
liable to incur the official wrath with which Jewish ofthe attitude ofthose who heard the word gladly.
proselytism was then visited. In time it became ap- Pure curiosity and casual contacts, sometimes due
parent that .this was aseparate movement of godless- to a wife, might bring a man within its periphery. If
ness, with peculiar cohesion and special charities. he had Judaizing tastes he came naturally; here were
He might turn in passionate hatred against this the merits ofthat which had attracted him and he was
anti-social organization. Persecution was in many not treated as one ofthe lesser breeds without the law.
cases forced on the magistrates by the crowds, who Again, if people died rather than perform a sacrifice
damoured, The Christians to the lions. We have a very which could be as much a matter of convention as
interesting petition from the people of Lycia and standing for a national anthem, the divine name on
Pamphylia to Maximinus in 311-12 (in an inscrip- which they relied might have its effectiveness, and the
tion at Arycanda) asking hirn 'that the Christians, use of this same name of J esus in exorcisms and eures
who have long been mad, and still continue in their by the Christians had its effect. At least it was worth
diseased state, be made to stop and not by any foolish adding to the Egyptian, Babylonian, and Greek names
new worship to transgress against that which is due used in magie: 'I adjure you by the god ofthe Hebrews,
to the gods'. The petition is probably inspired and Jesus' occurs in the great Paris magie al papyrus. But
due to men who knew that the Emperor desired to be a man's curiosity might lead him further and cause
thus entreated, but it crystallizes a popular attitude. him to hear the preaching. What would he know ofit
There was much in ancient feeling to explain this: from the outside? Certainly that it would mean his
notably the idea that the welfare of the Roman State forsaking polytheism: that he must believe in a certain
hung together with the due performance of the tradi- Jesus who had died for man's sins and risen, fulfilling
tional Roman rites (we find an emphasis on the cuIt thereby ancientJewish prophecies; that he must repent
of Vesta at the very time of the Decian persecution); and obtain forgiveness of sins and rebirth by a sacra-
the belief in Jonahs-I rnean the belief that the ment; that he must live by an ethic of love in a society
misfortunes of the Empire might be due to this wide- of like-minded men. The sacrament of rebirth would
spread apostasy; a general willingness to accept addi- not bother him: he knew of such, if he had not used
tional rites which made the Christian refusal seem them (they were, as we have seen, expensive), and, if
cantankerous and unreasonable; and also a wide- he had, there was no objection to one more; in any case
210 The Spread of Christianity as a Social Phenomenon 211

the new content ascribed to rebirth was attractive sophy of the time. It satisfied the inquiring t~rn, of
(p. 220 below). So much (with the possible exception mind, the desire for escape from Fate, the desue for
ofbaptism) he would know: what more he might know, security in the hereafter; like Stoicism! it gave a wa~ of
and what he would learn in the community when being life and made man at horne in the unlverse, but unhke
prepared for baptism we shall consider next. Before Stoicism it did this for the ignorant as weH as for the
we pass to this, one word of caution is perhaps neces- lettered. It satisfied also social needs and it secured
sary. men against loneliness. Its way was not easy; it made
We are sometimes told that the unique attractiveness uncompromising demands on those who would enter
of the central figure of Christianity as presented in the and would continue to live in the brotherhood, but
Synoptic Gospels was a primary factor in the success to those who did not fai! it offered an equally un-
of Christianity. I believe this idea to be a product compromising assurance.
of nineteenth-century idealism and humanitarianism ..
In early Christian literature those aspects of the Gospel
picture which are now most prominent in homiletic
writing are not stressed, and all the emphasis is on
the superhuman qualities of J esus, as foreshadowed by
prophecy and shown by miracle and Resurrection and
teaching, and not on his winning humanity. He is
. a saviour rather than a pattern, and the Christian way
of life is something made possible by Christ the Lord
through the community rather than something arising
from the imitation ofJesus. The central idea is that of
divinity brought into humanity to complete the plan
of salvation, not that of perfect humanity manifested
as an inspiration; it is Deus de deo rather than Ecce homo.
The personal attractiveness ofJ esus had done much to
gather the first disciples, though even then the impres-
sion of power was probably more important than the
impression oflove: thereafter the only human qualities
which proved effective were those of individual Chris-
tian teachers and disciples.
The success ofChristianity is the success ofan institu-
tion which united the sacramentalism and the philo-
TheTeachings ofChristianity as viewed hy a Pagan 2 13
lectures of philosophers who talked at street corners,
XIII seeking the contentment ofbeing made at home.in .the
universe and not wholly satisfied; a resentment agalnst
THE TEACHINGS OF CHRISTIANITY AS the pitiless fixity of Fate's decrees; adesire, if not for
VIEWED BY A PAGAN assurance of survival, at any rate for assurance that
E have seen that in the expansion of Christianity any continuance of consciousness after death would
W in its first two centuries within the Roman Empire
there was little, if any, direct preaching to the masses.
not be cold and comfortless or even painful.
He came in some such spirit. He was then informed
A pagan came in contact with the movement in a nu m- of certain beliefs and was told that ifhe accepted them
ber of casual ways. He had become friendly with a and promised to live by them he would be admitted t?
member. He had seen or heard of an exorcism. He baptism and thereafter to the communal meal. ~hIS
had been presen t when a martyr suffered in a curious idea of something from which he was excluded pendIng
and unreasonable way for an idea, tortured to deny the fulfilment of conditions might then act as a further
and not to admit: he had gone away and puzzled over stimulus. We all desire to enter grounds marked
the matter. Or again he had heard talk of the Chris- Private, especially if there goes through them a foot-
tian body as a dangerous organization of subversive path which is said to lead to the New Jerusalem. w"e
tendencies and immoral practices. Now that which is do not always inquire too closely into the trustworthl-
socially condemned very often exercises a certain power ness of the directions given by the signpost.
of fascination, and subterranean movements have an What were the requirements? They appear in a
intrinsic attraction. We saw this in the numerical phrase ofJustin Martyr (Apologia, i. 61. 7)' 'Tho~e who
strength attained at Rome by the Bacchanalian cult. are persuaded and believe that the thIngs WhICh we
Further, the small man in antiquity suffered from a teach and say are true, and promise that they can live
marked feeling ofinferiority and from a pathetic desire in this manner' . The picture which emerges thence is
for self-assertion, of which the epitaphs supply abundant confirmed by other sources which set forth the condi-
illustration. By adhesion to a society like the Church tions imposed for baptism. They may be summed up
he acquired a sense ofimportance; 'Quartus, a brother' as repentance and faith; repentance involved t?e
could have his place in Paul's greeting to the com- promise of good conduct in the future a~d ~he renunCIa-
munity at Rome. tion of idols; faith involved personal behef In the central
In some such spirit a man who did not at once recoil propositions of Christi an theology-the uniq~e power
in conservative hostility might come into relations with and position of God the Father, the redemptIve work
a Christian body. We have seen some of the inner of Jesus, the life-giving activity of the Spirit. The
desires which migh t be in his soul; a vague helpless Egyptian Church Order, which probably pre~erves
speculative instinct, fostered by the vivid if shallow the Apostolic Teaching ofHippolytus, who was actIve at
214 The Teachings l!fChristianity as viewed by a Pagan 21 5

Rome in the first quarter of the third century ofour era, being initiated you know or can learn'; it belonged
lays down that 'when the day draws near on which to the pass-words, which gave admission to private
they sl:,lall be baptized, the bishop binds every one of ceremonies, and again to certain impottant details of
them by oath that he may know if they are pure'. The the rite.
details of the renunciation and of the declaration of Let us therefore consider the requirements and tenets
faith are known to us from later texts, butitislikelythat ofChristianity from the point ofview ofthe pagan who
they had taken shape early and certain that creeds are had not quite made up his mind. We may start with
in their origin baptismal creeds. With their developed the moral demands, as they are presented by Justin
forms we are not concerned, for the chief factor in Martyr in a treatise addressed toAntoninus Pius andhis
elaboration was the desire to provide against views associates in the intention ofproving the unreasonable-
wh ich had arisen within the movement and had been ness ofpersecution. He speaks ofthe change produced
rejected. in the lives of Christians (i. 14):
Theoretically the creed was not in later times given 'We who formerly rejoiced in uncleanness oflife and now
to the intending Christian till the time of his baptism love only chastity; we who also used magie arts and have
and, by a practice which goes back to early times, he now dedieated ourselves to the good and unbegotten God;
was excluded from the Eucharist. But this discipline we who loved resources of money and possessions more
ofkeeping a secret was at all times a sort ofagreed legal than anything, and now actually share what we have and
fiction which preserved a due atmosphere of solemnity give to every one who is in need; we who hated one another
and after the end ofpersecution gave to entry into the and killed one another and would not eat with those of
other race, and now since the manifestation of Christ have
Church a note of seriousness like that associated with
a common life and pray for our enemies and try to win
pagan mysteries. Such a proceeding had not been
over those who hate us without just cause.'
necessary and did not obtain in the times of trial.
Writings of Justin Martyr and Tertullian, which were He then gives an anthology of precepts from the
intended for the public at large, whether they reached Gospels: first on sexual purity, then on love, generosity,
it or not, show no signs of reticence, and in fact afford mercy, and freedom of thought for the morrow, then
quite full accounts of Christian teaching and worship. on bearing ill and helping all without anger, then on
In any case, no man accepts initiation without knowing avoiding oaths and telling the truth, then on reverencing
at least in outline the promises as well as the require- God and God only. In all these ways moral reforma-
ments implied. It was so with the pagan mysteries. tion has, he says, been secured by those who have
Secrecy did not there belong to the prospects held out, entered the body.
or even to the main lines of the rite, for Justin Martyr These ideals would of course be at variance wi th the
says of the cult of Mithras (i. 66. 4) 'that bread and habits ofsociety as a whole at that time, as at any other.
a cup ofwater are set among the ceremonies ofthe man Yet they are not widely different from the ideals then
H
216 The Teachings of Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 2 17
held up by philosophie teachers of the popular type. beginning of the first, are almost as rigorous as Justin
We have spoken earlier of the sermons given by such himself could have desired.
men. We may recall how Musonius insisted that even 'Let men and women, slave and free, when coming into
in wedlock there should be no intercourse except for this shrine swear by all the gods that they will not deliber-
the procreation of children, and that the owner of a ately plan any evil guile, or baneful poison against any man
slave girl should not have relations with her; we may or woman; that they will neither know nor use harmful
recall the passionate outburst of Dion of Prusa against speIls; that they will neither turn to nor recommend to
prostitution, or the polemic in frivolous poets such others nor have a hand in love-charms, abortives, contra-
as Ovid and Martial against aborti on and self-abuse, ceptives, or doing robbery or murder; that they will steal
or the frequency in mimes, a form of entertain- nothing but will be well-disposed to this house, and if any
ment corresponding in vogue to the revue to-day, of man does or purposes any of these things they will not keep
declamations against luxury. We must not forget silence but will reveal it and avenge. A man is not to have
the gradual penetration of the Roman law byethical relations with the wife of another, whether a free woman
or a married slave, or with a boy, or with a virgin, or to
and humanitarian considerations, which appear in the
counsel this to another .... Let not wo man or man who do
provision made against castration, cruelty to slaves,
the aforementioned acts come into this shrine; for in it are
and the like. enthroned mighty deities, and they observe such offences,
When we turn to contemporary religion, we find that and will not tolerate those who transgress thei~ commands.
purity was required of those who would enter atempie. . . . These commands were set up by the rule of Agdistis,
True, it was ritual more than moral purity. Ifabortion the most holy guardian and mistress of this shrine. May
necessitated a quarantine of forty days, contact with she put good intentions in men and women, free and slave
a corpse meant ten; if intercourse with any person other alike, that they may abide by what is here inscribed; and
than husband or wife meant two days, lawful inter- may all men and women who are confident oftheirupright-
course meant one. What was required was disinfection ness touch this writing, which gives the commandments of
and a lapse of time sufficient for your unholiness to the god, at the monthly and at the annual (?) sacrifices in
wear off. Yet even in this realm there was a tendency order that it may be clear who abides by them and who
to make demands of a more far-reaching kind. We does not. 0 Saviour Zeus, he ar our words, and give us
a good requital, health, deliverance, peace, safety on land
have seen how the priest commanded Lucius not to
and sea.'
return to the sinful pleasures of his youth. In various
ways religious sanction was given to the idea that right Accordingly, while the Christian requirements were
conduct was indispensable for happiness here and severe, they were not marked by an unheard-ofseverity,
hereafter. The ordinances of a private shrine built in and the analogies to them were not confined to the
honour of Agdistis at Philadelphia in Lydia about the most cultivated circles in society. The Greek words for
conclusion ofthe second century B.C., or at latest at the conscience are words of common speech, little used in
218 The Teachings of Christianity as viewed hy a Pagan 2 19
formal philosophie language. It is in any ease a grave as in society as a whole, the real driving-foree was a
error to think. of the ordinary man in the Roman consciousness ofyour dignity as a human being. It was
Empire as a depraved and eruel fiend, dividing his a business, as in Galsworthy's story, of keeping form,
hours between the brothel and intoxieation, torturing a morality of rulers;
a slave from time to time when he feit bored, and
Their shoulders held the sky suspended.
indifferent to the suffering and poverty of others.
CrueIty and pleasure in exercising and wi tnessing For some Epieureanism supplied its motive-the avoid-
erueIty existed in the amphitheatre and in the house- ance of all those excessive emotions which endangered
hold, but we have seen earlier some eurious indications the true happiness to be sought and found in untroubled
oftender-heartedness even in what is eommonly thought calm. Again,. the religious cults of the time also gave
of as the brutal Roman mob (p. 197 above). As for motives-the desire to eome in eleanness before a deity,
luxury, the few had it, but not after Nero's death in to eomport yourself in such a way as would lead to
anything like the measure of which we have knowledge happiness hereafter.
in the first half-century of our era. Further, as Gilbert None of these eireles demanded sorrow for past sins.
Murray has said, 'There was not more objective luxury Christianity demanded sueh sorrow and supplied more
in any period of ancient his tory than there is now; effective motives-fear of God, as in J udaism, devotion
there was never anything like so much. But there does to J esus who had suffered in order that sinlessness
seem to have been more subjective abandonment to might be within man's reach, and love for your fellow
physical pleasure and concomitantly a stronger protest Christians, who had like you been delivered by hirn
against it.' To most serious-minded men the good from death and sin. This important element of affec-
life seemed to involve a eertain deliberate self-denial. tion for your brethren had analogies in eontemporary
Seneca had two hundred citron tables, but he lived on thought. It was a marked feature of popular philo-
something like a hermit's fare. As for social services, sophy, as we see in Seneca's arguments for kindness to
the age of the Antonines set a standard which has only slaves and in Dio's ease against prostitution. Within
recently been again attained. the religious sphere we may reeall the way in whieh the
The real noveIty in Christiani ty was the motive faithful of Isis welcomed Lucius as one of them, the
whieh it supplied for good eonduct and the abhorrenee phrase in the soldier's eonfession of faith at Carvoran,
of past bad conduet which it demanded. Of course, 'thence we have alliearned' -in which humanity is for
philosophy gave its motives. Stoicism, which is of pre- a moment one great family in worship (p. 136 above)
eminent importance in this, emphasized the idea of -and the use of 'dearly beloved brethren' for a group
obedience to the law of nature and found room for of worshippers of Juppiter Dolichenus. But there is
an emotional warmth of devotion to that god behind no doubt that this love of the brethren was altogether
phenomena whom you eould eall Zeus. Yet in Stoicism, more lively and more far-reaehing in Christianity.
220 The Teachings ofChristianity as viewed by a Pagan 221
Few things ale more impressive than Lucian's account Stoicism had taught that there was in man a particle
of the period in the life of Peregrinus during which of the divine spirit as a thing inherently bound to be
that wandering soul became a Christian, and a present in his nature. But this was in ci sense something
Christian ofprominence, and was put in prison for his up to which he must live rather than something by
faith. He tells with ihterest, if with contempt, of the which he must live. In any c~se, it was supposed to be
attention of the community. And, for our present present in all m~n. It may have been better psychology
purpose, be it noticed also, that he relates that when than the Christian view of the special gift of the Spirit,
theChristians found Peregrinus to be guilty of immoral but it was less effective psychology.
conduct they removed hirn from their midst. We pass to the renunciation ofidolatry. The intend-
Christianity did not only give a motive. I t claimed ing Christian was required to give up all worship of
to give power to satisfy its requirements. It claimed pagan deities: a command to sacrifice to them was used
that the baptized Christian received grace which, ifhe by the State authorities as a test, and compliance was
made reasonable effort, would enable hirn to live as he regarded as satisfactory evidence of freedom from
should. This is a point of cardinal importance. While Christi an errors. Two views migh t be held of pagan
some, but perhaps not many, intending converts\vould deities. First, that they were figments of the imagina-
be of the type which J ames calls the siek soul, anxious tion, or at least not existing supernatural beings; second,
ab out a supposed guilt, there would be very many who that they were in fact supernatural beings but evil
had moral ideals not unlike those of Christianity and daimones or daimonia. The first vie'\v was taken by some
found themselves unable to live up to them. To such Christian thinkers and derived considerable support
there was a great attraction in this promise and in from those ancient writers who held that the gods
the examples of its fulfilment shown to them. While commonly worshipped fell into two classes, one com-
it must be admitted that there does not appear to be posed of dead men to whom as to dead kings or to dead
direct evidence for this precise attitude, there is no emperors divine honours had been accorded by the
doubt of the impression made by Christian holiness, gratitude or servility ofhumanity, the other ofpersoni-
and literature shows the populari ty of the motif of the fications of the elements and heavenly bodies and
converted sinner. Much ofthe pathos and ofthe power natural forces, which were in fact only parts or aspects
ofChristianity in the past has lain in Guinevere's part- of creation. This view drew its material from Greek
ing words to Launcelot: 'Therefore, Sir Launcelot, '\·vit speculation, which was the source of the frequent
thou weIl I am set in such a plight to get my soul heal, Jewish and Christian criticisms of the immorality of
and yet I trust through God's grace that after my death Greek myth and the crudity of Greek cult. The second
to have a sight of the blessed face of Christ and at view is developed with great elaboration by Justin.
Domesday to sit on his right side, for as sinful as ever All sins and delusions are due to the activity of these
I was are saints in heaven.' demons: the similari ties of pagan and Christian ri tes
222 The Teachings ofChristianity as viewed by a Pagan
are due to imitation by them, and, as far as baptism is divination, the art of the priests and of all concerned
concerned, to imitation of the rite as foretold by the with sacrifices and initiations and speIls and all divining
prophets. This elaboration of the idea, copied by and magic. God has no intercourse with men: it is
Athenagoras and Tertullian, was no doubt peculiar to through this race that all intercourse happens between
speculative thinkers, but it is certain that the majority gods and men.' This theory was developed by Xe no-
of converts regarded the old objects of their worship as crates and others later; so in Plutarch's treatise On the
existent, worsted indeed by Christ but still active and Failure of Oracles it is suggested that daimones are respon-
not wholly to be deprived of their activity till the sible for oracles and that the failure ofthese may be due
coming of the kingdom of God. F or the Apologists as to the fact that, though long lived, daimones are not
a group and for Tertullian in his apologetic work the immortal, which is illustrated by the story of the death
redemptive operation of Christ lay in deliverance from of Great Pan. I t is again the view set forth by Apuleius
demons rather than in deliverance from sin. On the God of Socrates and by Celsus and others who are
How would an intending convert receive what he concerned to safeguard the doctrine of divine activity
was told? and what would the description of his gods in the universe and the value of prayer and sacrifice
as daimones mean to hirn? Daimon is a word used from without weakening divine transcendence.
Homer onwards, at first to denote a supernatural force In all this the term daimon has no evil colour at all:
in a vaguer way than theos, to express that less sharply it is neutral. We hear of the toast to Agathos Daimon
anthropomorphic way of thinking which is in Homer -which means 'Here's luck!'-and of the cult of the
characteristic of the speeches ofhis figures as contrasted Good Daimon. There were also avenging daimones,
with his own narrative, and which crops up continually but they were not in themselves evil; you could speak
and was probably a feature of ordinary life as opposed of aperson's 'other daimon' or evil daimon as we might
to literature. Daimdn and, for the matter ofthat, theos, say unlucky genius, but this is clearly personal and
theoi, to theion are constantly used to denote the incal- ad hunc. However, the word acquires a more definite
culable non-human element in phenomena. Daimon is connotation. This may be due in part to the appear-
again in Hesiod used of the men of the past who have ance of ~ book of (Ostanes, supposedly translated from
after death retained vigour and power and are now the Persian and full of angelology and dualism, b~t
supernatural beings able to give blessings. I t commonly results in the main rather from an increasing trend to
denotes also the protecting spirit of a family or indi- monotheism among thoughtful men, an aversion, less
vidual, and acquires the meaning of an angel guardian widespread but noticeable, from ordinary cult, and
and almost of an astral seh~ The first definite theory of a very common reluctance to accept myth at its face
dairnones appears in the Banquet of Plato. Here they value. Such men could not bring themselves to deny
are a special dass with distinct functions. Diotima says the reality of the beings ordinarily worshipped; but
( 203 E), 'Through this race go es the whole science of they could and did lower the place of gods, or some of
224 The Teachings ofChristianity as viewed by a Pagan 225
them at least, in the hierarchy of the universe. For idols were a regular feature of everyday life. Secondly,
them daimon was a convenient word as vague and in it is a theoretical attitude. None of these men, if lifted
a way inferior to theos, and the whole scheme harmon- to the throne by a sudden turn of fortune, would have
ized the conservative instinct with the desire to think prohibited sacrifice and many of them probably feIt
of the Divine as wholly good and transcendental. that, irresistible as seemed the chain of reasoning
They might take a more or less favourable view ofthe which had led them to their conclusions, it was never-
daimones and of their activity. The daimones were theIess not quite safe to discontinue the offerings cus-
ordinarily thought of as subject to God, and their tomarily made by the magistrates and priests of the
worship appeared to be in a sense inferior but right. State or by the head of the household. They could say
Celsus, Porphyry, and other writers tell us that with Paul, 'Is what is offered to an idol of any force?
daimones induce us to believe that bloody sacrifices and or is an idol of any force ? No,' bu t unlike hirn they
incense offerings are necessary, their motive being would shrink from acting on their conclusions. After
a selfish desire to feed on them. By this means they all , though this actual theory is new, a certain cold-
make us corporeal and like themselves and distract us ness towards ordinary cult had been common among
from the service of high er powers. Again, a tractate thinking men since the early days of Greek philosophy.
in the Corpus Hermeticum states that daimones drive the We have seen something of this earlier (p. 120). The
evil to fresh sins (xvi. 10 ff.). F or all these men the views of the Roman antiquarian Varro are the more
ideal is the sacrifice by reason. One and all they are striking in that they stood in the introductory book of
interested in the encouragement of a pure philosophical his work on Divine Antiquities, the most comprehensive
piety divested of all the coarseness of popular worship. storehouse of facts on the cults and legends of a people
One and all they mistrust and hate its atmosphere, and made in Greece or Rome. He said that if he were
wish to educate men in the direction of something founding Rome anew he would have consecrated the
better. One and all if challenged by a magistrate gods and their names in accordance wi th the scheme
would have performed the ordinary sacrifices as a of nature. But as it was, the State being long estab-
thing without inherent value but to them indifferent. lished, he wrote with the purpose that the masses might
It is important that we should do justice to this wide- be willing to worship the gods rather than to despise
spread attitude of thoughtful men, to the contempt, them. He regretted image-worship: for over 170 years
again, which the practical Ammianus Martellinus feeIs Rome did without it and, if things had so continued,
for the hecatombs of his hero Julian. At the same time the gods would be worshipped with greater purity.
we must re me mb er two things. First, this is a learned Sacrifice was not wanted by the real gods. Yet there
and not a popular attitude. The man in the street were many things which the masses should not know,
retained his faith in bloody sacrifices even if he could many deIusions that were useful: that was why the
not often afford to offer them, and meats offered to Greeks walled off the mysteries in silence.
226 The Teachings of Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 227
So the position of Christian apologetic was in agree- It ~as a wrench to give up all this, and to give up
ment with much contemporary Greek thought, from the veneration paid to idols and in particular to old
which it drew so freely. The man in the street cannot shapeless survivals from earlier times: in the eyes of
have been altogether easy to convince. Against Christi- the common man they were charged with force, and
anity was set the whole force oftradition and ancestral could even be regarded as the gods themselves. A
custom. It was all very well to argue like this: but strong emotional conviction fortified by the common
suppose a plague came? or a famine? or an inroad of doctrine of the Christians that immorality and pagan-
the Goths? shall we not ism belonged together would, however, enable even
the little educated to make the necessary clear cut.
Take hands and dance thcre, a fantastic ring,
Round the ancient idol, on his base again,- It should be borne in mind that the majority of the
The grand Perhaps! early converts were town dwellers and therefore not
particularly interested in agrarian rites (pagani means
So it was that after the establishment of Christianity backwoodsmen), and again came from a social stratum
as the State religion it was necessary to provide new which had not old and dear traditions. The issue was
rural processions to take the place of the old. Worship very much one of tradition. So in the fourth cen tury
was not just the expression of love and praise and fear. we find the antithesis ofthe pagan aristocracy ofRome
I t was the averting of the possible wrath of the super- and the Christian bourgeoisie of Milan.
natural forces around men; it was their placating; it The intending convert had to renounce the official
was the expression of gratitude in forms which would worships ofthe State and ofthe municipality. He had
encourage these forces to render in the future services therefore to renounce the public cult of the Emperor.
like those which they were thought to have rendered He could not sweat by the Emperor's genius, the life-
in the past; and-above all to a Roman-it was the spirit of his family; he could not take part in the cele-
strengthening of them for those services, the giving to brations of the days of his birth and of his accession;
them of power to satisfy the needs of their worshippers. he could not as a soldier or as a municipal magistrate
J ust how importan t this last aspect was we see from the take part in those acts of worship in which either would
length of the polemic which Arnobius directs against participate: he could not hold a rnunicipal or pro-
it in the seventh book of his work Against the Nations. vincial priesthood of the cult, although his wealth and
Sacrifice and other rites were of the nature of actio, as social standing rnight rnake such a position appropriate
this term was later used ofthe Eucharist. Just how this for hirn or incurnbent on hirn. In all these things his
idea took shape we do not know; but it ,vas natural, attitude was the same as aJew's. TheJew's conscien-
as we see from the way in which in Vedic India sacri- tious objection was recognized and allowed-in spite
fice came to be regarded as an indispensable factor in of the passing rnegalomania of Caligula and occasional
the cosmic process. outbreaks ofJew-baiting in Alexandria and elsewhere
228 The Teachings ofChristianity as viewed by a Pagan 229

in which the mob attempted to compel the chosen were forced by events caused them to ascribe to ruler-
people to contravene their principles. Christi ans did worship more content than it possessed. By the time
not enjoy such privileges. Had the movement re- of Claudius it was an outward sign of loyalty which
mained a sect withinJudaism it obviously would have, involved little sentiment. This is further illustrated by
as we have seen. Christian, however, came to have the number ofits outward manifestations which passed
the same sort of connotation as heretic in the Middle into the customs of the Byzantine and u1tim~tely of
Ages and as Communist in America and western the Papal Court. In our own time a case has been
Europe to-day. The fear of political danger was not made by Catholic theologians for permitting J apanese
a red herring drawn across this particular trail. The converts to take part in traditional observances to the
Romans had a genuine dread of the stirring up of Mikado, because of the purely formal and patriotic
sedition under the cloak of religion: they were deeply character of the proceedings and because of the
concerned with the regulating of associations. Christi- Byzantine precedent.
anity gave special cause for fear because ofits teaching The convertmust forswear also the use of astrology
on the kingdom of God. Justin Martyr says (i. I I), and of magic. On both topics the Apologists enlarge,
'You, having heard that we expect a kingdom, have and on both their attitude was fully in agreement with
formed the uncritical impression that we mean a the official policy of the Empire. The arguments which
kingdom in the human sense.' Such an idea would they advance against astrology are drawn mainly from
always arouse suspicion, and after Bar-Cochba's revolt the old objections of the Academic school: magic was
in 135 the world must be kept safe from Messianism. for them naturally another of the delusions imposed
With these facts in view we can see that no concession upon humanity by the daimones. On both heads they
could be expected by the Christians. The Jewish were fighting ideas which were popular with the
reluctance to worship the Emperor seemed queer, but classes among which Christianity won its first successes.
the Christian dangerous. Hence the emphasis in Yet even here their stand would command a certain
Christian apologetic on their loyalty and their prayers measure of sympathy, for, as we have seen, there was
for the Emperor. a widespread desire to escape from Fate, and while
Two further remarks may here be made. First, there there was not a popular fear of demons there clearly
was ordinarily no obligation on the private citizen to was a fear ofwitchcraft, which shows itselfin epidemics
take part in the actual worship. An oath he could of cruel punishment in the fourth century of our era,
hardly avoid, but that was the most that was normally possibly, of course, complicated by political considera-
incumbent on hirn. When Pliny bade the Christians tions. In the long run astrology and magic proved
sacrifice to the Emperor, he was imposing a test and superior to faith, law, and argument.
not making an ordinary requirement. Secondly, the We may now come to the positive teachings of the
ideals of the Christians and the position into which they Christians. Their doctrine about God the Father was
23 0 The Teachings ofChristianity as viewed by a Pagan 23 1
easily acceptable. In its origin it is Jewish, but there relations of men to God as creator, commander, and
is development: for while there is no doubt that the leader.
Jews believed as intensely as the Christians in the These views are in origin philosophic products of the
Fatherhood, goodness, and accessibility of God, it is study, but in time they worked their way down to the
nevertheless to be remarked that the Christians never masses. They ,.yere helped by the fact that the popular
had the Jewish scruple against using his name, and mind, although it saw the gods through the presenta-
that the Fatherhood of God was by them more tion of them in literature and art, did not in fact hold
emphatically thought of as a relation to the individual such sharply anthropomorphic views, and by the oth~r
rather than as a relation to the nation. This teaching circumstance, that mythology was always to a certaln
was not foreign to a Greek. As early as Homer Zeus extent in flux. The allegorization of myth which
is father to all men, Greeks and Ethiopians alike: as rendered possible these schemes was very weIl known
early as Hesiod he is the god ofJ ustice, concerned with indeed. Ancient writers on rhetoric, that is to say the
its maintenance even in the details of life. He is not art of fine writing and fine speaking, supply us with an
in the mythology the maker of the universe, not even admirable way of finding what ideas had become the
its shaper, but in speculative thought, above all in common coin of the day. One of them, Alexander,
Stoicism, his name was the name most used for the whose father wrote under Hadrian, begins his treat-
fiery breath which was held to be the formative and ment of the topic On how many heads one should praise
animating principle of all things. a god, by referring to the philosophic view ~hat
This view tended towards a doctrine of Zeus as god is unbegotten and not susceptible of destruct1on.
immanent in phenomena-as when Cato in Lucan (ix. Another, Aristides, in his prose hymn to Zeus, shows
580) is made to say 'Jupiter is whatever you see and the influence of Stoic concepts. He speaks of Zeus as
whatever motion you experience'. But a personal having made all things, he emphasizes the etymology
colour could be retained and commonly was. We of Zeus from zoe (life), of Dia, the accusative of the
cannot forget the outburst of Epictetus (i. 16, 20): name, from dia (the preposition 'through'), and the
'What else can I do, an old man and lame, hut praise fact that the functions of all other deities are derivative.
God? If I were a nightingale, I would do the. part of a For hirn Zeus is a cosmic figure and the Homeric
nightingale; if I were a swan, the part of a swan. But, as it presentation of the god a thing to .be deprecat~d. The
is, I am a heing of reason: I must praise God. This is my most remarkable evidence for the Influence WhlCh such
work: I do it and I will not leave this post as long as it is speculation exercised within religious circles is an
given to me, and lexhort you to the same hymn.' orade claiming, probably as to its substance rightly,
Or the saying of Marcus Aurelius (iv. 23): 'A famous to come from the shrine of Apollo of Claros. In it the
one says, Dear city of Cecrops, and wilt not thou say, inquirer is told that there is one god, Eternity (Aion) ,
Dear city of Zeus?' His teaching involves immediate and that the other gods are angels and a sm all part of
23 2 The Teachings of Christianity as viewed hy a Pagan 233
hirn. I t was widely held that the gods of paganism heroes had a human and a divine father, Heracles
were emanations of virtues or at most subordinates of for instance having Zeus and Amphictyon. An Egyp-
the Supreme Being. tian Pharaoh was born in the same way as any other
When God was spoken of as maker of heaven and man and yet in the eyes of faith he was begotten by
earth, difficulty would be caused for men of philo- a god and suckled by a goddess. It was so also with
sophic education, for they commonly held that matter early rulers in Mesopotamia. So in the fourth Eclogue
was pre-existent; but they could in practice interpret of Virgil it is prophesied that a child shall be born,
this as 'shaper of matter into heaven and earth'. whose growth will synchronize with the gradual return
The doctrine about J esus was not wholly repellent. of the world order to its old goodness. The child is
The idea that a god could have a son was a common- obviously human, and its mother's pain and weariness
place of ancient mythology, as of all mythologies; in in pregnancy are treated with tender sympathy. And
fact Justin Martyr has to guard against a physical yet the child is 'dear offspring of the gods, great
interpretation of the begetting ofJ esus. Origen denies descendant of J ove' .
emphatically that any holy man ever celebrated his Life, like myth, has its allegorical meaning. As
birthday, and Arnobius, vii. 32, mocks at the birthday myth when interpreted comes down into the sphere of
of Tellus (Mother Earth); there is no indication of a ordinary things, so life when interpreted rises into that
Christmas festival before the beginning of the fourth sphere. This is an important aspect ofancient thought.
century. Further, for the popular imagination, this I t underlies the great importance attached to mytho-
divine habit of parenthood was not confined to the paste logical parallels. In Pindar's Odes the victor in an
According to a story which grew up soon after Plato's athletic event is set in the heroic context of the legen-
death his supposed father was warned in a dream not dary ancestor of his line or the legendary founder of
to approach his wife until she had given birth to the the games; so are the countless dead men on whose
child which she had just conceived, for it was by funerary monuments heroic scenes are represented.
Apollo. A similar tale was attached to Augustus. In The Greek was more interested in a generalized truth
the intrigues connected with Lysander's attempt to living behind individual facts than in those facts. This
introduce changes at Sparta a son of Apollo was is what underlies Aristotle's remark that poetry is
produced as the heaven-sent man to secure occult more philosophical than history, forasmuch as history
oracles, advantageous to Lysander (Plut. Lys. 26). handles particular things, as for instance what Alci-
Again, there could be a curious belief that a man had biades did, whereas poetry handles general things. In
at one and the same time a divine and a human father. point of fact this way of looking at things is not foreign
No one questioned that Alexander was the son of to our days. People think of themselves and of others
Philip and Olympias, and yet the oracle of Ammon in in terms of types; they act or think of others as acting
Libya hailed hirn as the god's son. So various Greek in borrowed roles.
234 The Teachings of Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 235
To resurne: a son of a god eould die. Aselepius, the antiquity had the story of their institution, real or
son of Apollo, was killed by the lightning of Zeus for legendary, not as a rule tied to a precise date but
raising a dead man to life; later he was restored and cherished as important. In Mithraism, indeed, the
aetive as the deity of medicine. Heracles died on sacred story was definitely fixed at the beginning ofthe
the pyre of Oeta and, having purged away his mor- world-order; and Mithras, unlike other gods, had
tality in its Harnes, lived thereafter on Olympus. A god a eomplex Vita, shown in a sequence of scenes in art
could have a passion and resurrection-Zagreus, Attis, and corresponding to the Gospel story; but Mithras
Adonis, Osiris. With the last three it came to be did not die.
thought of as something which happened each year There is another aspect of belief about Jesus whieh
and only secondarily as something which had happened must be emphasized as a factor making for its easy
onee definitively. Sallustius says, in an interpretation naturalization in the world around. We have seen the
which isphilosophie and yet true to the spirit of ancient wide dissemination of an idea of a single god behind
belief (4), 'All this did not happen at any one time phenomena, the supreme cause and even the supreme
but always is: the mind sees the whole process at benevolence. With it existed also the notion that our
onee, words tell of part fi.rst, part seeond.' These ideas prayers and offerings should not normally be addressed
were in time applied to Christianity. The Eucharist, to the Supreme Being direet. Celsus, for all his theo-
a meal and thanksgiving linked to the symbolic act by retical monotheism, up braids the J ews for thinking God
which J esus made his disciples willing partners in his worthy of adoration, but denying this to the moon
death, beeame the re-enacting of that death. Medieval and stars and His other parts, 'the truly heavenly
piety developed the drama of Holy Week with inereas- angels'. An intermediary hypostasis was a necessity
ing realism and in the domain ofthe Greek Church the to much philosophy for the reason already no ted as
popular attitude is still that at every Eastertide Christ making for demonology: it is notably emphasized in
rises, and that if he did not rise the crops would not the Hermetic literature, in which we read for instance
grow. that no saerifice is to be offered to the Supreme Being.
It was of course peculiar to the Christiancreed that Astronomical thought combined with such theology
Jesus had suffered voluntarily and had suffered for to put hirn out of reach. Further, this thought corre-
men, and that this suffering was itself the basis of sponded in a way to the facts of worship. In a Mith-
deliveranee. It was peculiar also that these soterio- raeum there was sometimes a representation of the
logical events were pinned down to a precise moment Sky-god or Eternity, but effective \vorship was ad-
in history. This no doubt represents both the intense dressed to Mithras, who stood between man and 'the
interest felt by the Chureh in its scheme of history and eternal silenee of these infinite spaces'. Sarapis could
also a measure of protection against mythological by an identifieation with Zeus be regarded as the
speculation. I t was not wholly strange. Most cults in Supreme Being; so in mythieal cireles could Dionysus,
23 6 The Teachings of Clzristianity as viewed by a Pagan 237
but commonly Zeus stood over hirn. Attis, Adonis, gods began at their birth: they had no pre-existent
Osiris could not be thought of as supreme: they were glory to leave for us men and for our salvation. It is
all figures with whomthe law ofthe universe had had sometimes said that the ancient rulers were supposed
its will. There was therefore something very intelligible to be avatars of deities; but, except for the theoretical
in the Christian idea of an approach to the Father and theological identification with divinity of the king
throughJesus and ofan activity ofthe Father mediated in Egypt and a poetic fancy about Augustus, this is
by Jesus as the Word. not so. Further, if Augustus was, as Horace suggests,
There was, however, one difficulty in Christian Mercury in human shape, this was an epiphany in
teaching to which our attention is directed by the a shape assumed for the moment-such as the men of
Catechetical Oration (a discourse on 'how those seeking Lystra ascribed to Paul and Barnabas. It was like the
baptism should be instructed) of Gregory of Nyssa appearance of Athena to Telemachus in the guise of
(dated about 383). After discussing arguments against an old friend, and unlike the coming of a Bodhisattva.
polytheism, atheism, and the concept that the Divine It was easy enough for an ancient to think of this
nature is imperfect (the last a view which is not, he mortality p~tting on immortality, Herades being the
says, to be expected), he devotes himself at length to most familiar instance, and the mysteries implying the
the doctrine of the Logos. 'Perhaps the pagan', he says idea: but the reverse process was not envisaged. 'None
(eh. 5), 'by reason of general ideas, the Jew by reason of the heavenly gods will leave the bounds of heaven
of scriptural arguments will not dispute the existence and come down on earth,' says the writer of Corpus
of a Wörd and Spirit of God. But each of them alike Hermeticum x. 25, and he expresses the general view
will reject the plan ofGod's Word (or, God the Word) of antiquity. Humanity, in its essential nature and
in relation to man as improbable and unsuited to quality, was regarded as a liability rather than as an
God.' The argument shows that there was a substan- asset.
tial objection to any idea of incarnation-of God or a Most churchgoing people have in the creed recited
power of hirn taking human flesh and passing through 'according to the Scriptures' as a phrase which has
birth and death, both seeming undignified. This may now little interest and meaning other than those which
seem strange in view of Attis and Adonis, both of whom ding to a survival. It i8 a commonplace that the
were in some legends born of human mothers, both passages in the Old Testament which were thought to
of whom in the general story died. Yet their births foretell the coming and death and rising of Christ can
were placed in the mythical period and both were in bear no such sense, that they refer to imminent or past
the world at large the expression of natural proces~es: events of an earlier time. Yet, in considering the impact
neither was' an aspect of the Supreme Being. Both, like of Christianity on the world of the time, we must for
Mithras, had divine and not human cydes oflife. This a moment think away all these things. To the Apolo-
was not a belief in incarnation. The existence of these gists the prophetie writings seemed their strongest
23 8 The Teachings cif Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 239
argument for the truth of Christianity. Justin gives large to the guidance of inspired personages. When
a long collection of selected proof texts, prefacing it Justin says of the prophets (Dial. 7. 2), 'They did not
with the words (Apol. i. 30), rest their speeches on proofs, for they were trustworthy
witnesses to truth standing above all proof', very many
'Now in order that no one may in opposition to us ask,
What prevents hirn whom we call Christ, a man born of
of his contemporaries would have sympathized and
man, from having by magic skill done the miracles which would have disregarded the small recalcitrant minority
we describe and from having therefore seemed to men to be of intellectuals. We have seen the astonishing success
the Son ofGod, we will give the proof, not trusting to those of Alexander of ;\. .bonutichus.
who recorded the events, but believing as we must those This value set on prophecy was not confined to the
who bcfore they took place prophesied them. We do this living voice of the inspired man, but belonged also
because with our own eyes we see these things having to books recording prophecies, very many of which
happened and happening as was prophesied. In our were in circulation. Particular weight attached to the
opinion this will appear to you\ the greatest and truest supposed utterances of such persons from a mythical
proof.' paste This was so throughout antiquity. In Greece
Athenagoras speaks (7) of the diversity of opinions there were the prophecies of Bacis and Musaeus and
among poets and philosophers 'moved each by his own the various Sibyls. The use of the books of the Sibyl of
soul to seek, in accordance with a sympathy existing Cumae runs like a thread through the religious history
between it and the breath from God . . . expecting to of Rome, where any emergency called for their consul-
learn about God not from God but from their indi- tation and any ritual innovation was justified by the
vidual selves', and says in contrast: finding or fabricating of a passage in justification.
'Hut we have as witnesses to our ideas and beliefs the The value set on such books rests both on the belief in
prophets who by divine spirit have spoken out concerning inspiration, that is to say the belief that a human being
God and the things ofGod. Those ofyou who excel others can in ecstasy serve as the mouthpiece of a deity, and
in reverence for the divine could tell how unreasonable it on the belief in the wisdom of the past, which has been
is to refuse to believe the Spirit from God, that has touched discussed earlier (p. I 13) . This belief in the wisdom
the prophets' mouths like musical instruments, and to pay of the past was particularly strong in relation to the
heed rather to human opinions.' past of non-Greek nations. It was a conviction based
This was not merely an apologetic device; the same on a recognition of the far longer continuity of culture,
argument is developed in a similar way by Irenaeus in and above all priestly culture, in Egypt and Babyion.
his Demonstration of Apostolic Preaching, a plain statement Hence arose the idea that the early Greek philosophers,
of doctrine addressed to a fellow Christian, Marcianus. and for the matter of that Plato, had learned their
Such a view ofinspiration was familiar, and we have wisdom on voyages to the East. So, when Philo or
seen how much importance was attached by men at Clement or any other Jewishor Christian apologist
24 0 Tlze Teaclzings of Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 241
claimed· that Greek writers had borrowed from J ewish into a Christi an assembly he heard readings from the
writers, they were following a theory which was in prophets as weIl as from the writings of the Apostles
other forms widely held. The argument from the (Justin, Apol. i. 67. 3) In any case, his natural instinct
0

J ewish prophecies was reinforced by arguments based would be to take what he was told as true. Throughout
on supposedly genuine and relevant pagan prophecies. the Imperial period one of the conspicuous features
The fulfilment of a forecast is a thing which has of intellectual life is a readiness to accept statements
always fascinated men. We all notice the striking and because they were in books, or even because they were
successful coincidences which occur: 'and so it proved' said to be in books. It was hard to unroll a papyrus,
is one of the favourite turns of speech in popular but how many even of the worst of modern scholars
narrative, and ancient history is full of the significant would have written in Alexandria as Didymus does
verification of lucky guesses. Further, it should be of the so-called eleventh Philippic, 'It might be not
noticed that it was normally expected that a great unreasonably conjectured that this small speech is a
man would be heralded by signs and prophecies. We cento put together from some compositions of Demos-
may recall the riyal prophecies which Cleon and the thenes. Some say that this exhortatory oration is by
Sausage-seller in the Knights of Aristophanes utter as Anaximenes of Lampsacus, and that it is now to be
foreshadowing their activities. For Augustus. there were found almost word for word in the seven th book of the
portents before his birth, at his birth, and throughout History of Philip,' and left it there? If it was so with
his life, indicating the greatness of the part which he was the expert, how was it. with the layman?
to play on the stage of the world and his destiny to live On the doctrine of the Spirit something has been
with the gods thereafter. There was aseries ofportents said. We need here only recall that the Stoics held
marking out Vespasian as destined to rule: even of that in all men there was a divine pneuma and that
Galba it was related that Augustus had said to hirn, most people believed that prophetie inspiration was the
'Thou too, Galba, shalt have a taste of Empire'. prQduct of what inspiration literally means, breathing
The men to whom these arguments were addressed in. 'It remains that we should speak ofthe Church and
would certainly never have seen a copy of the Septua- of the expectation of the resurrection of the flesh and
gint. We have seen earlier how little knowledge of of the life of the world to come.
its contents had reached the outer world (p. 79); The Church of the second century thought of itself
Posidonius in his treatment of primitive prophets did as the new people of God, the spiritual Israel which
not mention the Jewish prophets. At most the name had entered into the enjoyment ofthos~ promises which
of Moses and scraps of Genesis became known-a fact the Israel after the flesh had lost by blindness of he art,
which is particularly intelligible when we remember Both to themselves and to outsiders they appeared as
how markedly Philo's interest in the Old Testament is a people rather than as an organization. In any case
confined to the Pentateuch. When the convert came they were unique. The priestly system and organization
242 The Teachings qf Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 243
of the J ews were confined to Palestine: there were minds for a century and more: it had been urged with
episkopoi who collected du es from the synagogues of the compelling force by J ohn the Baptist. Yet it was taught
Dispersion, bu t these synagogues were all independent with a new vigour and power. The business of those
entities. They had a standard of faith in the Law, but who heard the message was to labour to prepare Israel
their application of it rested with the rulers of the for the Day of the Lord, for the end of the present age
individual congregation. We have seen how little and for the world assize which would usher in the new
cohesion there was in any contemporary pagan cults. age. Israel in general was unwilling to be prepared
The Christi ans had something new-the letters of and the N ew Israel took its place. But, even so, and
introduction given to a member of one community even when the expectation of the final act of the cosmic
about to visit another, the relations and mutual assis- drama became fainter, the Church v/as in the last
tance of one congregation to another (as for instance of analysis not an organization for the sanctification of
Rome to Corinth), the formulation ofagreed tenets and souls in the present so much as a nursery of the people
of an agreed view of their own history. Apart from ofthe future. The things seen were temporary. Other
times of persecution, a poor man must have gained men held that. Sallustius says (ch. 3), 'The universe
a great sense of security from the organization. He itself can be called a myth, since bodies and material
knew that care would be taken of hirn in and after life, objects are apparent in it, while souls and intellects
and that he would not be wholly left to his own are concealed.' But these philosophers thought that
resources. the things that were seen follo\V"ed the types of a
Our convert could thus without difficulty acquire permanent and unchanging reality that was not seen,
devotion to the Catholic Church. But when he came and that the time process was like a straight line. To
to Christian teaching about the last things he was on the Christian the visible world and its order were not
strange territory . Acts xvii represents Paul as deliver- so much a type of the eternal as a passing phase, a stain
ing at Athens a speech nearly all ofwhich could have on its radiance which was to fade and pass.
been spoken by a Greek philosopher of the time and Something like the Christian idea, in fact its ulti-
as leaving this common ground by saying that repen- mate source, was known to the ancients. I mean the
tance is now necessary, for that God has appointed Zoroastrian scheme. In its first form, as put forward
a day to judge the world by J esus whom He has raised by. Zarathustra, it had been very like the teaching of
from the dead. At this point the audience interrupted) J esus. The triumph of the good was imminent, and in
some mocking. Here was the disturbing element in that triumph the righteous would all share and those
Christian doctrine. And yet it was fundamental. The ofthem who had died would rise again and have their
central fact in the teaching of J esus was not a novel part, receiving material and spiritual recompense.
doctrine of God or man bu t the heralding of the Zarathustra teIls how he asked of his god, Ahura
kingdom. It was not new: it had been in many Jewish Mazda, a question very like Peter's 'Lo we have left
244 The Teachings oJChristianzty as viewed by a Pagan 245
all things and followed thee: what shall our reward when there was neither toil nor seafaring nor war nor
be?' Will he receive ten mares and astallion and a sickness. It was commonly thought of as something
camel? Here as in Christianity the brightness of the which had been once in the springtime of humanity
vision faded and there grew up a doctrine of periods, and had for ever passed away through a fatal process
corresponding to those which we find in J ewish and of degeneration. We know this in Hesiod: it is like the
Christian apocalyptic but more symmetrical. For many stories told by primitive peoples of the days when
3,000 years Good was triumphant, for 3,000 Evil, for there was no death, days which by some mistake or
3,000 they would contend, and then the time of misunderstanding have gone from the earth. The
happiness was to begin. Golden Age has been: its ways might be thought ofas
A doctrine of periods became an integral part of cöntinuing in some supposed islands just off the map,
Stoicism. According to this school, the present struc- the Islands of the BIest or the City of the Sun as
tu re of the universe is at regular intervals dissolved by imagined by lambulus. But they would not come
fire and water, the interval being the number ofyears again-or only as part of a new cycle which would
which it takes for a particular conjuncture of all the reproduce this one mechanically without continuity
heavenly bodies to repeat itself (the so-called Great and without memory ofthis, which would be as though
Y ear). After this destruction comes a fresh identical it never had been. So men ordinarily thought. There
creation, passing through the same sequence of phases. are occasional exceptions: the fourth Eclogue and a
So all life would for ever repeat itself. Ideas of this Greek prophecy which is perhaps contemporary, and
kind were very widespread. In Virgil's fourth Eclogue another from Ptolemaic Egypt of the second century
a new order is heralded. This comes without any before Christ. From this last we may quote one phrase:
cosmic catastrophe and the ages return upon them- 'The times will be so good that the dead might wish to
selves. We do not start again at the beginning but come alive again.' But they were not to, not in any
work backwards. There is another difference. A man of these dreams begotten of dismay and despair and
ofthis age can hope to live into the new and better day: the incurable feeling that happiness must be round the
at least the poet prays that he may. Such a living into corner:
the new era is thought ofin an ordinary way: the poet The living are the living,
will die in due course, whether he lives into the goqd And the dead the dead must lie.
days or not, and the dead will not rise. There will be How strong the idea of cycles was can be seen from
a new Achilles and a new Tiphys, as figures in the time the way in which Persian ideas were transformed in the
preceding a new Golden Age. Graeco-Roman world. In Mithraism it is clear that the
Such an age was often in the minds of ancient concept of a sequence of ages, world-destructions and
writers. I t was a time of peace and goodwill between world-renewals, took the place of the Zoroastrian con-
man and man and between man and animals, a time cept of a unique series of events, and that the idea of
246 The Teachings of Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 247
the resurrection ofthe dead disappeared or was at least are disturbed by astronomical predictions that the
thrust into the background in favour of the Greek idea universe will in some millions of years perish. Men
of the liberation of the soul from the trammels of the desired tha t their memories migh t remain for ever, bu t
body. they meant by that that they might remain for as long
The concrete expectations of the Christians had no as the imagination could grasp. Nor must we suppose
doubt an attraction for many who found life heavy and that this picture of cycles was feIt to be a weary round
unjust and who looked for conditions under which its from which men wished to be emancipated or that the
inequalities would be set right. The century which Christian scheme was necessarily feIt to be a libera-
preceded the remaking of the Roman world by tion from this point of view. The suggestion deserves
Augustus had seen several abortive attempts to initiate a moment's consideration. Lucretius does indeed say
a social revolution. The firm government which everything is always the same, eadem sunt omnia semper
followed did much to humanize life and certainly left (iii. 945), buthe puts itin the mouth of a personification
to such movemen ts no chance of success: we see very of Nature which is made to reprove man for com-
few signs of anything of the sort before the fourth plaining of the advent of death. Nature says: there is '
century of our era, when the Circumcelliani in North nothing new that I can invent or devise for you ifyou
Africa showed levelling ambitions like those of the were to live on indefiniteIy. This is no complaint
Mazdakites in Persia a century later. The men who against the cyde theory. This is no feeling such as we
might have been expected to make: uprisings did in find against the theory of Fate, in regard to which
fact display rather a sullen resignation like that of the Epicurus said that it was worse to be its slave than to
Egyptian fellahin in all ages. Their outlook appears in follow the myth ofthe gods. The explanation is simple.
the epitaph so often found over the remains of slaves Fate affected man in his individual interests and
and gladiators, 'I was not. I was. I shall not be. I do desires, and this he minded: just as he would wish to
not care.' escape from the cyde oftransmigration 'and reinearna-
None of these men, unless they had fallen under tion if he believed in i t.
Christian inftuence, expected divine intervention to Neverthelessamancould be argued out ofthis theory
change things. 1fthey acquired any general theory of without any deep offenee to his feelings. 1t was other-
the probable course of events it would be that common wise with the doetrine of resurrection of the hody.
among educated men-that history was composed of This was a denial of the dearest hope of many. To
unconnected cydes and that they were at the time quote Sallustius onee more (2 I), 'Souls that have lived
living in one of the down-swings. The world was in aecordance with virtue have as the crown of their
growing grey and old and feeble; it seemed that virtue happiness that, being freed from the unreasonable
had gone out of man and earth alike. Yet we must not element and purified from all body, they are in union
think of this as disturbing people, any more than we with the gods and share with them the government of
248 The Teachings oJ Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 249
the whole universe.' We have seen earlier (p. 26) thc lian's arguments für the soul's fallibility and its
origin of this idea in the Orphic conception that man dependence on the body. Paganism stood for the
has an immortal element prisoned in the tomb of the deliverance of the real self, aided by sacrament and
body. The mythology on which this was based had system, but having in the last resort within itself the
long ceased to matter; but the fundamental view had means of salvation and struggling for immortality in
become a very widespread conviction. Man felt him- bliss as a prize to be won by those who had wished to
selfto be, asMarcusAurelius says, 'a small soul carrying live in accordance with virtue and succeeded. Christi-
a dead body'. The popularity of this rests on a fact anity stood for the redemption and resurrection of the
of experience, common enough in all conscience, the whole as an cntity containing higher elements, helpless
struggle between noble aspirations and physical lean- in itself, but capable by divine favour of receiving
ings, between the tenets of philosophy and the law salvation and destined at the end to become a glorified
in one's limbs. 1t is, says Epictetus, no equal struggle unity. The issue is after all the doctrine of grace. The
between a young man beginning philosophy and a fair genius of Christianity lies on the side of Augustine,
young girl (iii. 12. 12). The body wins time after time the genius of paganism on the side of Pelagius. The
and the man feels each time a little less his own master. one built on a consciousness of sin and on revela-
Discipline can do something, but the only true libera- tion, the other on a consciousness of goodness and
tion will come with freedom from the flesh; so they on common sense. On this issue we must all take
thought. Christian theology did not deny the value of sides.
these ideas. The glorified body of the risen man is in We have reviewed the central ideas of Christianity
the higher theology) as in Paul, quite distinct from the as they would present themselves to an ordinary man
earthly body and would have no tendencies to evil, from the world around. We have seen that they were
no sensual cravings; in the resurrection they would in general quite intelligible to hirn: there were diffi-
neither marry nor give in marriage; and the present culties, but these difficulties existed mainly for those .
body of man needed mortification and ascetic contro!. of superior education who found the new thing
But Christian theology did find itself in radical oppo- foolishness. Such men were relatively rare in the first
sition to the philosophic notion of the soul as a thing century and a half. Clement of Alexandria is thc first
essentially divine and essentially immortal and of an of whom we have knowledge: his teacher Pantaenus
immeasurable superiority to the body, needing only was no doubt of the same calibre.
purification and freedom from carnal contacts to enjoy This intelligibility of the teaching did not rest on
God for ever. Such ideas made any belief in redemp- any particular psychological skill in presentation. I t
tion unnecessary and any belief in the resurrection of does not mean that men, being in one intellectual and
the body unpalatable. spiritual position, succeeded in putting themselves in
This deep cleavage explains the warmth of Tertul- another and in getting under the other man's skin.
25 0 The Teachings ofChristianity as viewed hy a Pagan
Such sympathetic understanding we know in the work so much so that it was worth interpolating or invent-
of Mencius and of other early Jesuit missionaries in ing suitable proof-texts to supplement the artful aid
China; but they were exceptional. Religious propa- of exegesis. We have Orphic fragments which teach
ganda generally operates on the basis of a common Stoic pantheism: we have others which teach J ewish
cultural background or, as in modern missions, on monotheism; we have Hermetic fragments and Greek
superiority of culture. oracles which support Christianity; Justin and his
The effectiveness of early Christian propaganda as fellows rest much of their case on the J ewish prophets,
we know it turns largely on two further points. First, but they quote also the prophecy of the supposed
the apologists were without exception men who were Persian Hystaspes, and Lactantius in particular makes
not the sons of Christians but had been converted to extensive use of the prophetic literature which passed
Christianity themselves. The apologia of each of them under the name of Sibylline oracles, apparently with-
was therefore in a measure an apologia pro vita sua. out realizing that it had been created largely by Jews
Secondly, they all represented Christianity as some- and partly by Christi ans with an apologetic intention.
thing which had come not to destroy but to fulfil. They The Sibyl became an important figure in yet later
maintained that its essential principles were what Christian apologetic. The appeal to antiquity was an
humanity at its best had always held or sought. They effective thing. It was an answer to what was at the
went back to their Jewish sources, but they claimed time a most damaging criticism of Christianity-
that Plato drew from these same sources. For them namely, that it was a new thing followed in contraven-
the whole wisdom of the past was in support of their tion of good old customs. The Jewish writer said in
position, even iffew went as far asJustin and held that weariness of spirit, 'There is nothing new under the
all who had lived with reason (logos) were Christians, sun'. Most thinking citizens of the Empire would have
a development.ofthe idea expressed in the prologue to resented this suggestion that there could be.
the fourth Gospel. LastlY' we must emphasize that thinking men ex-
This was a valuable point of view. It squared with pected that the ultimate explanation of the universe
the general belief in the wisdom of the past of which should be straightforward. Nothing is more striking
we have spoken (p. 113). Others who had views to than the way in which philosophical reasoning con-
commend to the world at large used the same tech- stantly assumed that you could base valid arguments
nique. The Stoics interpreted Homer as Philo inter- on analogy and on the hypothesis that the uni-
preted the Pentateuch; just as he found Platonism in verse is symmetrical and neat, that bodies which
that, so they found their philosophy in Homer and move in straight lines are naturally different from
Hesiod and the Orphic writings; so later the Neopla- bodies which move in circles. Ancient conceptions of
tonists found their philosophy in Homer as weIl as in the character of motion, for instance, rest on popular
Plato. An ancient canonical book was an authority, maxims, accepted by philosophy from common sense
The Teachings of Christianity as viewed by a Pagan 253
without scrutiny-that like attracts like, that like view, and it never set its face against thc compatibility
nourishes like, and that like affects like. of normal life wi th the fuH practice of religion. I t
From this point ofview Christianity was satisfactory. valued a hot-house atmosphere, but it did not insist
So was Manichaeism, of which we shall have more to on it.
say in the next chapter. It made a strong appeal to This is in a measure typical of the Catholic Christi-
the intellectuals ofthe time. Had it taken shape earlier anity which prevailed, as opposed to Manichaeism and
it might have been a very serious riyal. As it was, it I to gnostic and other sects which maintained a more
did not appear on the scene until Christianity had consistent point of view. The central body shows
consolidated a body of adherents who were in their constantly a greater grasp on actuallife, a wider vision
compactness much more influential even than their of things and men as they are. I ts tcachings com-
numbers would suggest, and it had less appeal to non- mended themselves as fitting the needs ofthe age better
intellectual circles. The comparison of the relative than did doctrineswhich were more deliberatelyassimi-
success of the two movements, the original and the lated to thought around, much as many old buildings
derivative, is instructive. Manichaeism was very much constructed without any knowledge of technical prin-
more of a synthesis of the thought of the time than was ciples of audibility are in fact hetter for hearing than
Christianity. It was very much more outspokenly an their modern rivals. The Christian houscholder brought
attempt to answer the problems raised by the universe. forth from his store things old and new: the old was
And yet, while it proved to have a great power of life, not obsolete and the ne\v was not incomprehensible.
it failed. One cause may be suggested, in addition to
the fact just mentioned, that it came into the field
second. Manichaeism held out a standard of perfection
which was for the few. Christianity, indeed, early
developed the idea of a special sanctity which was for
the men who could renounce the world wholly. Never-
theless, at the same time, it held to the belief that a life
which was quite adequate for fuH enjoyment of the
privileges of religion was at the disposal of .all who
followed it while living in the world and submitting to
a tolerable measure of self-discipline. Christianity did
indeed go a long way with those in whose eyes sexual
life was unclean; it gave satisfaction to the many who
were fascinated by asceticism, but it repressed thosc
elements \vithin itself which overstressed that point of
Justin , Anzobius, Augustine 255
told usjust what it was which moved them to embra~e
XIV the new faith. Evcn here we need not take theu
ac counts as representing the literal truth-at least not
THREE TYPES OF CONVERSION
the whole truth, for a process of conversion as looked
JUSTIN, ARNOBIUS, AUGUSTINE at afterwards by the man hirnself commonly assumes
HE book of Acts describes various types of conver- a new colour. Few ofus are capable of entirely faithful
T sion. We start with the witnesses of the manifesta-
tions of the Spirit at Pentecost in Jerusalem, who were
autobiography. Yet the main lines are clear and
significant.
moved by what they saw and by Peter's argument from Justin, writing in the middle of the second ~entury,
prophecy. We pass to those who were impressed by came from N ablus in Samaria. He calls hlmself a
the miracles done by the Apostles, to the Ethiopian Samaritan by birth, but teIls us that he was uncir-
eunuch reading Isaiah and learning from Philip what cumcised, and was certainly brought up in a pagan
it meant, to Cornelius the Roman whose heart was set way. He says of his conversion in Apol. ii. 12, 'I myself
towards J udaism and who met Peter after they had used to rejoice in the teachings of Plato and to hear
both had visions, to those who heard the preaching of evil spoken of Christians. But, as I saw that ~hey
the little band from Jerusalem scattered and exiled showed no fear in face of death and of aU other thIngs
after the death of Stephen. We come to the Pauline which inspire terror, I reflected that they could not
mission, the conversion, thanks to miracle, of Sergius be vicious and pleasure-Ioving.' Finding the common
Paulus and the jailer at Thessalonica and some at charges untrue he turned to the movement. In his
Ephesus, the conversion of J ews and proselytes and Dialogue with T rypho, a more elaborate defence of
others present as a result of sermons in synagogues in Christianity against Jewish attacks, he teIls us more of
which the argument from prophecy bulked large, the his experiences. The J ew has asked hirn what are his
conversion of a few Athenians as a result of a lecture views on God and what is his philosop~y. Philosophy
before the Areopagus. There can be no doubt that the is, he says, the most precious of posses~io~s and ~ost
account as a whole gives us a faithful picture ofthe way honourable in God's sight. It has spht Into vanous
in which things happened. It is clear that the two schools through men's enthusiastic following of par-
most important factors were prophecy and miracle: ticular teachers. Justin had begun by attaching himself
it also appears that the latter sometimes (as in ch. to a Stoic. But he learned nothing about God from the
xxviii) had no such effect-partly, perhaps, because in Stoic and his teacher did not regard this branch of
the view of the common man there were so many kno~ledge as necessary. So Justin turned to a Peri-
miracles and wonders that no special inferences need patetic: he left hirn in disgus~ when t~e philosop~er
follow from another. invited hirn to name a fee. ThIS, to Justln, proved hIrn
We pass to three later converts, all of whom have no philosoph er . The next move was to a Pythagorean.
25 6 Tlzree Types 01 COllversioll Justin Arnobius Augustine 257
J J
He insisted that a mastery of music, astronomy, and that, as Hermotimus says, after about twenty years'
geometry was an indispensable prelirninary, in order application, he still hoped in not over twenty ye~rs
that the soul might be removed frorn objects of sense more to understand the system fully; but thiS satIs-
and made suitable for objects of the intellect. Justin faction would be no match for even elementary dialec-
left hirn, this time in sorrow, for the Pythagorean tical skill.
appeared to have some understanding of the matter. Arnobius wrote in Africa at the end of the third
In despair he decided to give Platonisrn a trial, for it century. He teIls us (i. 39):
had a considerable reputation. In this he found no
sm all satisfaction: the contemplation of the Ideas fircd 'But the other day I venerated images just brought from
his imagination and he hoped that he should see God. the furnace, gods made on the anvil and with hammers,
So he thought fit to have a long solitude and retired to elephants' bones (i.e. images of ivory), paintings, fillets
a lonely spot near the sea. There he was met by an old hanging on rotting trees. Whenever I saw a stone anointed
man who engaged hirn in converse, proved to hirn that and fouled with olive-oil, just as though there were in it
a power ready to aid, I flattered it and spoke to it and
the philosophers could not have knovvledge of God,
prayed for blessings from the trunk that had no perceptions,
and having reduced hirn to a condition of argumenta-
and those very gods of whose existence I had persuaded
tive helplessness introduced hirn to the prophets and myself I insulted grievously, believing them to be wood or
to Christ.
stones or bones or to live in such objects. Now having been
According to this accountJustin came to Christianity led into the ways oftruth by the great teacher I know what
at the end of a chapter of a disappointed intellectual all these things are; I hold worthy opinions apportioned to
search. The similarities between this story and others the merits of their objects; I insult no divine name and
of like quality have been discussed earlier (pp. 10 7 ff.). I give to each person or individuality its due without con-
There is undoubtedly a certain element of literary fusion of rank and authority. Are we not then to regard
commonplace in the narrative, and yet it seems to Christ as a god or to give to hirn the greatest worship paid
correspond to the attitude of the time. Lucian has in to divinity which we can devise, when we have long received
his Hermotimus described an attempt on the part of these great blessings from hirn and await yet fuller blessings
a man of just such limited intelligence to master a when the day comes?'
philosophy, with the same buoyant optimism and the He has been saved from error, and the acknowledge-
same helplessness in the face of destructive criticism. ment of the deity ofJesus is natural gratitude. This is
It was no doubt !the way things happened, for philo- a genuine Graeco-Roman point ofview: it reflects the
sophic ideas had become so widespread and accessible mood which originally prompted many honours to
that many a man without training could be fascinated rulers. One instance may be quoted: it is the decree
and perplexed by them. He could again be in a
passed by Mytileneabout the year 27 before Christ. c?n-
queer way satisfied that he was getting somewhere,
ferring various privileges on Augustus and provldlng
258 Three Types of Conversion Justin, Arnobius, Augustine 259
for possible future additions, 'so that he may be deified allegory and philosophy. Thirdly, he makes it clear
as much as possible'. It is equally pertinent to recall that an interest in the hereafter was widespread.
the way in which both Metrodorus and Lucretius used The earlier apologists had been concerned to show
the language of worship to express their gratitude to that Christianity was ethically and intellectually
Epicurus. respectable, and that it was in line with the best
The substance of the book which Arnobius wrote thought of the pagan past. Arnobius wishes rather to
shows proportions very different from those of earlier show its difference from the normal pagan present. He
apologists. The weight is thrown on an exposure of refers in passing to the earlier apologetic works (iii. I).
the errors of paganism, of its unworthy views of the He can now spend his energies in rnaking paganism
gods, its futile and unseemly modes of worship, its intellectually disreputable. We note in the discussion,
exaggerated faith in the unaidcd P9wers ofthe human time after time, ironical concessions to the other side:
soul, its unjustified demand for an answer to all the 'for the sake of argument, let us suppose that there
riddles of the universe which are of no importance for is a god Aesculapius'. Christianity is now on the
the art of right living, its illogical belief in tradition offensive and, while knowing that it has a long way
and in antiquity, its idolatry and anthropomorphism. to go, is beginning to be quite confident of ultimate
Arnobius is not greatly concerned with the arglJment success.
from prophecy: he is interested in a way of escape from Gur third figure, Augustine, comes from the time
mortality and fate. We should not perhaps take his when that success has been won. In his boyhood the
autobiographical statement literally, for the reason face of society as a whole was becoming Christian, but
that his account of his former attitude agrees almost the process was far from complete. Manichees sought
verbally with the common ancient descriptions of the converts and were not under any effective restraint by
type of the superstitious man. But it is clear that law. Before. a poetic competition a soothsayer came
Christianity was for hirn a delivetance from what had to Augustine and asked him what fee he would pay
been burdensome and stupid and unworthy. The for success, that is to say, for sacrifices which would
significance of his work is threefold. First, it reminds guarantee it (iv. 2). Astrologers plied their trade
us· of the very substantial ,hold which traditional busily. Further, while the Christian hierarchy on the
paganism still had on men's minds, in spite of some one hand and the pagan aristocracy ,of Rome on the
decay in ritual observances, which "vas partly due to other maintained intransigent and opposing positions,
economic stringency. Wehave seen earlier how much there was a fairly wide no-man's land in religion.
space he devotes to refuting the characteristically Augustine's father was a pagan who lived in harmony
Roman idea tha t man by his offerings strengthens the with a Christian wife and did not prevent his son from
gods to help him. Secondly, Arnobius shows the being marked with the sign of the Cross or veto the
popularity of certain interpretations of paganism by idea of his being baptized in a serious illness (i. 11).
Three Types of Conversion Justin) Arrwbius) Augustine 261
In time he became a catechumen (ii. 3). The paganism on thc ground that hc mnst needs fall into sin (i. 11),
of educated men was largely philosophical andmono- and that, on the other hand, a friend of his who had
theistical in character. Pagan worship was forit a way been brought up as a Christian, but led by hirn into
of approach to the central mystery of the universe, not Manichaeism, was baptized when unconscious in a
the only \vay but the time-honoured way. As Sym- severe illness (iv. 4): Augustine hoped to win hirn back
machus had said in his speech on behalf of retaining the on his recovery, but failed. For many baptism was
Altar of Victory in the Senate-house, 'There cannot invested with a character of finality, such as now goes
be only one way to so great a secret'. For many with entry on the monastic life or with a sole mn pro-
who shrank from becoming Christians the deities of fession of faith on a death-bed. At Rome, in fact,
paganism had ceased to matter as individual and a public declaration offaith was made by the neophyte
personal figures. An exchange of letters between (viii. 2).
Augustine when bishop and one Maximus, a scholar Augustine thus grew up
of Madaura, shows the weakening of the antithesis.
Between two worlds, one dead,
Maximus says, 'Which ofus is so mad or mentally blind
The other powerless to bc born.
as to deny that it is most sure that there is one supreme
God without beginning or physical offspring, a great He has told us his story with a wealth of introspective
and magnificent Father? We invoke by many titles his self-analysis. We see first the pious atmosphere of his
virtues, which are spread throughout the universe, childhood, the carelessness of adolescence, the impres-
because we do not know his own name. For God is sion made by the Hortensius of Cicero, which inspired
a name which all religions share', much in the tone hirn with a yearning after higher things (p. 184 above),
in which a liberal theologian engaged in controversy the discouraging nature ofhis first reading ofthe Bible,
with a scientist might ass ure hirn that he had heard the adhesion to Manichaeism. It is clear that pagan-
of Darwin and of the Origin of Species. ism was at no time a possible alternative to Christianity
To such a man monotheism was obvious. He would, for hirn: it was something of the past to which certain
of course, feel not much need for redemption and circles clung and to the claims of which he replies in
sacraments, certainly not for new sacramen ts. At the formal fashion in his City of God, but which had for
same time he might allow that baptism was perhaps hirn no message or meaning. So, in his treatise On the
useful as an additional safeguard after death, but at Catechizing ofthose who are Unversed, he explains ho~ the
the same time perilous: when it was past, sins could not Christian scheme of faith should be set forth. I t IS all
be washed away once and for all by a single sacra- done on the values of the thing in itself. There is no
mental act. We see the two sides of the matter when emphasis on the renunciation of heathen beliefs ~nd
we remember that Augustine's mother, the pious practices. They come in merely as dangers agal~st
Monnica, did not wish hirn to be baptized as a boy, which the neophyte must be warned. After the brIef
262 Three Types of Conversion Justin J ArnobiusJ Augustine 26 3

statement of what needs to be taught, Augustine says He moved towards Manichaeism in the revulsion of
(ch. 7): feeling produced by the unfavourable imp:essig!l made
on hirn by the Christi an Scriptures, WhlCh offended
'Then indeed man's weakness needs to be equipped and
encouraged to face temptations and stumbling-blocks, hirn, as others, by their style (iii. 5). He made the
those within the church and those without; by those with- acquaintance of members of the movement and w~s
out I mean Gentiles or Jews or heretics, by those within intoxicated by their scheme of the supernatural, thelr
I mean the chaff ofthe Lord's threshing-floor. I do not say doctrine of the source of evil, their criticism of what
that we should argue against each dass of misguided men they represented as the anthrop?morphism of C~risti­
and discuss and refute formally their monstrous opinions, anity, and their doctrine of unIversal and partlcular
but, since we have not too much time, we should show that justice. At the same time he con~inued to co.nsult
this was so foretold, that trials afford usefullessons for the astrologers, till a friend convinced hIrn of the falslty of
faithful, and that there is a remedy in the example set by the theory underlying their practice (iv. 3)' There was
the patience of God, who has determined to permit these a fascination in the religion of Mani, with its bold
things to continue until the end.'
comprehensive view of phenomena, with the picture
Thereafter he refers to wearers of charms and sooth- which it claimed to give of the inner workings of the
say~rs and astrologers and diviners, along with the universe , and ,"vith the claim to inspiration .which its
dru~ken and covetous and extortionate, as sinners teachers made. Augustine feit all this, and hIS account
rathe}; than as heathen. of his emotions helps us understand the long history
From early manhood Augustine sough t to find an and wide success of these ideas. At the same time
adequate theistic scheme of the universe. This quest he had difficulties. For nine years he waited till an
fascinated hirn, and he could not escape from it. The opportunity came of laying them befor~ the ~anichee
various things which interested him-Manichaeism, bishop Faustus. The meeting was a dlsappolntment.
Neoplatonism, Christianity-did so inso farastheycon- Faustus was agreeable in himself and in his style, but
tributed to this problem. Ethical considerations were he had no deep knowledge and could not answer
secondary: the question so far as they, are concerned Augustine. All the same the latter remained alienated
was, Could he live in the manner rendered logically from Christianity and attached to its riyal. In an illness
necessary by his solution of the theological problem? at Rome he did not seek baptism and he continued to
He judged matters of conduct as one might the bag- be in union with the Manichees who were there. And
gage which can or cannot be taken over a particular now doubts arose in his mind. Might not an Academic
frontier. Throughout, Christianity was at the back of attitude of suspension of judgement be the wisest
his mind. He moved from it or towards it, with as it course? Several positive considerations held hirn away
were a subconscious conviction that he would end in from Christianity. It still seemed to hirn to be t~inted
it if and when he could find it intellectually adequate. by an anthropomorphic view of God: the doctnne of
264 Three Types of Conversion Justin , Arnobius, Augustine
the incarnation involved for hirn some defilement of in retreat. His mind moved away from Manichaeism.
the divine essence: and he retained his belief in the He was certain of the changelessness and of the incor-
existence of positive evil. ruptibility of God, but was not clear about the cause
He now moved to Milan. This meant life in an of evil (vii. 2 f.). Then he happened on some Platonist
atmosphere where paganism had not the same cul- literature which clarified his mind. He was still un-
tural and social pre-eminence as in Rome. At Milan certain 'as to the exact position to be taken about
Ambrose was the strongest figure from the point of Christ, but he turned ,to Paul and other inspired
view ofinteIlect as weIl as of character. 1t was natural writings and did not now find in them inconsistencies
that Augustine should fall under his influence. He with the Old Testament.
went to his sermons at first to study Ambrose's skill of At this point the influence of Simplicianus, a priest,
speech, which was his professional interest: Ambrose came into his life. Augustine was fired by the story
was the greatest speaker there. The result was some- of the conversion and public profession of faith of
thing uncxpected, or at least not consciously expected. Victorinus, one of the band cf scholarly defenders of
Augustine found hirnself becoming deeply interested paganism in Rome, and aga in by hearing of the wonder-
in the content of what he heard. He came to the fullife and miracles of the hermit Antony. He reached
conclusion that Christianity could be intellectuaIly astate of conviction in which he just could not act:
respectable. The aIlegorical interpretation of the Old he had desired continence but not yet. And then came
Testament which Ambrose employed opened new the critical moment in the garden. As Augustine
possibilities. I t removed certain obstacles to belief,, wrestled in thought he heard a child say, 'Take up and
it obviated the ascription to God of conduct inaccept- read, Take up and read'; tolle lege, tolle lege. He took
able to a philosoph er but clearly ass er ted on a literal up the volume ofPaul which he was reading and found
exegesis. The set of Augustine's mind was largely Romans xiii. 13, 'Let us walk honestly, as in the day;
determined by this. He had difficulties, the crucial not in rioting and drunkenness, not in chambering and
problem at this point arising out of his inability to wantonness, not in strife and envying.' Such a sud den
conceive of a spiritual substance. As a consequence he voice was to a pagan as to a Christian guidance from
remained sceptical, but decided to become a catechu- without. To Augustine it meant the certainty which
men 'until some sure goal to which I might direct my he had almost but not quite reached: it was like a long
steps should become clear'. His mother joined hirn at convalescence at the end ofwhich it is sometimes some
Milan, and he was under the influence cf her life and casual circumstance which at last enables a man to
faith as weIl as of Ambrose's sermons. realize that he is weIl. All was now plain and settled
He became assured of the providence of God and of and he could meditate on the Psalms and go to
the dignity of truth veiled in allegory (vi. 5). Then Ambrose and at his direction read Isaiah.
with a group offriends he entered on a communallife This is a conversion which rests in the last resort
Three Types of Conversion Justin J ArnobiusJ Augustine
on the permanence of an early impression and of to the average citizen ofthe Roman Empire. We have
the religious atmosphere with which his mother had seen how he was prepared to avail hirnself ofnew cuIts
invested his childhood. Christianity had at most as additional means of ensuring protection against
times his vote to be true if it could. So there was an various dangers here and hereafter, and how this use
emotional background for conversion. At the same of the -novel did not, except in rare cases, mean any
time the Christianity which he had known as a boy rejection of the familiar and any renunciation of a
was not theologically profound: this was natural for man's past, ethical or religious, any theology or any
what a boy hears, but was no doubt typical of the membership of an oecumenical organization with an
Christianity of Africa at the time, in which the heart oecumenical creed. We have also learned that a
was stronger than the head. So his memories were not reorientation of life was commonly involved in adhe-
equal to the intellectual atmosphere in which he found sion to the tenets of a philosophical school, and that in
hirns elf as he grew up. Adolescence brought to hirn, this there was a definite element of repentance and of
as to so many, not only its weiter of vague inquisitive conversion. We have passed to the growth of the
desire which does not exacdy know what it wants, but Christian body, and remarked on its peculiar individu-
.also its generous if incoherent aspirations after new ality in the world of the time, on the renunciation
truths. So his quest ran its way to an intellectual which it required of older ways of worship. We have
conviction, and this conviction gradually acquired an studied its requirements and found them not wholly
emotional strength sufficient to bring hirn to decisive strange and yet cast in a strange form which res ted on
action. The story is like the familiar type of conversion strange foundations, and we have made an attempt to
discussed in the first chapter, in that Christianity is see how that form and those demands appeared both
throughout presupposed and present in the subject's to the man in the street and to certain folk of more
subconsciousness, but it is unlike it in that it is not striking individuality who feit impelled to set their
a conversion from indifference; i t is a progress in a experiences on record.
continuous line; it is like a chemical process in which In the light ofthis survey the advance ofChristianity
the addition of a catalytic agent produces areaction stands out as a phenomenon which does not stand alone
for which all the elements were already present. but has paralleis which make its success not wholly
incomprehensible. There were other forms of belief at
We have now surveyed one chapter in the long the time which won adherents among men who were
history of conversion. We have seen something of the not called to them by anything in their antecedents.
general characteristics of conversion, of the rise and And yet these very analogies enable us to see the
spread of religious movements, of the fears and desires differences the more clearly. The other Oriental
which arouse men's interest in these movements. We religions in Roman paganism, as Cumont calls them
have seen something of what religious practices meant on the tide-page of his famous book, were neither
268 Three Types of Conversion Justin ) Arriobius) Augustine
Oriental nor religious in the same degree. They had substance and meaning to what was essentially a cult
not brought a compact body ofdoctrine or ofaccessible and a mythology. This may sound a little less than
sacred literature from the Nearer East with thern: in just to Mithraism, which had in its origins a dual-
so far as they appealed to men who did not come from ism and a cosmic expectation. Yet it must be borne
the lands of their origin i t was in forms which were in mind that Mithraism reached the Mediterranean
fully hellenized, at least fully hellenized in matters of world in a casual and sporadic way, as the worship
f~ndamental thought and above all in their expecta- of groups of Persians left without a country, and not
tIons of the hereafter. This is true in spite of the exotic starting with anything like the original urge of Zoro-
appearance which they had and sometimes artificially astrianism, which lay centuries and centuries behind.
adopted for purposes of effect. Christianity avoided As we know it, the early theological element is very
the exotic in externals and retained i t in doctrine in much obscured, and the core ofthe matter has become
its doctrine of the last things and of the hereafter individual deliverance: certainly the cosmic expecta-
in its sacred literature, available to all and sundr; tion and the doctrine of the resurrection have faded.
but not accommodated to classical style and classical Christianity represents just such a movement as might
thought, in its peculiar and unbendlng view ofhistory. have resulted from Zoroastrianism had it come into
The Oriental mystery religions were not Oriental in being at the beginning of our era and been promptly
th~ ~ame. sense as Christiani ty. N ei ther were they forced to leave Persian soil while still in its first vigour.
rehgions In the same sense. Theology might be and So Christianity was different. And yet it was capable
wa~ applied to them: beliefs and hopes and interpre- of being made intelligible and it was removed from
tatIons clustered around them, but they were fluid and J udaea early enough to become part of the larger world.
the interpretations came from outside, from Creek This is one chapter in the history of conversion.
speculation and from the earlier habits of the Creek There are many more-the extension of Christianity to
mind in religious things. And, as we have seen, there the natives of Britain and Cermanyand Scandinavia,
w~s no bo?y o~ faithful throughout the world, no holy the rise of Islam, the extension of sects in the Middle
ISIac or Mlthralc church-no Isiacs even, except as the Ages, the choice of individuals during the Reforma-
members of a local association, with a devotion and tion and the Counter-Reformation, the phenomena of
belief which an Isiac from elsewhere could recognize. modern revivalism, and the rise and expansion of Bud-
Creek philosophy was applied to Christianity as to dhism. All these things we see as movements governed
its unequal competitors. But, as applied to Christianity and directed by political and other considerations con-
it was applied to what was already much more of a~ ditioned by the intellectual atmosphere of the times.
entity. In Christianity it was used for the interpreta- All of them turn largely on difficult and nicely balanced
tion of a body of doctrine widely held by men speaking decisions made by individuals on the questions of
Creek and Latin. In its rivals it was used to give man's relations with the unseen and the unknowable.
27 0 Three Types oJ Conversion Justin , Aniobius, Augustine 27 I
All of them we know in part and understand in part. thought are worth attaining; we cannot but hope that
Which of us has any accurate idea ·of what is going on posterity will see a little more, and that the mistakes
in the mind of the average churchgoer? How far does and gropings of the presen twill lead to a deeper und er-
he hirnself know? And if this is so with the present, standing. We cannot but so think and so hope. And
how much more so is it with the past? If we cannot yet there will be always something lacking in our
estimate the exact measure of honesty in the leaders interpretation; it will always fall short of completeness,
of certain movements in our own times, how can we and we ·shall know it;
judge precisely how far Alexander of Abonutichus was Bold Lover, never, never, canst thou kiss,
charlatan and how far by his own lights prophet? In Though winning near the goal.
theperiodin which we have, for a little, tried to live, the 'Here we have no final revelation of truth,' said John
accidents of survival have left us bright patches oflight Inglesant, and this applies to any of our attempts to
here and there and but fitful gleams to guide us from follow the history of man's gropings after ultimate
one to another. One ofthe greatest ofscholars has said: reality just as fully as it must needs to these gropings
'The tradition yields us only ruins. The more closely we themselves.
test and examine them, the more clearly we see how ruinous
they are; and out of ruins no whole can be buHt. The
tradition is dead; our task is to revivify life that has passed
away. We know that ghosts cannot speak until they have
drunk blood; and the spirits which we evoke demand the
blood of our hearts. We give it to them gladly; but ifthey
then abide our question, something from us has entered
into them.'
Any one who has tried to get at the realities of ancient
thought and belief knows how true this iso Our inter-
pretation must be in a considerable measure a personal
interpretation, based on a balance of probabilities but
informed by the spirit which we bring to it. Yet the
facts increase, and any detached observer who com-
pares the picture which recent study has made avail-
able with that of even twenty or thirty years ago cannot
but feel confident that we have drawn nearer to the
truth. So we must go on. We cannot hut think that
even partial truths about a central period of human
Notes 273
Praechter Die Philosophie des Altertums, ed. 12, 1926; the enc)'dopaedias
NOTES of PaulY-Wissowa, Roscher, and De Ruggiero mentio~ed bel~w; .G.
Kittel Theologisches Wörterbuch zum Neuen Testament (m pubhcatlon
OUR knowledge of ancient religion rests upon very varied material. With
193 2 -' ). An admirable survey of re cent stud: is afforde~ by .~r.
the exception ofsome (but not all) mathematical writers, there is hardly Pfister, Die Religion der Griechen und Römer (Burszans lahresberzcht~ uber
a work of Greek or Roman literature which does not in a way bear upon die Fortschritte der klassischen Altertumswissenschaft, CCXXIX (1.93 0 ), l.ss~ed
religious matters, just as there is hardly an important Greek public separately as a book) , one ofthe most useful ofworks on anClent r~hgl~n:
building of the fifth or fourth century B.C. which is not in some way the literature is discussed at intervals by L. Deubner and O. Wemreich
associated with the worship of the gods. Religion in Greece and Rome in Archivfür Religionswzssenschaft [last in xxiii (1925)], annual~y ~y~. J.
was not a distinct and separate aspect of life, but something which ran Rose in Year's Work in Classical Studies, and (as far as Hellemstlc thmgs
through all its phases. We hav p therefore an abundance of literature are concerned) by me in Journal of Egyptian Archaeology.
about religion. We have, however, very littiL. religious literature, in the
sense ofworks written by devotees for devotees. I This is a natural conse-
quence of the absence of hierarchy and theology.
Ancient literature was produced by a small dass of educated persons
who wrote for their like. It shows us the high points of ancient religious
thinking. But it leaves us very much in the dark about the habits of
mind ofthe ordinary man and it fails to describe many features ofpractice
precisely because no one needed to have them described. Ifwe had only
the authors we should be in the position of one who had to know about
religious things in the nineteenth century from Emerson and Arnold and
Browning. They would not take the place of the Missal and the Book of
Common Prayer and the hymns of Moody and Sankey.
This gap in our knowledge is to a large extent filled by inscriptions,
papyri, and archaeological finds. We have the remains of the external
apparatus of religion, the places of worship and images and votive offer-
ings; we have the records of the building and rebuilding and personnel
and accounts of temples, of communal and individual piety which seemed
to deserve .the immortality of stone or bronze, representations, often
idealized, ofprocessions and sacrifices and other holy rites; we have coins
which indicate the cults which had in the cities minting them an official
standing so dear that the city would allow them to appear as its divine
representatives. (An alliance between two cities was often expressed by
a greeting between their leading deities.)
The notes which follow seek only to indicate some ofthe ancient sources
on which the text depends and certain modern books and articles of
special importance for our present purpose. The student who wishes to
follow these questions further will find full bibliographical indications in
Franz Cumont, Les Religions orientales dans le paganisme romain, ed. 4, 1929;
J. Geffcken, Der Ausgang des griechisch-römischen Heidentums, 1920 (with
Nachträge, 1929); G. Wissowa, Religion und Kultus der Römer, ed. 2, 1912;
A. von Harnack, Die Mission und Ausbreitung des Christentums, ed. 4, 1924
(the first edition is available in an English translation); F. Überweg-K.
I Cf. my remarks in JOl/mal 01 Biblical Literature, lii (1933).
Ahhreviations 275
P.Oxy. B. P. Grenfell-A. S. Hunt, Oxyrhynchus Papyri (cited· by number
ABBREVIATIONS of papyrus).
AJA American Journal of Archaeology. PW Pauly-Wissowa-Kroll, Realencyclopädie der classischen Altertumswis-
Arch. Delt. •ApxatoÄoYIKOV .6eÄT(ov. senschaft·
ARW Archiv für Religionswissenschaft. Reitzenstein, HMR R. Reitzenstein, Die hellenistischen Mysterienreli-
BCH Bulletin de correspondance hellenique. gionen, ed. 3 (1927).
BMC Catalogu.e ofCoins in the British Museum (followed by the name De Ruggiero,Diz.Ep. E. de Ruggiero, Dizionario epigrafico di antichitaromane.
of the regIOn). RHR Revue de l'histoire des religions.
CIL Co~pus Inscriptionum Latinarum, edited by the Berlin Academ Wissowa, RK G. Wissowa, Religion und Kultus der Römer, ed. 2.
(cIted by volume and number). y Academies, other than that of Paris, are normally ci ted with Abh.
CQ Classical Quarterly. (Abhandlungen), or SB (Sitzungsberichte), followed by the name of
GR Classical Review. their horne.
G.R. Ac. Inser. Co~ptes rendus de l'Academiedes Inscriptions et Belles-
Lettres, Pans.
Cumont, TM Fra~z Cumont, Textes et monuments figures relatifs aux NOTES
mysteres de Mzthra.
Cumont, R~l. Or. Franz Cumont, Les Religions orientales dans le paganisme I. THE IDEA OF CONVERSION
romatn, ed. 4. p. I. For the germ of a distinction between the natural and the super-
D~ss. H. Dessa~, Inscriptiones Latinae Selectae (ci ted by number). natural in the animal world, cf. E. Westermarck, The Origin and Develop-
DItt. OGI W. DIttenberger, Orientis Graeci Inscriptiones Selectae (cited b ment of the Moral ldeas, ii. 582 ff.; for the general psychologie al factors
~m~. y underlying rudimentary religion, cf. Br. Malinowski's essay in Science,
Ditt. Syll. W. Dittenberger, Sylloge InscriptionuTh Graecarum ed. 3 (cited Religion, and Reality, ed. J. Needham.
by number). ' P.3. The passage quoted is from Corpus Hermeticum, i. 26 ff. An interest-
EGC A. D. ~o~k, 'Early Gentile Christianity and its hellenistic back- ing private inspiration appears in the foundation of the shrine at Phila-
ground, In Essays on the Trinity and the Incarnation edited b delphia, discussed p. 2 I 6: Zeus gave to Dionysius in a dream commands
A. E. J. ~awlinso? ,(1928: about to be reissued).' y for the purifications and sacrifices (Ditt. Syll. 985).
ERE Encycl~Pedza of Relzgzon and Ethics, edited by James Hastings. p. 7. On the psychological aspects of conversion, cf. W. James, The
Harnack, Mzss. Harnack, Die Mission und Ausbreitunu des C'hr' t t Varieties of Religious Experience, 189 ff.; the passage quoted p. 8 is from
ed.4. b ts en ums,
p. 209; J. Jastrow in Seligman-Johnson, Encyclopaedia ofthe Social Sciences,
HTR Harvard Theological Review.
iv. 353 ff.
IG Inscriptiones Graecae, edited by the Berlin Academy (ci ted by
volume and number). p. 10. On Greek words applicable to religion, cf. U. von Wilamowitz-
Moellendorff, Der Glaube der Hellenen, l. 15 f.; on the rarity of actual
IGR R. Cagnat, &c., Inscriptiones Graecae ad res Romanas pertinentes (cited atheism, A. B. Drachmann, Atheism in Pagan Antiquity.
by volume and nu mb er).
JHS Journal of Hellenic Studies. p. I I. For the story oftheJlamen Dialis cf. Livy, xxvii. 8 (209 B.C.).
JRS Journal of Roman Studies. p. 12. The idea of purification was emphasized in the Dionysiac mysteries
JTS Journal of Theological Studies. (Servius on Georgic, i. 166) and in thc Thracian rites of Zeus Sabazios
Manteuffel G. Manteuffel, De opusculis graecis Aeu1Jl.ti e palJ'IW' t . (Iamblichus, De Mysteriis, iii. 10), perhaps as a result of Orphic ideas;
1 PI. 'd'b ll' ( 0./1' 'J'J' ts os racts
but it was not the final goal of initiation.
a1't z usque co ectts Travaux de la Societe des Sciences et des
Lettres de Varsovie, Classe I, 12; Warsaw, 1930 ).
11. THE IDEA OF CONVERSION AND GREEK RELIGION
ML W. H. ~oscher, Ausführliches Lexikon der griechischen und römischen
Mythologte. BEFORE ALEXANDER THE GREAT
Not. Notizie degli scavi. p. 17 f. The invitation of the Athenians to the Greeks as a whole (about
423 B.C.?) to send first-fruits to Eleusis represents an attempt to gain
27 6 Notes: Chapter 11 Notes:·Chapter 11
politital prestige (Ditt. Syll. 83; L. R. FarnelI, Gults oftlze Greek States, iii. of Scyles, done to death by the Scythians for his devotion to the orgies
15 6 f.). For Pan, cf. Herodotus, vi. 105.
of Dionysus (Hdt. iv. 79 f.). For the inscription from Cumae, cf. A.
pp. 18 ff. XpaCTeCXt eeOiCTt: Hdt. i. 172. Cf. in general I. M. Linforth Uni- Sogliano, Not. 1905, 377 ff., E. Gabrici, Monumenti Antichi, xxii (1913),
versity o! Gali.(ornia ~ublications in Classical Plzilology, ix. I (19 26 ): I ff. 573: OU eE~.US EVTOUeCX KEiCTeCXt l IJE iOV !3e!3a:xXEVIJEVOV. The enthusiasm
There IS an mstruchve story in Hdt. ii. 18. The dwelIers in Marea excited by Dionysus in Thrace is shown by the story in Cassius Dio, liv.
and A:Pis on the Libyan edge of Egypt feIt that they were Libyans, not 34. 5; in 11/0 B.C. Vologaeses, a priest of his among the Bessi, revolted
EgyptIans, and found Egyptian animal-worship burdensome: they wished and drove Rhoemetalces into Hight, 'stripping hirn of his forces without
~o eat cows and sent to consult Ammon. He ruled that they were dwellers a battle by belief arising from the god'. For an illustration of the civic
m Egypt; quorum regio eorum religio. status of the cult, cf. O. Kern, Insclzrifte.n von Magnesia, 139 f., No. 215,
The letter of Gadates: Ditt. Syll. 22. A foreigner might become on the introduction of Dionysus' worship at Magnesia on the Maeander.
more deeply i~terested: Hdt. _iv. 76 teIls of Anacharsis the Scythian, The inscription records that three l\faenads were summoned [rom Thebes
who a:ter seemg the festival of the Mother of the gods (Cybele) in accordance with an orade: each founded a tlziasos. This is a document
at Cyzlcus vowed to her that if he returned horne safe and sound he of historical antiquarianism: the orade is called an 'ancient orade'.
would sacrifice to her as the Cyzicenes did and would establish an all- pp. 26 ff. On Orphism in general, cf. O. Kern, Orphicorum Fragmenta;
night celebration. He did so, and was put to death. A. Boulanger, Orphee; Nilsson, Minoan-Mycenaean Religion, 509 ff.; G .W.
For the Brea decree, cf. Ditt. Syll. 67; for Naucratis, cf. D. G. Hogarth, Dyson in Speculum Religionis ... presented to Claude G. Montefiore, 19 ff. On
l.H~, xxv (19 0 5), 115; for the story of Lindos, Chr. Blinkenberg, Die the origin ofits literature, cf. L. Malten, ARW, xii (1909),417 ff.; A. D.
lzndzsche Tempelclzronik, 34 ff., and P. Roussel, BGH, Iv (1931),96 f. (whose Nock, in Studies presented to F. LI. Griffith, 248 (on Hdt. ii. 8 I, ioiCTt
comment I borrow). 'OpcptKoiCTt Ka:'AEOIJEVOtCTt Kcxi BCXKXIKOiCTt, fOUCTt AE AlyvlniolCTt Kcxi nvecx-
yopEiotCTl; Wilamowitz, Glaube, ii. 18g, n. I, argues that the shorter
p. 2~ f. Decree for men of Citium: Ditt. Syll. 280. Cf. J. de Prott-
text, omittin·g Kcxi .•. Aly., is right; but Herodotus goes on oUAE YO:P iOUiWV
L. ZI~hen, Leges Graecorum Sacrae, i. 119, No. 42 (privilege granted to
iOOV 6pyiwv IJEiEXOVTCX, where 6pyiwv cannot weH refer to nve., but can to
Thraclans, dearly for worship of Bendis, 'according to the orade from
'Opcp. and BCXKX., and the omission is easilyexplained as due to homoeo-
Dodona'); W. S. Ferguson, Hellenistic Atlzens, 216 ff., thereon: on
Athenian rel!gious associations? cf. Ferguson, Glassical Philology, v (19 10), teleuton).
257~. The mHuence oftrade IS seen in the fact that early alien cults are p. 26 f. For the mood of the sixth century, cf. Nilsson, History, 20 I ff.;
parhcu~arl~ common ~t Corinth (Wilamowitz, Glaube, ii. 6). On the for the story of Orpheus and sun-worship, cf. [Eratosthenes] Ga ta-
~aturahzatIon of Adoms, cf. W. R. Halliday, Gambridge Ancient History, sterismi, 24.
11.638 : he probably came from Cyprus rather than from Phoenicia. Pindar fr. 137; perhaps, however, written for an Athenian initiated at
p. ~I.f. On the spr~ad of ~poIlo's cult, cf. M. P. Nilsson, History of Greek Eleusis and reHecting the Eleusinian hope (Wilamowitz, Pindaros, 155).
Relzgzons, 201 ff.; WllamowI'tz, Glaube, ii. 26 ff.: for the creedlike orade For the fragment of Alexis, cf. Athenaeus, iv. 164 c.
Hdt. i. 47. ' p. 28 f. On the passage of Theophrastus, cf. H. Bolkestein, Religions-
p. 22 f. On t~e hymn to l!e~ate, cf. Fr. Pfister, Plzilologus, lxxxiv (19 28 ), geschichtliche Versuche und Vorarbeiten, xxi. 2, 52 ff.; for the Gurob frag-
I ff. For the Idea that thls IS deliberate propaganda I am indebted to
ment, cf. Kern, 101 ff. The possibility of, so to speak, self-ordained
Professor Nilsson. ministers is illustrated by Hdt. iv. 76, mentioned p. 276 above: Anacharsis
hirnself celebrates the festival· of the Mother of the gods.
On the rare temples which are earlier than the seventh century, cf.
D. S. Robertso~, A !fandbook ofGreek and Roman Arclzitecture, 51 ff.; on the p. 30f. On the fragment of Euripides (472 Nauck), cf. A. B. Cook,
emergence of hfe-slzed cult-images, V. Müller, PW, Supp., v. 49 0 ff.; Zelts, i. 648 ff. For the lamellae, cf. Kern, 104 ff.
K. Lehmann-Hartleben, Die Antike, vii (193 1 ). The Ptolemaic text, dating from Philopator, in W. Schubart, Einfülzrung
pp. 24~. On the antecede~t~ of the ~ionysiacmovement, cf. M. P. Nilsson, in die Papyruskunde, 352.
Tlze Mzno~~-Myce~aea~ Relzgzon and zts Survivals in Greek Religion, 492 ff.; on IH. GREEKS IN THE EAST AFTER ALEXANDER
the OpposItIOn WhlCh It encountered, Nilsson, The Mycenaean Origin ofGreek
P.33. On the cultural conditions of the period, cf. Ed. Meyer, Blüte und
Mythology, 133, 172, and Wilamowitz, Glaube, ii. 66. Compare the legend
Niedergang des Hellenismus in Asien; W. W. Tarn, Hcllenistic Givilization;
278 Notes: Chapter 111 Notes: Chapter 111 279
Cambridge Ancient History, vii, viii; M. Rostovtzeff, in Scientia February On the multiplication of mysteries in general in Graeco-Roman times,
1933; on the religious moods ofGreece proper, cf. K. Latte, Die Antike, i cf. Cumont, Rel. Or. 223, n. 17: Creek and Latin Inscriptions of Sardis, ed.
(19 25), 146 ff.
by W. H. Buckler-D. M. Robinson (Sardis, vii), i. 46, No. 2 1,1. 4 'Ep[j.lEi
p. 34· On Doura, F. Cumont, Fouilles de Doura-Europos: Baur-Rostovt- Kai] I ['HpCXKÄEi T]ois KOTO: lT<xAa[fO'Tpav] I [eEoiS T]6: TE j.lVO'Ti}[pla Em]- I
zeff-Bellinger, The Excavations at Doura Europos, 19 29- . On Susa, F. [TEMO'av ]Ta lTOAVTEAOOS, where it is hard to guess what the mysteries were;
Cumont, Memoires de la Mission arcMologique en Perse, xx (1928), 77 ff. Ditt. Syll. 985, 1. 41 (text mentioned, pp. 216, 275 above) refers to
and C. R. Ac. Inscr. 1930 ff. 'seeing the mysteries performed'.
p~ 35· Royal cult of Anahita: Berossus fr. 56 in P. Schnabel, Berossos und On the Praises of Isis, cf. W. Peek, Der Isishymnos von Andros und ver-
~te babylonisch-hellenistische Literatur, 275 (fr. 16 in Müller, Frag. hist. gr. wandte Texte: a transposition of its ideas into the third person is found at
11. 50 9); on dubious tradition ascribing such activity to Cyrus, cf. C. the end of the Hermetic treatise called Kore Kosmou. o

Clemen, PW, Supp. v. 683. On the detachment ofChristianityfrom its old periphery, cf. Harnack,
SB Berlin, 1913, 177,n. 2. Christianityclaimed to be the rightful heir to the
pp. 35 ff.. For cults of'all the gods' in the new cities, cf. F.Jacobi, rrANTE~
legacy of Israel: the cult of Isis and Sarapis in the world at large claimed
SEOI (DISS. Halle, 1930), 114 ff.; for Selucid policy in Mesopotamia,
the authority of Egyptian tradition, but did not unchurch its origin.
cf.. M. ~~stovtzeff, Tale Classical Studies, iii. 6 f.; C. F. Lehmann-Haupt,
KIlO, ~11 (19 28), 396 ~ Fo.r the adaptation of local and Greek myths, P.41. On Cybele, cf. H. Graillot, Le Culte de Cybele; on Timotheus, Th.
cf. LucIan, De Dea Syrza: thIS happened in Egypt in the identification of Zielinski, La Sibylle, 83; on mysteries of Attis, Sardis, vii. i, 38, no. 17, 1. 6
Isis with 10, .and in the localization of the Perseus story (Hdt. ii. 9 1). (j.lVO'Ti}Plov AnEl, meaning a hall of initiates, probably belonging to
JI

For PtolemaIc calendars, cf. Fr. Bilabel, Neue Heidelberger Jahrbücher a confraternity; about A.D. 200).
19 29, I ff. On branding at Hierapolis, cf. U. Wilcken, Festgabe Deissmann' pp. 41 ff. On the development of Persian religion, cf. Cumont, Les Mys-
1 ff.; on S.ara.pis, U. Wil?ken, Urkunden der Ptolemiier;:.eit, i. 7 ff. The legend teres de Mithra (ed. 3); Fr. Saxl., Mithra; A. D. Nock, Cnomon, vi (1930),
of the brmgmg of the Image from Sinope is summarized p. 50 above: 32 {f., and in Foakes Jackson-Lake, Beginnings of Christianity, v. 164 ff.
M. Rostovtzeff, cited by O. Weinreich, Neue Urkunden ;:.ur Sarapisreligion, The Persians in Asia Minor induded not only officials but also nobles
7, has drawn attention to the existence at Sinope of an underworld god holding large estates (M. Rostovtzeff in Anatolian Studies presented to Sir
~arzales. 1 s~spect that Sinope was brought into the story in order t6 William Ramsay, 372 ff., a refcrence which I owe to Mr. C. F. Edson).
gIve to SarapIs a supposed neutralorigin, neither Greek nor Egyptian Such men came into dose relations with Greek culture and employed
and also one at a suitable distance. For the awakening of Sarapis, cr. Greek artists; cf. the Dascylium relief (Cumont, Rel. Or. 135, fig. 10),
Porphyry, De abstinentia, iv. 9; for the paeans of Demetrius, Diog. Laert. and a funerary stele in G. Mendel, Catalogue des sculptures (de Constanti-
v. 76 ; for .the Menander fragment, P. Oxy. 1803 and O. Weinreich, nople) iii. 275 ff. For the Cappadocian inscription about Bel, cf. M.
Aegyptus, XI (193 I), 13 ff.; for the festival of Sarapis, Mommsen, CIL, i Lidzbarski, Ephemeris für semitische Epigraphik, i (1900-2), 66 ff.; for the
(ed. 2).~ p. 3 17 (not later than Flavian period in Italy; G. Wissowa Nemrud Dagh inscription, Ditt. OCI, 383; for the Sagarios inscription,
Apophoreton überreicht von der Craeca Halensis, 51).-On the relation of th~ H. Gregoire, C.R. Ac. Inser. 1908,434 ff.; for stories of Magian asceticism,
new mysteries to older Egyptian mysteries, cf. E. Briem, Zur Frage nach cf. Porphyry, De abstinentia, iv. 16; A. D. Nock, JHS, xlix (1929), 113.
dem Ursprun? der hellenistischen Mysterien, Lunds Universitets Arsskrift, Free development on an Iranian basis is illustrated by the divine types on
N. F. Avd. I. 24, 5 (1928), 43 ff.; P. Roussel, Rev. Cl. gr. xlii (19 29), Indo-Scythian coins (W. W. Tarn, JHS, xxii (1902), 276).
15 8 ff.; R. Reitzenstein, ARW, vii (1904),406 ff.; A. D. Nock, Ricerehe It is possible that the Mithraic communion is a generalization öfsome-
!leligiose, vi (193 0 ),394 ff.; HTR, xxv (1932), 341 f., and art. 'Mysteries' thing originally (a) expected at thc end of the world, (b) thought to
m Encyclopaedia of the Social Sciences. With the emergence of Lucius cf. the belong to kings (as in the Scythian objects discussed by M. Rostovtzeff,
Co~tic-.Ethiopi~ ordo confirmationis, in which the neophyte, dothed in Iranians and Creeks in South Russia, 104 ff.).
whIte, IS acclalmed by the people: O. Michels, Jahrb. f. Liturgiewissen- p. 44. The emotion excited by the repulse of the Gauls at Delphi is
schaft, viii (1928), 76 ff. 1t is a welcome indication of the presence and illustrated by representations of the event on Chiusine ash-urns and
familiarity of the rite in Egypt, as is also Athanasius Vita Antonii 14 Calenian pottery (Not. 1931, 497; cf. ib., 1897, 302, the decoration of
(Migne xxvi, p. 864 c), lTPOfji\eEV 6 •AVLWVIOS WO'lTEP' EK TIVOS aAv-rov atempie at Sassoferrata).
j.lEj.lVO'TayOOYTII.lEVOS Kai eEOcpOpOVj.lEVOS.
pp. 45 ff. For Asoka I follow the translation of Vincent A. Smith, Asoka
K
Notes: Chapter 111 Notes~' Chapter IV
(ed. 2), 173 ff., 156 ff.; cf. E. Hultzsch, Corpus Inscriptionum Indicarum, i. Cultesegyptiens cl Delos, 71 ff.; O. Weinreich, Neue Urkunden, 3 1 ff. For the
69 f., 28 f.; W. W. Tarn, Antigonos Gonatas, 336 ff., and R. Mookerji, therapeutae, Roussel, 84 ff. For the authorization neede? to buy the site,
Asoka (with references, p. 33, for the Yavana missionary, 104, for column cf. p. 20 above; Ditt. Syll. (ed. 2), 666, records a Samlan decree of the
in honour of Vasudeva by Heliodorus, about 140 B.C.). For a survey of second century B.C., permitting the priest of Isis to beg ~or the goddes~.
Gandhara art and its analogues, cf. W. Weber, Die Antike,i (1925), 101 ff.; For the claim to imme mo rial antiquity, cf. Apul. Met. Xl. 5 of the PIOl-
on Buddhist influence in the frontier regions, cf. W. W. Tarn, JHS, aphesia, 'diem qui dies ex ista nocte nascetur aet:rn~ mihi nun~upavit
xxii (1902), 271 ff. The mime is P. Oxy. 413. Bardaisan may have known reIigio', and Euripides, Bacchae, 201 ff., where TuesIas, defendI~g the
something of Buddhism; cf. E. Bickel, Diatribe in Senecae Fragmenta, i. then new cult of Dionysus, says: 'The traditions of our fathers, WhlCh we
146 ff. Plotinus joined the Eastern expedition of Gordian in adesire to have as coeval with time, will not be overthr~wn by any argume~t, even
acquire first-hand knowledge of Pcrsian and Indian philosophy (Por- if it has becn the invention of the keenest Wlt.' For the later hIstory of
phyry, Vita Plotini, 3). Sarapis on DeIos, cf. Roussel, 253 ff.; W. S. Ferguson,. Athenian Tribal
Cycles in the Hellenistic Age (Harvard Historical Monographs, 1), 155 ff.
IV. THE OPPOSITE CURRENT
pp. 54 ff. For the dream interpreter of Me~phis, cf.. O. Rubensohn,
pp. 48 ff. On the nature of foreign groups and on the religious consequences Festschrift Vablen, 1 ff. For cult society and pubhe worshlp at Athen~ ~nd
oftheir mode oflifc, cf. G. La Piana,HTR, xx (1927),249 ff. They did Rhodes, cf. Roussel, 258. The view here adopted of the plaee of pohucal
not altogether hold aloof from the worship of the communities in which considerations in the spread of the cult is taken from T. A. Brady's forth-
they settled; thus a Syrian woman at Vesontio restored a temple Deo eoming work, The Reception of Egyptian Cults by Greeks during the last three
Mercurio Cissonio, that is, to a local god identified with Mercury (C1L,
xiii. 5373)' We are here concerned with the incoming cults which centuries before Christ.
attracted attention and not with individual devotion which made no For Magnesia, cf. O. Kern, Inschriften von Magnesia, 84 f., No. 99; for
impress on others, e.g. the invocation by a Dalmatian of his native deity Priene Hiller von Gärtringen, Inschriften von Prime, 138 , No. 195; for
Medaurus at Lambaesis in Africa; Sancte Medaure domi et sancte hic Magn~sia in Thessaly, IG, IX. ii. 1107 (there ishere an association of
(Buecheler, Carmina Latina epigraphica, 1527. 3)' It is important that, as hypostoloi); for Eretria, Arch. Delt. i (1915), 148; for Athens, W. S.
Cumont emphasizes (Rel. Or. 21), Epona is the only deity originating Ferguson, The Athenian Secretaries, 46. We find what was probably ~~
in the Western provinces whose cult had any substantial success in the annual priesthood at Philippi under the Empire (P. Collart, BCH, Im
world at large. She was, for instance, worshipped in Moesia (Y. Todo- (19 29), 80, No. 4 Kclo-rCUp •ApTel-llAWPOV lepTlTevO"os 6eois).
roff, The Pagan Cults in Moesia Inferior (Sofia, 1928), 184 f.). But she filled On the introduetion of the Osiris drama at Athens, cf. A. Rusch, De
the need for a special deity guarding horses and mules. Serapide el Iside in Graecia cultis (Diss. Berlin, 1906 ), 10 f.; at Rome,
For the Eretrian evidence on Isis worship, cf. N. Papadakis, Arch. Delt. Mommsen, CIL, i (ed. 2), p. 333 f. An association of initiates at Prusa
i (1915), 115 ff. (p. 186, the inscription quoted in the text); for the made a thank-offering to Sarapis and Isis, probably in the second century
importance of Greeks coming from Egypt, cf. P. Perdrizet, BCH, xviii A.D. (G. Mendel, BeH, xxiv (1900), 366 ff.).
(1894),418, and P. Roussel, Les Cultes egyptiens cl Detos, 280; for Achaeus, For the sense of soter, soteira, cf. Roussel, 289 ff.; EGC, 87 ff.; P. Oxy.
W. S.Ferguson,HellenisticAthens,386; for Syrians at Rome,La Piana,3I4fl.'. 1380, 235 ('Thou (Isis) didst make .the Dios?uri soteres')~ A~ion i~ his
For the Zoilus letter, cf. C. C. Edgar, Zen on Papyri, i. 55 ff., No. 59034; letter to his father speaks of Sarapls as havmg saved hIrn m perll at
A. Dcissmann, Licht vom Osten (ed. 4), 121 ff.; E. R. Bevan, Later Greek sea (Wilcken-Mitteis, Grundzüge und Chrestomathie der Papyruskunde, I. ii.
Religion, 69 f. Cnidus was at this time very probably in Ptolemaic hands. 56 5 f., No. 480 ). The description of initiates is ~uoted fro~ ~pul. ~el.
For the Sarapis story, cf. Tacitus, Hist. iv. 83 (noting Aegyptiorum antistites xi. 9. Payment for initiation is mentioned by PhIlo, Despeczalzbus legzbus,
sic memorant); E. Schmidt, Religionsgeschichtliche Versuche und Vorarbeiten, i. 323 (ii, p. 261 Mangey). Some charge was m~de for admissi~n t~ thc
VIII. ii. 49 ff. For the vision of Naulochus, cf. Hiller von Gärtringen, dramatic festival of Adonis, if with Glotz we so mterpret the dezkterLOn of
Inschriften von Priene, 139, No. 196; for punishment for delay, Livy, ii. 36. two obols mentioned in a papyrus referring to this celebration (Revue des
The anger of the Egyptian gods became proverbial. etudes grecques, xxxiii (1920), p. 208).
If we should take the piety of Zoilus seriously, we should say that his p. 57 f. For an instance of the liquidation of a guiId, cf. Dess. 721 5a
experience was suggested by the tradition. (funerary college of freedmen and slaves w?rking in the gold-mines ~~
pp. 50 ff. For the Delian inscription, cf. IG, xi. 4, 1299: P. Roussel, Les Dacia; extinguished in A.D. 167). G. La Plana, Harv. Theol. Rev. XVlll
Notes: Chapter IV Notes.~ Chapter IV
(1925), 268 ff., has remarked on the irnportance to Pope Victor of his p. 61. For the Jewish attitude towards Gentiles, cf. G. F .. Mo~~e,
possession ofthe catacornb: only those in cornrnunion with hirn were sure ]udaism, i. 22; for the date of Job, Kautzsch-,Bertholet, Dze hedzge
of burial. For Isis saving the universe, cf. Kaibel, Epigrammata graeca, Schriften des alten Testaments (cd. 4), ii. 50.
9 8 5, 4 (Philae); for the Delian rcfcrences, cf. Roussel, 197 f., 173; for pp. 61 ff. For the language of the Jews in Rome, cf. I. Zoller, Ricerche
Boeotia, Thalheirn,PW, vii'9A; forTithorea,Nilsson, Griechische Feste, 154 f . Religiose, viii (1932), 46 I ff.; for a list of known synagogues, K,auss, PW,
p. 59 f. For narnes derived from Men, cf. N. Papadakis, Arch. Delt. i iv A. 12 93 ff. (to which Doura-Europos is now to be added); for the
(19 I 5), 156. For the Beroeari inscriptions, cf. A. K. Orlandos, Arch. impression which a synagogue would rnake on an o~~~ider, G. F. M~ore,
Delt. ii (1916), 144 ff. i. 284. Josephus in passages (B], ii. 119 ff.; A], XVlll. I I ff.) very hkely
Mr. C. F. Edson has kindly contributed the following remarks: based on Nicolaus of Damascus treats the Pharisees, Sadducees, and
'Dexilaos, the father of ApolIonides, bears a pure and characteristic old Essenes as philosophical schools, differentiated by their attitude on fate
Macedonian name of a distinctly aristocratic flavour. Proper names (G. F. Moore, HTR, xxii (1929), 371 ff.); Augustine, Ciu. Dei,. vi. I I,
compounded of -laos are quite common in early Macedonia (0. Hoff- quotes from Seneca, 'illi tarnen causas ritus sui nouerunt: malOr pars
mann, Die Makedonen) and occur in the royal family itself, e.g. Menelaos, populi facit quod cur faciat ignorat'.
son of Alexander I, Archelaos, son ofPerdiccas 11, and Agelaos (this last For proselytes in Antioch, cf. Joserhus, B], vii. 45. For grave inscrip-
among the names of the royal family in the treaty between Athens and tions of Jewish proselytes, cf. N. Müller, Insehr. d-/üdischen Kata~omben am
Perdiccas in 422 B.C., P. Davis, A]A, second series, xxx (1926), 181, Monteverde, 74, No. 77. Epigraphy warns us agamst exaggeratlOn of the
fragment c, line 52). Mene1aos also appears in the dynasty of Lyncestis success of this movement (G. La Piana, HTR, xx (19 2 7), 390 ).
(Hoffmann, op. cit., 165 f.). Apollonides is therefore to be considered of For 'fearers of God', cf. E. Schürer, SB Berlin, 1897, 200 ff.; Moore, i.
true Macedonian stock. In the list of hieromnemonoi to Delphi in 178 B.C. 3 25 ff. Apul. Met. ix. 14 seems to refer to a wo~an belonging ~it~e~ t.o
(Ditt. Syll. 636) there appears as one of Perseus' two representatives this type of religion or to Christianity; 'tune spretIs atque ealcatIs dl~lms
a L1J.1wvl~l1S •ATToi\i\wvl~ov Bepo!<:(ioS. 178 is almost a generation after thc numinibus in uicem certae religionis mentita sacrilega praesumptlOne
date given to ApolIonides' dedication by Orlandos, and it is therefore dei, quem praedicaret unicum, confietis obseruationibus uacuis fallens
very possible that Simonides is the son of ApolIonides the priest of omnis homines'; Epictetus (ii. 9. 19 ff.) mocks at half-hearted prosel~tes.
Atargatis. Ifsuch be the case,the familyof Apollonides and Simonides was For anti-Semitism, cf. I. Heinemann, PW, Supp. v. 3 ff., and the questlOns
of some prominence. It is in any case significant that at the end of the addressed to would-be proselytes in Palestine in the second century of o~r
third century the priest of Atargatis in Beroea was a native Macedonian.' era (Moore, i. 333 f.); for Jewish quietism, Michel~ Theol. St~d. u: Krzt.
For Aphroditc Syria Phistyis, cf. IG, ix. 417, and the new ed. miti. pt. i, cii (193 0 ), 302 ff. (apropos of Letter to Aristeas and lts approxlmatlOn to
fase. I, No. Q5, with Klaffenbach's analysis of the material; W. J. Wood- Stoieism).
house, Aetolia, 20 I. This Aphroditc was worshipped in atempie which p. 63 f. For pagan following of Jewish religi~us.~ustoms, ~~. Josephus,
she appears to have shared with Ma-rnp TWV 6ewv Kai nap6€vos, the latter Contra Apionem, ii. 282; Philo, De uita Moyszs, u. 20 ff. (u. p. 137 M,
perhaps a younger consort given to Cybele on the analogy of Persephone,'s mentioning also the Day of Atonement).
relation to Demetcr (Klaffenbach, p. 52'; but cf. K. Latte, Gnomon, ix For the proseucha, cf. Ditt. OGI, 742. For worshippers of Hypsistos,
(1933), 4 0 9). cf. Schürer, l.c.; E. H. Minns, Scythians and Greeks, 620 ~.; Cumont,
For Thuria, cf. N. S. Valmin, Inscriptions de la Messenie, Nos. land 2 Hypsistos (1897), and article in PW, ix. 444 ff. For Sa.bazlOs-Sabaoth,
(Kungl. Izumanistiska Vetenskapssamfundet i Lund, Ärsberättelse, 1928-9), cf. Cumont, C.R. Ac. Inser., 1906, 63 ff., Musle Beige, XIV (19 10), 55 ff.,
108 ff. On the ritual theatres, cf. Valrnin, 133; Cumont, Fouilles de Rel. Or. 60 ff., 228.
Doura-Europos, 185, 188, 202 f., and Syria, v (1924), 354 ff.
V. THE PATH TO ROME
U. Wilcken, Festgabe Deissmann, 3, has remarked that the Maceclonian
soldier, Machatas, whom we find erecting in 222 B.C. a shrine'at Pelusium p. 66f. For the Puteoli text, cf. IGR, i. 420; K. Latte, Die Religion der
in the Fayoum to the Syrian goddess and Aphrodite Berenice had a wife Römer (A. Bertholet, Religionsgeschichtliche Lesebuch, ed. 2, fase. 5), 37,
Asia, probably of Oricntal origin. (But the parallel figure Astarte had n. 82. For the Tyrian letter, cf. G. La Piana, HTR, xx (19 2 7), 257 ff.
been worshipped in Egypt from the time of Amenophis IV; cf. H. Ranke, Wissowa, RK, 86, draws attention to the marble basis in the Forum,
Studies Griffith, 4 I 2 ff.) inscribed Numini deae Viennae, and obviously set there by a group of men
Notes: Chapter V Notes: Chapter V
from Vienne. So läter the cult of St. Menas was establishcd on thc road For the authority ofthe quindecimuiri, cf. Dess. 4131 (Lyons); in CIL, x.
to Ostia in A.n. 589 by an Alexandrian corpora ti on (L. Duchesne, Bult. 3698, they confirm the right to insignia of sacerdos Matris deum Baianae at
soc. arch. d'Alexandrie, xii (19 10 ),5). Cumae (17 August 289); ibo 3699, they have some authority over the
For the Syrian colony on the Janiculum, cf. La Piana, 314. For guild of dendrophori at Cumae (A.n. 251); R. Paribent, Not., 1916,324, has
Eunus, cf. F. Jacoby, Die Fragmente der griechischen Historiker, ii A, 288 found a probable indication of their control over ·Cybele's priesthood
(No. 87, F. 108; probably Posidonius). For SulIa's vision, Plut. Sulla, 9. at Ostia.
A. von Domaszewski, Westdeutsche Zeitschrift, xiv (1895), 58, has stresscd For State interference in religious matters, cf. Mommsen, Gesammelte
the importance of the movemcnt of centurions from unit to umt. Cen- Schriften, iii. 389 ff.
turions could afford to make dedications. For Maioumas, cf. Joannes The origin of the Bacchanalian movement is perhaps to be sought in
Lydus, De Mensibus, iv. 80, p. 133, Wünsch; for Sarapis at Puteoli, CIL, the presence in Rome of many slaves from Tarentum, captured in 208
x. 1781, i. 6. For Delos, cf. M. Bulard, La Religion domestique dans la B.C. (T. Frank, CQ,xxi (1927), 128 ff.). It may again be due to contacts
colonie italienne de Dilos;for Italian interest in exotic cults, cf. J. Hatzfeld, with Sicily, where the strength of the cult is shown by the vases from
Les Trafiquants italiens dans l'Orient hellcnique, 357 ff. Centuripe discussed by G. M. A. Richter, Metropolitan Museum Studies, ii
p. 68 f. For the Romanization of Cybe.Ie, cf. J. Carcopino, Mil. d'arcMol. (1930), 187 ff. (second and first centuries B.C.). For the Senate's decree,
et d'hist. xl (1923), 135 ff., 237 ff.; La Piana, HTR, xx (1927), 28 9 f. cf. Dess, 18, and Ed. Fraenkel, Hermes, lxvii (1932), 369 ff.
Carcopino makes a strong case for the view that the cult at Pessinus itself p. 71 f. When Livy says (xxxix. 13. 11) öf sexual and homo-sexual inter-
was given a more worldly character. On the banishment of the slave, cf. course among these devotees hanc summam inter eos religionem esse, he may well
Julius Obsequens, 44 ( 104); on the festal cycle, cf. Wissowa, RK, 3 22 ; be quoting mere scandal, but it is possible (a) that there was some queer
on the Initium, Mommsen, CIL, i (ed. 2), p. 314; H. Graillot, Le Culte de sacramental valuation set on such acts, as in [Apuleius] Asclepius, 2 I, and
Cybele, 174, 337 f.; for initiations, cf. also a text from Cyme, of the first in some gnostic sects, or (b) that there is a misunderstanding ofsome idea
century of our era, mentioning initiates and the purehase of an under- ofintercourse with the god in initiation, for which material is to be found
ground room for worship, published by J. Keil, Jahreshefte, xiv (191 I), in A. Dieterich, Mithrasliturgie, 121 ff., with O. Weinreich's addenda in
Beib!. 133 ff. the third edition, 244 ff.; so a misunderstanding ofEucharistic language
p. 69 f. On the taurobolium, cf. \Vissowa, RK, 322 ff.; EGC, 118 f. The caused the Christians to be accused of cannibalism and a misunder-
rebirth is physical; at the end of paganism it may have acquired moral standing of their eschatological views caused them to be regarded as
connotation, cf. Carmen contra paganos, 62 (A. Riese, Anthologia latina, ed. 2, revolu tionaries.
i. 22), 'uiuere cum speras uiginti mundus in annos'. Criobolium was For the Tusculum inscription, cf. Cumont-Vogliano, AJA, 1933. On
perhaps introduced from some other Thracian cult, e.g. that of Sabazios; Dionysiac mysteries in general, cf. Cumont, Rel. Or. 195 ff.
perhaps it was a cheaper substitute.
Focr new temple foundations at Rome, cf. Wissowa, RK, 354 ff., 596 ff.
For the Julianic text, cf. H. J. Rose, JHS, xliii (1923), 194 ff.; xlvi p. 74f. For a Mithraic portico, cf. Cumont, TM, i. 58. We have, ibo ii.
(1926), 180 ff.
100, inser. 35, the epitaph of a freedman of Severus, Caracalla, and Geta,
For belief in the efficacy ofblood, cf. F. J. Dölger, Vorträge der Bibliothek described as sacerdos inuicti Mithrae domus Augustanae; that means of the
Warburg, 1923/4 (published 1926), 196 ff. For the earliest taurobolium, cf. Emperor's household, who presumably formed a sodality. The Mith-
Dess. 4271; R. M. Peterson, Cults ofCampania, 156 f.; for its time ofyear, raeum at Trier is in the sacral area, but two altars erected in it by Martius
J. Toutain, Cultes pai'ens dans l'Empire romain, ii. 84 f. Martialis pater have the phrase, in suo posuit (G. Loeschke, Tempel-
In the Baths of Caracalla there is a Mithraeum, outside which is a pit bezirk, 36).
probably dug for the purpose; so at Trier (S. Loeschke, Die ßrforschung For Capitolia, cf. Wissowa, PW, iii. 1539; for that at Oxyrhynchus and
des Tempelbezirkes im Altbachtale zu Trier, 35, Abb. 9). If this attachment for the cult of Juppiter Capitolinus at Arsinoe, Wilcken, Grundzüge,
of cult was made, it may be suggested that it was due to the fact that I. i. II6.
Mithraism alone among the mystery-religions did not possess a cult- VI. HOW EASTERN CULTS TRAVELLED
drama symbolizing a cosmic process, and to the possibility of a connexion P.77. For Mithraists refusing wreaths, cf. Tertullian, De corona militis, 15.
being made between the rite and the cosmogonic role of the buB, from p. 78. The absence of theologie al explanations from mysteries is attested
which life came.
by Macrobius, Saturnalia, i. 7. 18, 'nam occultas et manantes ex meri ueri
Notes: Chapter VI Notes: Chapter VI
fonte rationes ne in ipsis quidem sacris enarrari permittitur, sed si quis p. 84. P. Oxy. 1382, re-edited by Manteuffel, 92. For miraculous gifts
illas adsequitur conti ne re intra conscientiam tectas iubetur'. of drinking water, cf. Plutarch, Quaest. graec. 54 with W. R. Halliday's
note, p. 20 5 (Aphrodite on Samos); the Lindian story, p. 20 above; and
p. 79 f. Heliodorus, ix. 9, echoes Philo, De uita Moysis, ii. 195 (ii, p.
a miracle of S. Frances Xavier in the Roman Breviary for December 3
164 M), as Geffcken re marks (Ausgang, 277); there may have been some
(Lectio vi) 'tantum marinae aquae signo crucis conuertit in dulcem,
common source. On the Genesis quotation, cf. Heinemann, PW, SUpPe
quantum quingentis uectoribus, qui siti adigebantur ad mortem, diu
v. 23 ff.; on Jewish Orphica, cf. O. Kern, Orphicorum Fragmenta, 260 ff.;
suffecit: qua in uarias quoque regiones asportata, aegri plurimi subinde
on Gog and Magog, Fr. Pfister, in E. Hoffmann-Krayer and H. Bäch-
told-Stäubli, Handwörterbuch des deutschen Aberglaubens, iii. 910 ff.; for the cu rat i sunt'.
supra-Hebraized form in Corp. Herm. i, there are analogies in the Septua- p. 85 f. For the Wadi Fatire incident, cf. J. Vogt, Die alexandrinischen
gint (H. J. Cadbury in Jackson-Lake, Beginnings of Christianity, v, Münzen, i. 85 ff.
p. 4 22, n. 3). For Vespasian, cf. Suetonius, Vesp. 7; Tacitus, Hist. iv. 81.
p. 80f. For the Ploiaphesia, cf. L. Deubner, Athenische Mitteilungen, For the Ekdysia, cf. Antoninus Liberalis, 17·
xxxvii (1912), 180 ff.; for an Isiac procession, Cumont, Rel. Or., pI. viii, For Arternon, cf. Artemidorus, Onirocritica, ii. 45, p. 148 . 25 Hercher.
I; for a sacred dance, ibo viii. 2; for the adoration of sacred water, ibo p. 86. P. Oxy. 1381, re-edited by Manteuffel, 86 ff. LI. 135, 15 8 , are
vii. 2; for the Katochoi, U. Wilcken, Urkunden der Ptolemäerzeit, i. 52 ff.; difficult; in 161 I read E1TEYVWKEl [v], as Reitzenstein, in 178 llaK pOAOYOV-
for penitents, Ovid, Ex Ponto, i. I. 51 ff.; for the hymns, Martial, ix. Il[E]VO[V], as K. Fr. W. Schmidt; in 172 <pVO'lK~ ••• i\6y~ refers to the
29. 6, X. 48. I. common ancient allegorization of myth as describing natural phenomena
For the portent of Cybele's anger, cf. Cassius Dio, xlviii. 43. 4; for the (K. Latte, Die Religion der Römer, 38 ).
impression made by her processions, cf. the Metropolitan Museum bronze p. 89. On acclamations, cf. E. Peterson, EIL SEOL; for the story of
with an imaginative picture of Cybele in a car drawn by Hons (G. M. A. Cyprian, Acta Sanctorum, Sept. vii, p. 244 A. In Epictetus, i. 16. 16 f. we
Richter, Bronzes 0/ the Metropolitan Museum, 128) and the representation have Ileycxs 6 eEOS ehl ... with repetition. For the libelli, cf. Augustine,
ofa procession on an altar, Cumont, Rel. Or., fig. 3 (facing p. 52), and ibo Ciu. Dei, xxii. 8. He says that there were seventy in Iess than two years
224, n. 28, on the confraternity of hastiferi; for priestly insignia, cf. G. at Hippo Regius.-For Isis at Menouthi, cf. Zacharias Scholasticus, LiJe
Calza, Not., 1931, 514 f. (occabus or armlet, and mitre). For priestly 0/ Severus (ed. M.-A. Kugener in Patrologia Orientalis, ii. 18 ff.): We ~ay
diadems, cf. G. A. S. Snijder, Oudheidkundige Mededeelingen uit's Rijksmuseum note the promise made by Propertius to Bacchus of what he wIll do If by
van Oudheden te Leiden, Nieuwe Reeks, XIII. i (1932), 8ff. The sanctity of the god's bounty he is vouchsafed sleep (iii. 17. 19 f.); 'quod superest
priestly dress is seen in the way in which it facilitated Domitian's escape uitae, per te et tua cornua uiuam, uirtutisque tuae, Bacche, poeta ferar'.
in A.D. 69 and that ofVolusius in 43 B.C.: the latter dressed as the wearer pp. 90 ff. For the recording ofmiracles and for literaryworks about them,
ofthe Anubis attire (Appian, Civil War, iv. 47,§ 200). Priestlydevotion is cf. Pfister, PW, SUppe iv. 2g8 ff.; P. Roussel, BCH, Iv (193"1), 73, No. 2,
shown by an epitaph at Ostia (Not., 1913, 134, No. 14), qui induxit I. 1 and his discussion; A. Wilhe1m, npaKT1KO: Tf\S •AKcx2T\Il{cxs EV •AeilvCX1S, vi
arbores XVIIII. (193 1),3 19 (sanctuary at Themisonium saved from the Gauls). For ~he
p. 82. For prophesying by priests of Cybele, cf. Polybius, xxi. 37· 5; people sharing in thejoy, cf. Ditt. Sy!l. 1173.5, 10 (~on~e~s of.-:'-scleplUs
J. Carcopino, Mtlanges d'arcMologie et d'histoire, xl (1923),261 ff.; for the at Rome). For the fragments of Aehan, cf. Hereher s edItIOn, 11. 195 ff.;
man who filled forty sacks, Ch. Fossey, BCH, xxi (1897),60 (epitaph at for the dialogue ab out Delphi, Manteuffel, 95, No. 6; for the Heroicus,
Kefr-Haouar in Syria); for religious agyrtai in general, Pollux, vii. 188 S. Eitrem, Symbolae Osloenses, viii. Ditt. Syll. 867 (ab out A.D. 160), a
and p. 281 above. For threats by such priests, cf. Persius, V. 186 f.; for decree ofthe people ofEphesus, records that temples and altars have been
the fear of the curse, Pliny, Natural History, xxviii. 19, 'defigi quidem " erected to their own Artemis in many pI aces because of her manifest
diris precationibus nemo non metuit'. epiphanies; "
p. 83. Celsus in Origen, Contra Celsum, vii. 9 (p. 55 of O. Glöckner's For confession inscriptions, cf. F. Steinleitner, Die Beichte im Zusam-
separate edition). menhang mit der sakralen Rechtspflege in der Antike; EGC, 73 f.; W. H. Buckler-
D. M. Robinson, 'Greek and Latin Inscriptions of Sardis' (Sardis VII. i),
p. 84. Aristides, Oratio viii (vol. i, pp. 88, 95, Dindorf = xlv. 15, 29,
97 f. Nos. 95 f.; W. H. Buckler, CR, 1933, 7 f.
vol. ii, pp. 356,360, Keil). Cf.O. Weinreich, Neue Urkunden zur Sarapis-
That a miracle did not always produce adhesions we have seen at
religion, 3 ff.; A. Boulanger, Aelius Aristide; Wilamowitz, SB Berlin, 1925,339.
288 Notes: Chapter VI Notes: .Chapter VII
Delos (p. 53). In the same way Mohammedans made pilgrirnage to TWV &O'TPCUV), by which he did good to this man and evil to that, as rulers
Christian monasteries famous for miracles (A. Fischer, Berichte d. sächisehen do by means of their guards. Philostratus, Ap. Ty. v. 12, also refers to
Gesellschaft d. Wissenschaften, lxxxi (1929), iii. 2). The supernatural aid charlatans who claimed by their craft to alter or undo what is fated,
to be gained was valued, without men concluding that any reorientation contrasting their conduct with that of his hero, who foretold the future
was necessary.
by direct revelation. According to Firmicus, Math. ii. 30. 5, the Emperor
For the papyrus catechism (second century A.D.), cf. Fr. BilabeI, alone is above fate: this could be deduced from high doctrines about his
Philologus, lxxx (1925), 339. position, but looks like an attempt to avoid the common association of
For the hymn of Artemidorus, cf. H. Herter, De Priapo (Religions- the art with treasonable attempts.
geschichtliche Versuche und Vorarbeiten, xxiii), 233 ff. Cf. the inscription of p. 102 f. For religious promises in regard to the after life, cf. A. D. Nock,
Caecilius Don~!ianus, p. 136. For Manichee hymns, cf. C. Schmidt, Ein HTR, xxv (1932),344 ff.; for the wife ofPraetextatus, Buecheler, Carmina
Mani-Fund in Agypten, 30 (SB Berlin, 1933, 31); for Augustine's psalm, latina epigraphica, I I I, 23; for Pliny's views on survival, Natural History,
H. J. Rose, JTS, xxviii (1927), 383 ff. vii. 188 ff.
p. 9 2 f. Among works of art particular importance attaches to a group p. 103 f. For the attainment of a nature like god, cf. K. Preisendanz,
discussed by Fr. Saxl, Mithra (pt. i, chs. 2-3), and B. Schwcitzer, Archäeo- Papyri graecae magicae, iv. 220 (i, p. 78). /
logisches Jahrbuch, 193 I, in which a deity is represcnted frontally, and this Philo, Quaestiones in Exodum, ii. 29; R. Reitzenstein, Die Vorgeschichte
representation is set in a framework of small scenes showing divine der christlichen Taufe, 113. For the prayer for defence, P. gr. mag. i. 215
. actions or attributes.-The earlier cult of Asclepius at Abonutichus is (i, p. 12); cf. xiii. 613, 635,712 (ii, pp. 116 ff.) .
shown by coins; Waddington-Babelon-Reinach, Recueil general des mon- p. 104f. For ancient ideas of possession, cf. J. Tambornino, De antiquo-
naies grecques d'Asie mineure (ed. 2), i. 167*, Nos. 4, 4 a . rum daemonismo (Religionsgeschichtliche Versuche und Vorarbeiten, vii. 3), and
p. 97· Horace, Satires, i. 5,97; Campbell Bonner, Trans. Am. Phil. Ass. Menander's Hiereia, ofwhich P. Oxy. 1235 gives the plot (it is pretended
xli (19 11),82; AJA, 2nd series, xxxiii (1929), 368 ff.; Heron, Pneumatica, that a servant is possessed, and he is brought to a priest for treatment).
i. 38 , p. 175, Schmidt, 17, p. 99 (cf. M. Bertholet,Journal dessavants, 18 99, For the fear of bewitchment, cf. Buecheler, Carmina latina epigraphica,
27 1 ff.; A. Delatte, La catoptromancie grecque et ses dirives, 201). On a sup- 1604 (a woman, long siek, died carminibus dfjixa). On daimones, cf. p. 222 ff.
posed wonder in the Sarapeum at Alexandria, cf. W. Weber, Drei Unter- p. 106. On rings with Harpocrates, cf. Pliny, Natural History, xxxiii. 41
suchungen zur ägyptisch-griechischer Religion, 9 ff. (the phrase is significant; uiri quoque portare incipiunt). If Sergius Paulus
sent for Paul and Barnabas his motive was no doubt in part curiosity:
VII. THE APPEAL OF THESE CULTS so also with Paul's being brought before the Areopagus (as F. C. Burkitt,
p. 100. For ancient criticism of astrologie al ideas, cf. Cicero, De divina- JTS, xv (1914),462).
tione, ii. 87, with A. S. Pease's note; A. D. Nock, Sallustius, lxx ff. For For this interest in Egypt, cf. Hist. Aug., uita Seueri, 17· 4.
astrology and the spread of the idea of causality, cf. M. P. Nilsson, pp. 108 ff. For the letter of Thessalus, cf. P. Boudreaux, Catalogus codicum
History of Greek Religion, 282. For the des ire to escape from fate, cf. P. astrologorum graecorum, VIII. iii. 132 ff.; Cumont, ibo VIII. iv. 253 ff.; F. Boll,
Wendland, American Journal of Theology, xvii (1913), 345 ff. Zeitschriftfür die neutestamentliche Wissenschaft, xvii (19 I 6), 139 ff.; Cumont,
p. 101. For the view that worship is useless, cf. Maximus ofTurin, Oratio Revue de Philologie, xlii (1918), 85ff., and Monuments Piot, xxv (1921/2), 77ff.
contra paganos (edited by A. Spagnolo-C. H. Turner, JTS, xvii (19 16 ), The motive of the smuggling in of paper is perhaps parodied by Apul.
32 I ), 'aiunt pagani fato omnia fieri et nihil preces, nihil orationes ualere'. Met. vi. 25 ff. (Lucius, when in the shape of an ass, regrets that he had
For Attis, cf. A. D. Nock, Sallustius, li; Hippolytus, Refutatio, v. 9. 9. nota stilus and tablets to take down the story of Cupid and Psyche).
p. 101 f. Belus asfortunae rector; Dess. 4333. For Sarapis and Moira, cf. For paralleis, cf. R. Reitzenstein, HMR, 127 ff.
ManteuffeI, 93 ff. (cf. 23 ff.); for the Praises of Isis, W. Peek, Isishymnos For the Rabbinic parallel, cf. A. H. Goldfahn, Monatschriftf. Gesch. u.
von Andros, 22, 11. 171 f.; 74 f. The Hermetic fragment is in Lactantius, Wis,r. d. Judentums, xxii (1873), 52.
Institutiones diuinae, ii. 15; the note ofServius is onAen. iv. 694. Iamblichus, For the Mandulis text, cf. Preisigke, Sammelbuch griech. Urk. aus Ägypten,
De mysteriis, viii. 7, says that we worship the gods as deliverers from fate. 4127. I am about to print a discussion in HTR, and append for con-
Libanius, Oratio i, 43, says that an adversary accused hirn of having venience a restoration:
dealings with a man who had authority over the stars (avApl TVPCXVVOVvTl CxKTlvoß6Ae AeOiToTcx, MCXVAOOAl, T1T<xv, Mo:KcxpeO, OT)J.licx 0'00 TIVCX ACXJ.l'TTpa
29° Notes: Chapter VII .Notes.~ Chapter VII 29 1
6eeXlJevos, hrevo1')O"cx Kcxi hroAvTIpeXylJOO"CX o:cr<PCXAWS tMvcxI 6eAoov, ei O"V i(= EI) 6 rj::plies that he can keep a secret and has been initiated; cf. Achilles
';AIOS. ö:AOTPIOV EIJCXVTOV ETIOI1')O"eXlJ1')V TIeXO"1')S KCXKeiCXS Kcxi mxO" [1')S &ee] OTOS Tatius, v. 26.
Kcxi ayvevO"cxs ES TIOAW Xpov[OV Ta TIpeTIOVTCX e]TI 6e{cxs euO"eßeicxs iveK[ev] Libanius, Oratio xxiv, 36; Buecheler, Carmina latina epigraphica, iii. 25·
~TIe6vO"eXlJ1')V Kcxi Ev6ecxO"eXIJevos O:ve [TIeX1')V]. vevoo [V yap KCXT] eAel~eXS IJOI Cf. Iamblichus, Vita Pythagorae, 18; A. D. Nock, JHS, xlv (1925),88 f.
aecxvrov EV T4> XpVO" ••••• KCXCPOS Al •• T ••• POOVTCX TOV oUPCXVlCil,CilAOV KCXI p. 116. Philo, De specialibus legibus, i. 320 (ii, p. 260 M); possibly in.flu-
aTOTI ••• v AelJlJCXTCX KCXTa Aelvov VVKTIAPOIJOV •• VICX CX,TI1CXTOV TIOI1')O"eXlJevos, enced by Wisdom vi. 22, to which Canon W. L. Kn?x drew ~y attentIon.
EV ~ Kcxi ay{~ T~ Tils 6:6CXVCXO"{CXS VACXTI AovO"eXlJevos cpcx{ [V1J AevTep ]OV, On the Chaldaic oracles, cf. W. Kroll, De oraculzs Chaldatczs (Breslauer
{iA6es KCXTa KCXlPOV o:vCXToAas TIOIO ••• eis TOV aov a1')KOV, ~06:v~ Te 0"4> Kcxi philologische Abhandlungen, vii. I); J. Bid~z, Revue bel~e de philol. et d' hist.
VCX~ elJTIVOICXV TIcxpexOOV Kcxi AWCXIJIV lJeycXA1')v. ev6cx ae eyvoov, MCXVAOVA1, vii (1928) 1477 ff. There were other pnvate mystenes; cf. A. D. Nock,
';Al0V TOV TICXVTeTIOTIT1')V AeO"TIOT1') V, crrrCxvTCilV ßCXO"IAECX, Alwvcx TICXVTOKPeX- JHS, xlvi (1926), 50 ff., for a Hecate rite embedded in the Orphic
TOpCX. ci> T6)V eÜTvXeaTcXTOOV Acx6)v T6)V KCXT01KOWTCilV, f)v 6';A10S McxvAOVAIS Argonautica (fifth century A.D.).
&yCXTI~, TTjV tepav TCxAIJIV, ';TIS -EaTiv UTIO Ta O"Kä:[TITpCX Tils eue]6efpcxs IJVPl- p. 117. For the gnostic gem with a quotation from the Poimandres, cf.
CilVVIJOV "IO"IAoS. Campbell Bonner, HTR, xxv (1932), 362 ff.
p. 110 f. For Cyprian of Antioch, cf. Acta Sanctorum, Sept. vii. 222 ff. p. 119. On knowledge of God, cf. R .. Bultmann, in G. Kittel, Theolo-
For all knowledge, cf. Preisendanz, P. gr. mag. v. 256 ff. (i, p. 190), gisches Wörterbuch zum Neuen Testament,1. 122.
a threat to the gods, 'unless I learn the things in the souls of all men,
Egyptians, Greeks, Syrians, Ethiopians, and every race and every tribe, VIII. THE SUCCESS OF THESE CULTS IN THE
unless I learn the things that have been and are to be, unless I learn their ROMAN EMPIRE
crafts and occupations and works and lives and the names of them and This chapter seeks to state the broad lines of developme~t. I hope
oftheirfathers and mothers and brothers and friends and the dead': Orac. to return to the religious periodization of the Roman EmpIre, and to
Sibylle viii. 56 (of Hadrian) Kcxi IJCXYIKWV O:AVTOOV IJVO"Ti}PICX TICxVTCX lJe6E~el. attempt something of the sort for the Hellenistic age.
For the date ofthe kernel ofthe magical papyri, cf. A. D. Nock, Journal p. 122. On the divisions of Roman society, cf. ~riedländer-Wissowa,
oJ Egyptian Archaeology, xv (1929),225 ff. Darstellungen aus der Sittengeschichte Roms (ed. 10), I. 104 ff.
For Porphyry and the Clarian Orades, cf. id., Revue des ttudes anciennes, p. 124. On the period from Augus~us to t~e deat~ of ~ero, cf. M.
xxx (1928), 280 ff. Rostovtzeff, Mystic Italy; A. D. Nock In Cambridge Anczent Hzstory, x.
p. 112. Maximus Tyrius, xi. 6, p. 134 Hobein. Cf. Epictet. ii. 7; Lucan, p. 12 5. For the Narcissus episode, cf.'Cassius Dio, Ix. 19, 2.
ix. 566 ff., on the wise man's freedom from any need of oracles: Cicero, On social change, cf. M. Rostovtzeff, Social and Economic l!~tory oJ
De diuinatione, ii. 1 I, remarks that you do not consult an orade on moral, the Roman Empire, 97 ff., 107; on the disappearance of the survlvmg old
philosophieal, or political issues. But Diodetian and his colleagues con- families from the government of the Imperial (as contrasted with the
sulted Didyma on the persecution of the Christians (H. Gregoire, senatorial) provinces, E. Groag in Strena Buliciana, 253 ff. .
Mtlanges Holleaux, 81 ff.). For the Egyptian gods, cf. H. Mattingly, BMC.Roman Empire, 11. ~ix,
For the text of Nearchus, cf. Wilcken-Mitteis, Grundzüge und Chresto- 12 3, 149 (all bronze: also lxxxviii. 345, coin showmg t~mple ofSarapls~;
mathie, I. ii. 148, No. 117. The quotation from Philodemus; Concerning J. Vogt, Alexandrinischen Münzen, i. 43 f. (who. show~ an Increase from thls
the Gods, i, col. x, p. 17, cf. 57, ed. Diels (Abh. Berlin, 1915, vii). Cf. time of Graeco-Egyptian types: on Alexandnan COlns they appeared first
Philostratus, Apoll. Ty. iii. 42, and Reitzenstein, HMR, 237. Aristotle under Nero; ibo 104 f.); Not., 1893,267 ff., and 1904, 118 ff.; A. D. Nock,
fr. 45, p. 1483 a 19, Berlin ed. For the wisdom of the founders of Theology, xvi (1928), 156 f.
mysteries, cf. Sallustius 3 (and Prolegomena, xliii ff.). p.126f. On the second century, cf. Friedländer-Wissowa, iii. 119 ff.; on
p. I14f. With this passage from Apuleius, Apologia, cf. Met. iii. 15, where Antinous, W. Weber, Drei Untersuchungen, 19 ff.; Vogt, 106;. on t~e
Fotis, about to reveal the magie secrets of her mistress, expresses her fear possibly posthumous issues, Mattingly-Sydenham,. Roman Impertal Co zn-
butsays'sedmeliusdetedoctrinaque tua praesumo, qui praeter generosam age, ii. 335, 398 ff.; on the equites singulares, CIL, VI. 3 11 38-5 1.
natalium dignitatem, praeter sublime ingenium, sacris pluribus initiatus p. 127 f. On the rise of men from the Eastern provinces to promi~ence. in
profecto nosti sanctam silentii fidem'; in Lucian, Menippus, 2, M. pretends Rome, cf. W. Weber, Abh. Berlin, 1932, v. 65 ff.; on the com wlth
that he must not reveal what he saw in the underworld, and his friend RELIG AVG, W . Weber, SB Heidelberg, 19 10, vii.
Notes: Chapter VIII Notes: Chapter VIII
p. 129 f. On effects in soldiers' dedications of Imperial policy, cf. A. von perhaps best rendered 'There is no god like Zeus Sarapis'. It is an
Domaszewski, Westdeutsche Zeitschrift, xiv (1895), 59 ff.; on the Roman acclamation, of the type studied by E. Peterson, EIL SEOL. Thus in the
re~ction, cf. A. D. Nock, HTR, xxiii ( I 930), 258 ff.; on Aurelian, Orphic liturgical text found at Gurob (0. Kern, Orphicorum Fragmenta,
Wissowa, RK, 36 7; on the Arval brothers, Wissowa, PWii. 146 7; for the 102, No. 3 1,1. 23), we read, 'There is one Dionysus', but the context is full
dedication to Mithras, Dess. 659 (and cf. Not., 1917, 272, No. 23, of other deities. Perhaps the formulation of One Zeus Sarapis at Alex-
a templum dei Solis built at Corno by a corrector Italiae at the order of Dio- andria is due to the constant opposition of the citizens and the .lews, in
cletian and Maximian); on the general state of worship in the third which Sarapis was the religious rallying point of the first. Thus, in
century, Geffcken, Ausgang, 20 ff. P. Oxy. 1242 the two parties came before Trajan, the Greeks bearing
p. 130. For the temple of Romulus, cf. Platner-Ashby, Topographical a bust ofSarapis, theJews some holyobject. During proceedings the bust
Dictionary of Ancient Rome, 450; for the decline in dedications in the West sweated, there were tumults in Rome, many shouts were raised, and all
to Oriental deities, cf. C. H. Moore, Trans. Am. Phil. Ass. xxxviii (19 0 7), fled to the high parts of the hills (W. Weber, Hermes, 1 (19 15), 47 ff.;
10~ ff. passim. (The worships did not disappear: Ammianus Marcellinus, O. Weinreich, Neue Urkunden, 18 f.). In Egypt there were struggles
XVI. 12.25, records that the name of Agenarichus had been changed to between different villages which were said to arise [rom a dislike of
Serapio because his father had been long kept in Gaul as a hostage and another's gods (e.g. [Apul.] Ascl. 37; W. Scott, Hermetica, iii. 234), but
had learnt Graeca quaedam arcana.) the animosity was no doubt local in its essence. Nevertheless, it is
p: 13 1. J. Toutain, Les Gultes pai'ens dans l'empire romain, ii; ibo iii. 4 ff., significant that in a rhetorical exercise, npos chTTTOJ..1CX)(OV (Cramer,
hIS reply to Cumont's criticisms, RHR, lxvi (1912), 125 ff. Cumont, Les Anecdota Parisina, i. 165 f.; A. Bohler, Sophistae anonymi protreptici frag-
Mysteres de Mithra (ed. 3), gives a map of the distribution of Mithraic menta, Diss. Strassburg, 1903), a Roman governor is represented as saying
worship; Turchi, Le religioni misteriosofiche del mondo antico, one including to the Egyptians that they must not be divided about the gods or reckon
also Dea Suria, Cybele, Isis, Dionysus, and the Samothracian deities' that one god is distinguishable from another.
W. Weber in Laqueur-Koch-Weber, Probleme der Spätantike, 81, one fo: There is a possible indication of exclusiveness in a passage of Eunapius,
Dionysus and Artemis Ephesia in Asia Minor (for the spread ofthe latter Life of Maximus (p. 52, ed. Boissonade, 1822), from which it appears to
cf. Ditt. Syll. 86 7); C. Bosch, in Archäologische Anzeiger, 1931,455, a ma~ follow that a Mithraic pater was under oath not to preside over other
of the Demeter cult in Asia Minor; J. J uster, Les Juifs dans I'empire romain, teletai. This may be true of a pater, but the inscriptions prove that
a survey of the dissemination of Judaism; Harnack, Mission, one of that Mithraists as a whole were not exclusive (Cumont, TM, i. 331, n. 4),
of Christianity on the eve of its triumph. and we have noted the presence in Mithraea of statuettes of native
p. 13I. On the part played by troops raised in Syria, cf. G. La Piana, deities (p. 133)'
HTR, xx (1927),286. Attention has been called to electioneering scribbles on a wall at
p. 13 2. F. Behn, Das Mithrasheiligtum zu Dieburg; A. D. Nock, Gnomon, Pompeii, All the Isiacs support Gnaeus Salvius Sabinus for the position of
vi (1930), 30 ff. F. Drexel, Römisch-Germanische Kommission, XIV Bericht aedile, and PopidiliS Natalis, a client of Pansa, and the Isiacs support Guspius
(19 22 , published 1923), 62,suggests that Mithraism was brought by the Pansafor the position ofaedile (GIL, iv. 787, 1011). This represents probably
eighth legion to Germany, on its transference from Moesia in 70 . a congregational rather than a sectarian spirit: the canvassers are mem-
C. H. Moore, Harvard Studies in Glassical Philology, xi (I goo), 58, remarks bers ofa guild. The Roman fear ofthe danger of political combinations
that there is no evidence that imported divinities made any appeal to arising from men who introduced strange cults was not wholly groundless.
native Britons. For his percentage ca1culation, cf. Trans. Am. Phil. Ass. p. 135. For the hierarchie organization of Maximinus, cf. J. Maurice,
xxxviii (1907), 145 ff. Numismatique Gonstantinienne, III. ix ff. The pagan mood ofthe moment is
p. 134· For Rome, cf. Apuleius, Met. xi. 26; Ammianus Marcellinus, illustrated by a priestly insctiption from Acmonia in Phrygia (Cumont,
xvii. 4. 13. Musies royaux du Ginquantenaire. Gatalogue des sculptures et inscriptions
For the Caracallan altar, cf. Cumont, G.R. Ac. Inscr. 1919, 3 13 ff.; antiques, ed. 2, 158 ff., No. 136).
Rel. Or. 79, fig. 5· To avoid misunderstanding I should remark that the For the term mons Vaticanus, cf. Dess. 4131; GIL xiii. 7281. The Mother
acclamation, There is one Zeus Sarapis, made by those who he ar the account of the gods was called Mater deum magna /dea Palatina at Marseilles (GIL,
of the miracle of Sarapis and commonly used as a formula of power to xii. 405) and at Nemausus matri deum mag[nae /daeae Phrygi]ae Palatinae
aid (e.g. on amulets) is not a creedal statement but a er)' of enthusiasm, occurs in a taurobolic inscription of A.D. 255 (AnnCe epigraphiqlle, 1910,
294 Notes: Chapter VIII Notes: Chapter X 295
No. 217). One of the two precincts of Isis at Corinth was called In p. 15 6 . llpoO'KapTepT}O'IS; B. Latyschev, Inser. Ponti, ii, No. 52; E. Schürer,
Canopus (Pausanias, ii. 4. 6), and there is a dedication at Carthage ev SB Berlin, 1897, 202 f. Cf. KapTepia, Joseph, C. Ap. ii. 123, of Greeks
Kavwß~ 6eC;> lleyia-rCj> (CIL, viii. 1003). adopting Jewish customs.
p. 136. There is a puzzling inscription at Rome (CIL, vi. 377; Dess. p. 157. J. Bidez, Vie de Porphyre, 6 ff.
3051), 'aram Ioui Fulgeratoris ex precepto deorum montensium Val. Julian, Orat. iv, p. 130 C; Ep. 106, Bidez-Cumont; Oral. vii, p. 234 c.
Crescentio pater deoru omnium et Aur. Exuperantius sacerdos Siluani Cf. in general J. Bidez, Vie de I' Empereur Julien.
cum fratribus et sororibu dedicauerunt'. Pater deoru omnium looks like
p. 158. For Pegasius, cf. Julian, Ep. 79·
a pretentious tide invented by a small sodality.
For the Carvoran inscription,cf. Buecheler, Carmina latina epigraphica, 24. p. 159. Julian, Ep. 84 b, pp. 116 f., Bidez-Cumont; Augustine, Ep. 9 1
(202), 5; Cumont, Rel. Or. 181 ff.
p. 137. For pantheus and kind red representations, cf. F. Jacobi, llANTE~
Hartel's edition of Cyprian, iii. 302 ff.
SEOI (Diss. Halle, 1930), 121 ff.
IX. THE CONVERSION OF LUCIUS XI. CONVERSION TO PHILOSOPHY
Professor D. S. Robertson has very kindly helped me with difficult p. 168. On the Basilica, cf. J. Carcopino, La Basilique pythagoricienne de la
passages in Apuleius, xi. Porte Majeure.
p. 138. We know the original from the Ass of Lucian. p. 169. The story of Hipparchia can be traced back to Menander fr.
p. 139. For this wreath, cf. the statue of a priestess of Isis at Cyrene 117- 18, Kock: that is nearly contemporary evidence. On parrhesia, free
wearing a large garland across her right shoulder and left arm (E. speech, cf. E. Peterson, R. Seeberg Festschrift, 283 ff. In the Dio passage
Ghislanzoni, Notiziario Archeologico, iv (1927), 166 f., fig. 9). we may note the phrase lTo'A'Ailv O'lTepllo'Aoylav O'weipoVTes, for the parallel
p. 145. Two small bath-houses are in the group ofbuildings attached to to O'lTepllo'A0YOS, Acts xvii. 18, indicates the expectation 0rPaul formed
the Iseum at Eretria (N. Papadakis, Arch. Delt. i (1915), 129). by an educated group with no special information. For the number of
p. 146. For this platform, cf. the prothesis with platform at the back of Cynics, cf. Philo,De plantatione, 151 (i, p. 352, Mangey); for their continued
the same Iseum (ib. 120, 118, fig. 4). existence in the time of Julian, J. Bidez, Vie de l'Empereur Julien, 24 8 ff.
p. 147. For the intimate relationship between Lucius and tbe priest who p. 17 2. The remains of Diogenes of Oenoanda have been edited by
initiated hirn, cf. CIL, xi. 574 (Forum Popili), 'Fullonia L. f. Tertulla J. William in the Teubner Series. leite fr. II, col. ii. 7, p. 5, col. iv. 3,
sacror. Isidis locum dedit C. Telegennio Sperato sacerdoti VIvir. Aug. p. 6; XXIII, col. ii, p. 29. Cf. Virgil, Catalepton,5' 10, uitamque ab omni
tdestinis eius posterisque eorum' (a burial-place to be shared by the uindicabimus cura.
priest, his initiates, and their descendants); BCH, xxiv (1900), 366 f. p. 173: For Polemo, cf. S. Mekler, Academicorum philosophorum index
(Prusa) 01 lTepi J\eooVlAT}V cEpllT}cl'l'A<lOV lepea Ilva-ral Kai AeKCX'TIO'Tal. Herculaneus, 46 ff. It is of importance for the study of monasticism that
p. 150. For myrionyma, f:f. Dess. 4376a &c.; for una quae es onmia, ibo 4362. Epictetus iii. 12 has to warn men against useless forms of self-discipline,
For a revised text of P. Oxy. 1380, cf. Manteuffel, 70 ff. It has been and refers to the uncritical admiration thus excited. An ironie comment
thought that the absence of any mention of Alexandria indicates that the on the pretensions of philosophers is afforded by a bronze vase found at
basis of the first part of the text is an older Egyptian document, but it is Herstal in Belgium (end firstjearly second century A.D.). It shows us
preferable to suppose that Alexandria was namcd in the beginning which austere philosophers engaged in their researches; on the cover we see the
is lost. The papyrus gives for Paphos, I. 86, ayvTjv, ~iav, f\lTlav, and does same philosophers pursuing the homosexual tastes ascribed in Lucian to
not expressly name Aphrodite to correspond to Venus in Apuleius. the sage who had taken her lover from Drose (Cumont, Ann. soc. arch.
pp. 152 ff. Fordedications ex imperio, &c.,cf. A. D. Nock,JHS,xlv (1925), Bruxelles, xiv (1900), 401 ff.; Comment la Belgique fut romanisee, ed. 2,
95 ff.; for vocation, HTR, xxiii (1930), 255 f., and A. Alt, Der Gott der 92, fig. 63)'
Väter: the Dolichenus text is Dess. 4316. Dio teIls his story, Orat. xiii. Cf. H. von Arnim, Dio von Prusa, 234 ff.;
X. THE LAST PHASE O. Hense, C. Musonii Ruft reliquiae, xxiv f.
p. 156. Cf. Tertullian, De spectaculis, ii. 3 (p. 41 Boulanger), 'plures p. 174 f . Euripidesfr. 91o Nauck; Democritusfr. 118 (Diels, Vorsokratiker,
denique inuenias quos magis periculum uoluptatis qua m uitae euocet ab ed. 4, ii. 83); W. W. Jaeger, Aristoleles, 53 ff.; F. Boll, Vita contemplativa
hac secta' . For this chapter as a whole cf. J. Geffcken, Ausgang. (ed.2). Augustus wrote Hortationes ad philosophiam (Suet. Aug. 85)·
Notes: Chapter XI Notes: Chapter XI 297
p. 176. Celsus, pp. 60, 48, Glöckner. The impression made by the f:'
Diogenes of Oenanda, fr. xxxiii, co!. iii. 10 ff., pp. ~ I. argue.s ~gai~st
memory ofEpictetus is shown by a curious inscription at Yazülü (J. R. S. determinism because it would destroy moral responslblhty. ThlS lmphes
Sterrett, Wolfe Expedition to Asia Minor (Papers American Sch~ Class. the common but fallacious belief that the world must be such as I think
Stud. Athens iii (1888)), 31-5 f., No. 438), with a summary ofphilosophic it ought to be.
principles: the only freedom is that which lies in you; Zeus is our father; p. 182. For the metaphor ofinitiation, cf. Dio Prus. xii ..33; Epictet. iii.
Epictetus, an eagle among men, was born of a slave mother. 24, 13 ff. Porphyry, De abstinentia, ii. 49, speaks ofthe phllosopher as the
On the idealization of philosophers, we may note that the gnostic priest of the universal god.
sect of Carpocratians kept images of Christ together with images of p. 18 3. On Persius 111, cf. A. E. Housman, CQ, vii (19 13), 16 ff. Id~as
philosophers, Pythagoras,Plato, Aristotle, and others, 'et reliquam ofthis sort are parodied by Petronius, e.g; chs. 1-5 and 88, on the relatIOn
obseruationem circa eas similiter ut gentes faciunt' (Irenaeus, Aduersus of literary and moral decadence, which agree close1y with Philo, De
haereses, i. 20.4, vol. i, p. 210 Harvey).-For the influence ofphilosophic plantatione, 157 ff. (i, p. 35 2 , Mangey; cf. A. D. Nock, CR, 193 2 , 1~3), and
legend on saint legend, cf. K. Holl, Gesammelte Aufsätze zur Kirchengeschichte, 55 on luxury. It is hard to resist the conjecture that Petromus had
ii. 249 ff.; R. Reitzenstein, SB Heidelberg, 1914, viii.-Ofthe philosopher Seneca in mind. At the end, by his way of dying, he parodied Stoic
as thaumaturge, Apollonius of Tyana, lamblichus, and Proclus are all death-bed scenes.
illustrations: but in Philostratus, Apollonius, vii. 16, we find the sober
Musonius credited with the discovery of a spring on Gyara. XII. THE SPREAD OF CHRISTIANITY AS A
p. 176f. On the place of philosophy in education, and on its general SOCIAL PHENOMENON
standing and character under the Empire, cf. A. D. Nock, Sallustius,
p. 187. Claudius edict, 1. 96, inH. I. Bell, Jews and Christians in EgypJ, 25·
eh. i. For philosophic impostors, cf. Cassius Dio, lii. 36. 4.
p. 178. For the philosopher in the household, cf. Friedlander-Wissowa, p. 188 f. For the book ofthe Damascus sect, cf. R. H. Charles, Apocrypha
Sittengeschichte Roms (ed. 10), iii. 283 ff.; on Greek confidential com- a7zd Pseudepigrapha of the Old Testament, ii. 785 fr.; G. F. Moore, Judatsm,
panions in general, cf. W. Kroll, Neue Jahrbücher, 1928, 312; for the i. 200 ff.; G. Hölscher, Zeitschrift für die neutestamentliche Wissenschaft,
importance of philosophic personality in the unspeculative atmosphere xxviii (19 29),21 ff. W.K. L. Clarke, Theology, xxi (193 0 ), 33 1 ~., h~s
01' Rome, R. Hirzel in V. Gardthausen, Augustus, i. 1297. remarked on the similarity of their organization with that descnbed In
p. 179. For the Memphis library, cf. Wi1cken-Mitteis, Grundzüge und Didascalia Apostolorum.
On the doctrine of the Spirit of Judaism, cf. the summary by Proksch
Chrestomathie, I. ii. 182 ff..,.No. 155.
in G. Kittel, Theol. Wörterb. zum N. T., i. 104·
p. 179 f. ETIlO"TPO<pi}; Epictetus, ii. 20. 22, in the last sense quoted. Cf.
pp. 189 ff. On the meaning of Hellenistes, cf. H. J. Cadbury in jackson-
Porphyry Ad Marcellam 24, TIlCTTeuO"al yap :Aei ÖTI ~6vTJ O"wTTJpla T) TIPOS TOV
eeov ETIlO"TPO<pi]; Sallustius, xiv, p. 28. 2, TfjS TIPOS TO eeiov ETIlO"TPO<pfjS (of Lake, Beginnings, v. 59 ff.
On Paul, cf. Ed. Schwartz, Characterköpft aus der antiken Literatur (ed. 3),
prayers and sacrifices which set us right after sin); lamblichus, De mys-
ii. 97 ff. For the episode in Cyprus, cf. A. D. Nock injackson-Lake, v.
teriis,. i. 13, :AvvaTal o\)v T) E~'AaO"IS T)~äS ETIlO"TpE\jJat TIpOS TT]V Kpeh"Tova
182 ff.; for the impression which he made at Athens, cf. p. 295 above.
~eTovO"Iav. Cf. E. R. Dodds on Proclus, Elements of Theology, 15. In the
Septuagint e. is used of turning to God, in a general as weIl as in a specific p. 19 2. The Christians began by using rooms in private houses; then
sense (cf. Preuschen-Bauer, Griechisch-deutsches Wörterbuch zu den Schriften they built churches like those described in Didascalia, that of St. Greg~ry
des Neuen Testaments, 469; A. H. Dirksen, The New Testament Concept of Thaumaturges at Neocaesarea in Pontus, and that at Doura (early thlrd
Metanoia, Diss. Cath. Univ. Washington (1932),151); in Acts xv. 3, TT]V century). (For other evidence, cf. H. Leclercq in Cabrol-Leclercq, Dic-
ETIlO"TPOepT]V TWV E6vwv. Hence conuerti, conuersio in and after Tertullian. tionnaire d'arcMologie chretienne et de liturgie, iv. 2292 ff.) These churches
On metanoia, cf. W. W.jaeger, GöUingische gelehrte Anzeigen, 1913,590 f.; were no doubt for the most part not recognizable as such from the
K. Latte, ARW, xx (1921),281, n. I; j. S. Boughton, The Idea of Progress outside, and certainly had none of the outward marks of atempie as
in Philo Judaeus (Diss. Columbia, 1932: jewish Publication Society of commonly known; the church at Doura is based on the plan of the
America: Philadelphia), 154 ff. In Cebes Metanoia acts once to save synagogue.
a man: we have not the recurrent repentance of Judaism. p. 193. We have a testimony to the impression ma,de by m~rty~d?m in
p. 181. Epicurus, fr. 523, p. 318, Usener. It is significant that Tertullian, De spectaculis, i. 5, p. 40, Boulanger, sunt qUl eXlstlmant
TI
298 Notes: Chapter XII Notes:Chapter XII 299
Christianos, expeditum morti genus, ad hanc obstinationem abdicatione p. 201. This des ire for an eternity of memory appears conspicuously in
uoluptatium erudiri, quo facilius uitam contemnant amputatis quasi many foundations, as for instance a woman's bequest at Gythion, A.D
retinaculis eius nec desiderent, quam iam superuacuam sibi fecerunt, 161-9, for an annual benefaction 'that my liberality to the gymnasium
ut hoc consilio potius ct humano prospectu, non diuino praf"scripto and the city may abide forever .... For I shall seem to be immortal'
definiturn existimetur' . (B. Laum, Stiftungen in der griechischen und römischen Antike, ii. 11 ff.; No. 9,
On theJewish idea ofmartyrdom, cf. G. F. Moore, Judaism, ii. 105 ff.: 11. 1I, 16, 56). Tertullian remarks (De testimonio animae, 4) 'nam omnibus
quotations in Strack-Billerbeck, Komm. zum Neuen Testament, i. 220 ff. fere ingenita est famae post mortem cupido'.
Zealots courted death and came by it in order to protest against the The same theatrical mood is conspicuous in the trage dies of Seneca,
conduct of Herod the Great. and in the popular 'Martyr Acts' at Alexandria recording the various
proceedings in which men maintained the city's rights (e.g. Wilcken,
pp. 194 ff. This evidence for the philosophie use of marrys was put together
Grundz. u. Chrest., I. ii. 34 ff., No. 20). I would raise the quest ion whether
by J. Geffcken, Hermes , xlv (19 I 0), 48 I ff.; for the fascination of voluntary
the increasing popularity of frontality in art under the Empire is to be
death, cf. Fr. Dornseiff, ARW, nii (1923/4), 133 ff.; for the development
of Christian terminology, H. Delehaye, Sanctus, 74 ff., and literature connectcd with this egocentricity.
collected by A. Wilhelm, SB Berlin, 1932,845 ff. p. 202. Celsus, i. 2, p. I; iii. 55, p. 19, Glöckner.
To the philosophie instances add Seneca, De beneficiis, vii. 8. 2, 'Deme- p. 203. The contrast of free Christian prayer with stcreotyped Roman
trium rettuli, quem mihi uidetur rerum natura nostris tulisse temporibus prayer is stated by Tertullian, Apol. 30; for worship directed to Jesus,
ut ostenderet nec illum a nobis corrumpi nec nos ab illo corrigi posse'; cf. E. C. Ratcliff, J. T.S. xxx (1929), 30 ff.
Philo, Quod omnis probus liber est, 92 (ii, p. 459 M). XpTJ ••. lJapTVpcxs ßiovS
TOOV KaTe: IJEpOS cXvApOOV aycx600v 'ITcxpcxycxyeiv, 01 acxcpEO'TaTcxt 'ITfO'Tets p. 204. Hefele-Leclerq, Histoire des conciles, I. ii. 715 (decree of synod
ei\ev6epfcxs elat in 341); cf. C. H, Kraeling, Journal of Biblical Literature, li (193 2 ),
. Porphyry, Against the Christians, fr. 63 (ed. Harnack, AM. Berlin, 1916, 157; for the iconostasis, K. Holl, ARW, ix (1906), 3 65 ff. (Ces. Aufs.
1. 84 f.), contrasts the attitude of Apo11onius favourably with that of ii. 225 ff.).
Christ. The fate of Socrates and Pythagoras figures among the misdeeds I quote Celsus from O. Glöekner's text (Lietzmann, Kleine Texte,
ofpaganism also in Constantine, Oratio ad Sanctos, 9, p. 163, Heikel (in No. 151), i. 9, p. 2; iii. 17, p. 16; iii. So, p. i8; iv. 10, p. 22; vi. 22,
the first volume of the Berlin Eusebius); that of Socrates in Marryrium pp. 44 ff.
Pionii, 17; Tertullian, Ad nationes, i. 10. Origen's reply apropos of Mithras must be quoted, vi. 22 (ii, p. 93),
Koetschau, 'Why did he set forth Mithraic mysteries rather than any
p. 197. For the exciting of sympathy, cf. Tacitus, Annals, xiv. 42 ff.;
other mysteries with their story? They do not appear to be specially
Cicero, Ep. ad fam. vii. I. 3 (in 55 B.C. Pompey showed elephant-baiting at
valued among the Greeks in eomparison with those of Eleusis or those
the last day ofhis games, 'extremus elephantorum dies fuit, in quo admi-
transmitted to people who on Aegina are initiated in the rites of Hecate.
ratio magna uolgiatqueturbae,delectatio nulla exstitit; quinetiam miseri-
Why rather, if he wanted a barbarian rite, did he not take the Egyptian
cordia quaedam consecuta est atque opinio eius modi esse quandam illi
mysteries, a source of pride to many, or the Cappadoeian rites of Artemis in
beluae cum genere humano societatem'); Cassius Dio, xliii. 19. 2-4 (sight
Comana, or 'those of the Thracians, or those of the Romans themselves
of Arsinoe in chains in Caesar's triumph in 46 B. c. moves the people to pity).
who initiate the noblest descendants of the senate?'
p. 198. Clemens Alexandrinus, Stromata, iv. 4, § 17. I (ii, p. 256 Stählin).
The whole of his treatment of martyrdom is instructive: he compares p. 206. iii. 59, p. 20; vi. 11, p. 4 2 .
these suicides with the Gymnosophists and produces numerous pagan PP. 20 7 ff. FortheDeciantexts,ef.J.R.Knipfing,HTR,xvi (19 23),345 ff.;
analogies for the heroism of true martyrs, men and women alike. for the view of Christianity as apostasy, the pagan (possibly Porphyry;
On the fascination of voluntary death, cf. Tertullian, Apol. So; Ad Wilamowitz, Zeit. neut. Wiss. i (1900), 101 ff.) summarized by Euseb.
nationes, i. 18. Praep. euang. i. 2. 2-4; for the petition to Maximinus, E. Diehl, Inscriptiones
p. 199. For this topic in the novel, cf. K. Kerenyi, Die grieclzisch-oriental- latinae christianae veteres, I; for the poliey of Decius, A. D. Nock, HTR,
ische Romanliteratur, 95 ff.; A. D. Nock, Gnomon, iv (1928), 485 ff. It xxiii (1930), 251 ff.; for the name of Jesus in magie, K. Preisendanz,
involves an element of vicarious sadism. Papyri graecae magicae, iv. 3019 f. (i, p. 170); for charges against Christians,
p.200. Julian, p. 301 B; Ep. 89, p. 141. 14, Bidez-Cumont. J. P. Waltzing, Le crime rituel.
T
I

3°0 Notes: Chapter XIII Notes: Chapter XIII 3°1


p.225' Varro, Frag. i. 55, p. 163,59, p. 164, 10 b, p. 146,3 0 , p. 155 ed.
XIII. THE TEACHINGS OF CHRISTIANITY AS Agahd (Fleckeisens Jahrbücher, Supp. XXIV).
VIEWED BY A PAGAN
pp. 227 ff. On thesignificance of ruler-wor~h~p, cf. A. D. Nock, in C~mbridge
p. 2 I 3. This motive of curiosity is invoked by Augustine, Sermo c>.:xxii. In Ancient History, X. On thc Japanese ChnstIans and the Byzantme prc-
speaking of the Eucharist he says to catechumens: 'Disputo, non dissero. ccdent, cf. L. Brehier-P. Batiffol, Les Survivances du Cldte imperial romaill.
Ecce Pascha est, da nomen ad baptismum. si non te excitat festiuitas,
p. 231. For Alexander, cf. Walz. Rlzetores Graeci, ix. 33.6 f.; for Aristides,
ducat ipsa curiositas; ut scias quid dictum sit, Qui manducat carnem
cf. J. Amann, Zeusrede des Ailios Aristides; for thc Clanan orade, p. I I I
meam, et bibit sanguinem meum, in me manet, et ego in illo.'
above.
p. 2 13 f. On catechetical discipline and on lists of sins to be renounced,
p. 232. For God as shaper of world out of exi~tent ~atter, cf. Justin, i.
cf. H. Ledercq, Dict. arc1z. ehret. lit. ii. 2530 ff. For Egyptian Church Order,
r:9' Athenagoras, 15 f. Quotations from Ongen In H. Usener, Das
(eh. 34), cf. R. H. Connolly in Texts and Studies, ed~ J. Armitage Robin-
son, viii. 4, 183.
~;ihnachtsfest (ed. 2), 13. [But I now doubt their relevance to this point.]
p. 232 f. On bipaternity, cf. H. Usener, Kleine Schriften, iv. 259 ff.; Br.
p.216f. Musonius, pp. 63 ff. Hense; Dio, vii. 133 ff.; Ovid, Amores, ii. 14;
Martial, ix. 41. Meissner, Babylonien und Assyrien, i. 46.
For temple requirements, cf. EGC, 69 ff. P.233. Thus in Virgil, Aen. ii. 604 ff. Vcnus lifts from the eyes of Aencas
For the Philadelphia text, cf. Ditt. Syll. 985; O. Wein reich, SB Heidel- all that dims mortal sight and shows hirn thc divinities who are active in
berg, 1919, xvi. the fall of Troy, Neptune, for instance, overthrowing its walls with his
-trident: that was, so to speak, the spiritual interpretation. Ovid, Meta-
On conscience, cf. Fr. Zucker, Syneidesis-Conscientia; on Greek ideas of
morphoses xv. 750 ff., says of Julius, 'neque enim de Caesaris actis ullurn
sin, K. Latte, ARW, xx (1921), 254 ff.
maius opus quam quod pater exstitit huius'. Now he adopted Octavian,
p. 21 9. The real spirit of this wo.rld appears in the tale of the death of and did not beget hirn. Yet Ovid cannot weIl be showing his wit on this
Septimus Severus (SHA, Seu. 23), 'ultima uerba eius dicuntur haec fuisse: theme: Augustus was Diuifilius. This concept of two planes of reality is
"turbatam rem publicam ubique accepi, pacatam etiam Britannis important for Egyptian and other magie; cf. Bell-Nock-Thompson,
relinquo, senex ac pedibus aeger firmum imperium Antoninis meis Magical Textsfrom a bilingual papyrus in the British N/useum (Proe. Brit. Acad.
relinquens, si boni erunt, inbecillum si mali". iussit deindc signum xvii, 1932), 25 ff.
tribuno dari "laboremus" , quia Pertinax, quando in imperium adscitus
est, signum dederat "militemus".' We find this again in the thinking of Christians, who believed them-
selves to have the sole and complete interpretation of phenomena by
Dess. 4316 fratres carissimos et collegas ILOn(estissimos); brethren again in
revelation and read this revelation into all that they saw. Thus in thc
the oath of a mystery confraternity (probably Mithraic), preserved in a
Acts of Philip and among the Messalianists reality is set forth in terms
papyrus and interpreted by Cumont, HTR, xxvi (1933).
of myth, and mental processes are represented as enacted in external
p. 220. For adesire to live up to a standard, cf. Juvenal, xiii. 19 ff., 120 f., happenings (E. Peterson, Oriens Christianus, 1932, 172 ff.). It is so in
where the quest ion is that of keeping one's temper and serenity. Manichaeism, with its doctrine of the suffering Jesus who haugs on every
p.221. TheJews regarded pagan gods as (I) angels set by God over the tree. Joannes Damascenus, De haeresibus, 49 (Migne, xciv, 707), describes
seventy peoples ofthe world, (2) devils, (3) (the HellenisticJews) deified a sect of Pepuziani who glorified Pepuza, which lay between Galatia and
dead men, (4) nothing; (Strack-Billerbeck, Kommentar z. N. T. iii. 48 ff.). Cappadocia, and believed it to be Jerusalem. In the central movement,
On daimon, daimonion, cf. R. Heinze, Xenokrates, 78 ff.; J. Geffcken, Zwei the dramatization of the liturgy tended in this direction: compare thc
griechischen Apologeten, 219 ff.; J. Tambornino, De antiquorum daemonismo, antiphons for the eve ofthe Epiphany in Usener, Kleine Schriften, iv. 431.
69 ff.; M. Pohlenz, Vom Zorne Gottes, 129 ff.; Andres,PW, Supp. iii. 26 7 ff.; p. 235. Celsus, V. 6, p. 33 Glöckner.
W. Bousset, ARW, xviii (1915), 134 ff.; M. P. Nilsson, ibo xxii (19 23/4), Cf. Cumont, ARW, ix (1906), 323 ff.; M. Zepf, ibo xxv (19 2 7),
3 63 ff.; Cumont, Rel. Or. 280, 295 f.; A. Miura-Stange, Celsus und 225 ff.
Origenes (Beih. Z. Zeit. neut. Wiss. iv), 93 ff.; Wilamowitz, Glaube, i. 36 2 ff.;
p. 236. 'general ideas', i.e. the ideas sanctioned by the consent of
F. J. Dölger, Antike und Christentum, iii (1932), 153 ff.; Nock, HTR, xxiii
humanity. Cf. A. D. Nock, Sallustius, xli; F. H. Sandbach, CQ, xxiv
(1930), 261 f. The subject is not exhausted.
(1930),44 ff. This passage of Gregory should bc a warning against the
302 Notes: Chapter XIII
assumption that an Anthropos myth, such as we find in the Poimandres,
was widespread. INDEX
Celsus v. 2, p. 33, Glöckner, expresses hirnself strongly against the
Abonutichus 93 ff. 167; Magian 43; Brahman 47; of
possibiIity of the descent of a god or a son of god; against the idea that Abstinence 142. See Fast. Egyptian priest 87; trend to 174,
deified kings were thought to be avatars of gods, cf. A. D. Nock, JHS, Acclamations 292 f.; after miracle, for 252 f., 295.
xlviii (1928), 30 ff. Glycon (p. 94 above) is not exactly an exeeption; Isis 140; for Sarapis 84, 89; for Asclepius introduced at Athens 18; at
there was commonly a somewhat vague relation between a deity and the Zeus Panamaros 90; in Christian Rome 68; manifested as Glycon
texts 89; in mystery, for Osiris 39; 93 f.; ( = Imouthes) seen by Thes-
animal or bird linked with hirn and sometimes thought to be a manifesta- for Sarapis 134. salus 109.
tion ofhim. Achilles Tatius 199 f. Asoka 45 ff.
Acts 254. Associations, religious 20 f., 276; of
p. 241. Didymus, Dc Dcmostheni commenta, eol. xi. 7; F. W. Hall, Gom- Adhesion 7. aliens at Athens 20; for Dionysus
panion to Classical Texts, 39. Adonis 21, 41,236,281. 26, 31, 73; in Egypt 36; Mithraic
Aegina 299. 44, 300; Judaizing 63 f.; on Delos
P·243· F0r Zarathustra, cf. Chr. Bartholomae, Die Catha's des Awesta, ix, Aelian 91, 127 f. for Sarapis 52 f.; at Rome for Cy-
18, p. 64; for the doctrine of periods, Theopompus apo Plut. De Iside et Agathodaimon 40. bele 68; for Juppiter Dolichenus 66,
Osiride, 47, p. 370 B. Agdistis 216. 219; for Isis 149; at Pompeii for Isis
Agrarian rites 22, 133, 226 f. 293; for Bellona 82; relation to
p. 24S· For these prophecies, cf. W. W. Tarn, JRS, xxii (1932), 13S ff.; Alexander, son of Ammon 232. temples 52, 149; oath of 300.
R. Reitzenstein-H. H. Schaeder, Studien zum antiken Synkretismus, 38 ff. Alexander legend, Judaizing insertion Astrology 100 ff., 229, 259, 262 f.,
For Mithraism cf. Cumont, RHR, ciii (1931), 29 ff. in 79. 289; measures against 74.
Alexander of Abonutichus 93 ff., 128. Atargatis, see Dea Suria.
p. 246 . For the epitaph non fui, fui, non sum, non desidero, cf. Cumont, Alexandria 38, 85, 126 f., 169, 293. Athena, miracle at Lindos 20.
Musee Beige, xxxii (1928), 73 ff. Allegory 159,264. Athens, introduces cult ofBendis 17 f.,
Ambrose 264. of Pan 18, of Asclepius 18; religious
p. 247· Usener, Epicurea, p. 6S. 12. Anahita (= Anaitis) 35, 42; punishes policy in colonies 19; foreign groups
sin 91. at 20; private cults ofZeus Sabazios
p. 2S0. Justin, Apol. i. 4 6 . In Eusebius, Triakontaeterikos, 4. 2, p. 202, and Cotytto 20, of Adonis 2 I; Men
Anatolian cults 41, 132.
Heikel, all wisdom is due to this Logos. Angels 223, 235; gods as 111, 231 f. in 59; Orphism in 26; exegetai of
p. 2SI. Cf. F. M. Cornford, The Laws of Motion in Ancient Thought, 29 ff. Anger of Sarapis 50; of Isis 80; of Apollo at 21 ; sends priest of Sarapis
Cybele 81. to Delos 54.
For the resulting method of argument, cf. Sallustius, eh. 7, 13, 20. Anthropomorphism, rise of23; limita- Attis 37, 41, 101, 236; mysteries of
The idea of symmetry was raised to the principle of isonomia; Cicero, tions 222, 231 ; alleged aga ins t 279; at Rome 69.
aseribing it to Epicurus, defines 'eam esse naturam ut omnia omnibus Christianity 263. Augustine 159, 184, 259 ff.; contrast
Antioch, proselytes at 62; Christianity withJulian 158.
pari bus paria respondeant' (De natura deorum, i. So; J. B. Mayor's note at 190,204. Augustus 124, 232, 240, 257 f., 295.
shows its popularity). Cf. a Philonic mode of argument diseussed by Antiquity claimed by cults 53,73,281.
E. R. Goodenough, rale Classieal Studies, iii (193 2), 122, ISO. Apamea, J udaizers at 64. Babylonia 34 f., 100.
Aphrodita Syria', see Dea Suria. Bacchanalia 71 ff.
Aphrodite, the Semitic 20. Baptism 220, 260 f.
XIV. THREE TYPES OF CONVERSION Apollo, rise Of21 ff.; known to Darius Bath before initiation 14.5.
JUSTIN, ARNOBIUS, AUGUSTINE 19; worshipped by Orpheus 27; Bellona 75,82.
sons Of232; epiphanies 90; oracle at Bendis, 17 f., 276.
p. 260. Symmachus, Relatio pro ara Pacis. Birthdays, 232.
Charos 111 f., 231.
Thc letter ofMaximus in Augustine, Ep. 16. Apollonius of Tyana 91, 93, 129, Blood, efficacy of 70.
195 f., 298 . Body and soul 26, 247 ff.
Cf. Cumont, Rel. Or. 300, n. 22. There were, of course, waverers: cf. Apuleius 14 f., 38 f., 114 f., 138 ff., Brethren, 63, 219, 300.
Constantine, Oratio ad Sanetos, II, p. 16S, Heikel. 2 83. Buddhism 9, 46 f., 280; contrast with
Arehigallus 69 f. Orphism 31.
p. 27°· Wilamowitz, Creek Historieal Writing and Apollo, 26. Aretalogos (teller of miracles) of Sarapis
54,89· Cappadocia 42 f.
Aristides the rhetorician 83 f., 231. Caracalla 129, 134.
Aristophanes 27. Cassius Dio 129 f.
Arnobius 226, 257 ff. Castration 37.
Art, religious 74, 92 ff., 102, 124,288. Cebes 180 f.
Asceticism, Orphic 26; Pythagorean Celsus 83,204 ff., 224, 235.
T
I

Index .Index 3°5


Cemetery, Bacchic 25. Endurance 156. Golden Age 244 f.
Cybele 37, 4 1 , 59, 81 f., 126 f., 132 f., Graee 249.
Chaldaic Orades 102, I I I, I 17, 158. 159 f., 276, 293 f.; at Rome 68 f. Epictetus 170, 176 ff., 181, 18 3, 194 f.,
Greeee, ineoming oflndo-Germans 6.
Chaplains, philosophie 178. Cydes, theory of 244 fr. 230, 248, 29 6 . Greek ChureL 234.
Christian meeting-places 202, 297. Cynics 168 ff. Epieureanism 171 fr. Greek civie religion 17 f.; national
Christiani ty, demands of 2 13; pro mise Cyprian of Antioeh I 10. Epicurus 247, 25 8 . religion 18; attitude towards foreign
of 13; and the mysteries 57, 205 f.; Cypriots at Athens 20. Epimenides 26. gods 18 ff., 34; religious temper 3 1•
and philosophy 179, 186; and needs Epiphanies 90. See Vision. .' Gregory ofNyssa 23 6 .
of time 2 IO f.; and popular feeling Daimones 22 I ff. Epithets: Pythian, Delian 21; PhlStYIS
Groups, philosophie 166.
192, 20 7 ff., 255. Damascus, eovenanters of 188. 59 f.; of Cybele 293 f.
Church 241 f. Dca Suria (= the Syrian goddess Epona 280. Hadrian 126.
Cicero 184. Atargatis, Aphrodita Syria, Venu~ Eternity 231,235; ofmemory 299· Heeate, propaganda for 22, 92; eon-
Civic religious duties I I, 22] f. Caelesta), at Beroea 59; at Phistyon Eueharist 204, 234. tact with Mithraism 44; gives orades
Claros I 1 I f. 59; at Thuria &e. 60; at Puteol 71; Eunus 66. I I I ' mysteries 117; initiation 299;
Claudius 69. at Rome 75; at Carvoran 136; in Euripides 25, 27, 30 . rite' 291; identified with Isis 15I.
Clementine Homilies 108. Fayoum 282; inspires prophecies of Eusebeia 10. Helios Saraptenos 66.
Coinage expresses religious ideas 85, Eunus 66; begging priests of 82' Exdusiveness, Jewish 61; supposed,
Hellenization of East 36 .
125 ff., 272. Nero's interest in 106. ' in Mithraism 293·
exegetai of Apollo 2 I • Hermes 23.
Commagene 42. Death, prevention of 102; and initia- Hermetic writings 3 f., 12, 79, 88,
Commands of gods 72, 148, 152 fr.; tion 143; fascination of 198. Exorcism 104. 102 f., 117,224,235,237,25 1,279.
of Helios Saraptenos 66; of Isis Deification of Antinous 126; of son of
139 f., 142 ff.; of Sarapis 49 ff., 86; Maxentius 130; of Plato 175; of Faith 181, 185,2°5,213. Heran 97·
Fanaties ofBellona 82. Hesiod 22.
of Zeus 275; of mountain-gods dead men 221; of kings 237; from
Fast before vision 108; before initia- Hierapolis 37·
294· gratitude 257 f.
Commission for foreign worships at tion 144. Hierarehy 135·
Delos, Syrian deities on 49; Sarapis History and eult 234 f.
Rome 68,7 1, 74, 132. and Isis on 51 ff., 58; Italians on 67. Fate 100 ff., 247, 283, 288, 29 6 f.;
it is superior to 139· Holy pi aces 135, 293 f.
Common ehest, förbidden in edict on Delphi 19,22,25, 112, 173,279. Honesty and mirade 96 ff.
Bacehanalia 73. Demeter 22 f. Fear of curse 76, 286; of Sabbath 78 ;
Honour from deity 109, 144·
Communion, Mithraic 279. Diogenes of Oenoanda 172. of bewitchment 105.
Flavian period 125 f. Horaee I I.
Communities, Orphic 30; Hermetic Dion of Prusa 43, 169, 173 f. Humanity, eseape from 103, .237·
117· Dionysus 23, 27, 193 f., 276 f.; at Foreign groups 6, 65, 280; merehants
48 ; at Athens 20~ 276; Greeks at Hymns, Homeric 23 f.;. Orphle 30 f.;
Composite divine types 137. Rome 71 fr.; miracles 97; visions for Sarapis 38; for ISIS 80, 15 2 ; for
Conflict, against Dionysus 25; at 206; initiations 114 f.; eommissions Memphis 33; I tahans on Delos 67; Heeate and Priapus 92; means of
Delos 51 ff., 59; at Rome 134; in priest 154; and after-life 102. Jews in Asia Minor 62; Syrians at
Rome 66; Tyrians at Puteoli 66; propaganda 9 2 .
Egypt 293. Divinity,attempt to secure 103. . Hypsistarii 63 f.
Conquest, effeets of 5 f. Dogma,Julianie 159; philosophie 181. from Vienne at Rome 283 f.; from
Alexandria 284; need authoriza- Hypsistos (Highest God) 63·
Conscience 2 I 7 f. Domitian 126.
Contemplation 174 f. Doura-Europos 34. tion for temple 20, 53· lao (Jehovah) 62 f., 11 I.
Continuity of private rites 29 f. Dramatic instinet 9. Fortune 140 f. . ' . . Identification of.gods 19, 136 f., 150 f.,
Conversion 7, 134; preparation for Dream, simultaneous 139; interpre- Freedmen in DlOnyslae assoemtlOn
73; and Oriental eults 13 1 f. 280.
266; to Hermetism 118; to philo- ters 54, 89. See Commands, Visions. Idolatry 22 I.
sophy 173, 179; from Christianity Dress ofinitiate 145 f., 148. Freedom I 74. Image of Sarapis 50; oflsis 146 .
157; in Aets 154; of Dion of'Prusa Immorality alleged against Baeeha-
173 f. East, souree of wisdom 239, 280. Generalizations, love of 233· nalia 72; aga!n~t Isis eult 74, 1.53;
Cornutus 129, 182 f. Economic and religious change 130. Gifts before initiation 145· against Chnstlans 209; agamst
Cosmogony 88,164 f., 232. Ecstasy, Dionysiae 24,72. Glyeon94· philosophers 295·
Cotytto 20. Edueation 176 f. Gnosis I 19, 290. ! Immortal farne, desire of 201, 299·
Credulity 90, 241. Egypt, religion in 5, 97, 205, 206; Gnostics 92, 104, 119,253, 296 . Immortality. Popular idea~ 28, 1.03,
Creeds 214. Greeks in 19,36 f.; interest in 106. God the Father 229 ff. 246 ; interest 108, 25~; ~n Judalsm
Creedlike statement of Apollo's Egyptians at Athens 20; at Eretria 48; God, son Of232 ff. 6 I; ensured by Orphle hfe 26 f.; by
power 22; of birth of Dionysus 25; on Delos 51, 54; assistant in ritual Gods, all worshipped together, ~5,
11 I ' astral 101; born 232; eommg religious rites 13, 23, 39, 77, .102 f.;
about Dea Suria 136. at Priene 55. by magie JI8; by help of IsIS 139;
Criobolium 70. Elagabal 75 f., 129. on ~arth 236 f.; dying. 234; masters by aeeeptanee of revelation 4·
Cult-images 23. Eiagabalus 129. of fate 101 f.; and umverse 165; m
Eastern belief 154; Christian views Imouthes 86 ff.
Cumae 25. Eleusis 22 f., 41, 116,275 f. Impersonal view ofdeity 222, 23 1,260.
Cures by Asdepius 54; by Sarapis Emesa 128 f. of 221 ff.; Jewish views of 300 ;
philosophie views of 223 f., 2~1; Inearnation 236 f.
84 ff.; by Imouthes 86 f.; Christian Emotions underlying religion 9, 162; India, eontaets with West, 46 f.; men-
heightened in erisis 18, 44, 226; definition 91; Greeks and forelgn
89· tion in Isis text 15 1.
Curse, fear of 76, 286. appeal to, by philosophy 181. 19. See Identification.
306
Indian suieide at Athens 201.
Inferiority feeling 212.
Index
Julian 70, 157 ff., 185,224.
Juppiter Duliehenus 66, 75, 155,219.
T Miracles (cont.).
Index
Otherness, feeling of, in Orphism 31;
Dionysiae 73; Christian 89; of in Hermetism I 17 f.; in Judaism
Initiate's relation to priest 147, 294. Justin Martyr 213 ff., 221, 228, 238 f., Antony 265; reeording in temples 61 f.; in Isis worship 80; in Magi 44;
Initiations 12, 40; Dionysiae 26, 31, 250, 255 ff. 90 f., 287; eonfute seeptieism 91; in Mithraism 77.
72 ff.; Graeeo-Egyptian 39, 56 f., prove deity 91; produee or fail to Ovid 85, 124,216.
278 ; Mithraie 43; of Cybele and Katochoi 80, 153. produee adhesion 53, 254, 287 f.;
Attis 69, 279, 284; enjoined by Isis Kerygma 188. artificial97. Cf. Aretalogos. Pagani 227.
142; preeeded by abstinenee 142; Kindness of Roman mob 298. Mithraism, origins 41 ff., 60 f., 269; Paganism and Christianity 160 ff.,
seereey of 214, 290; free from death Kingdom of God 242 ff.
103; eost of 56 f., 143, 148 f., 282;
sueeessive 114 f.; philosophy eom-
I,
Knowledge and piety 9 f.
at Rome 75, 77, 128, 130; in West
132 f.; eommunion 214, 279; tauro-
249,259 ff.
Palmyra 36.
bolium 71, 284; Greek ideas in 245 f.; Pan 18.
pared with 182, 185. Lapsed Christians 156. myth 235 f.; plaees of worship 75, Pantheus 137.
Inquisitiveness 105 ff., 145, 167, 289, Law, universal 101. 285; eonfraternity 300; supposed Past, view of 113 f.
3°0. Leading, divine 136, 265. See Voea- exclusiveness 293; mention in Statius Pastophorus 147, 149.
Insignia, priestly 71, 127, 136, 286. tion. 126; rivalry with Sarapis 134; Greek Paul 190 ff., 295.
Inspired individual I 12. Leetures 176 ff. view Of299; eomparison with Chris- Paulina 153.
Intelleet, loss of faith in 120. Legends, Apolline 21 f.; philosophie tianity 14, 206, 268. Penanee 80, 159, 287.
Intermediary deities beings 222 ff., 17 6. Monotheism, trend to 223. Peregrinus 201, 220.
235· Lindos 20, 90. Morality ofChristianity and paganism Perseeutions 130, 192, 196 f., 208 f.
Intoleranee 11,21, 25, 165. Literature, aneient 272; Roman 123; 206,215 ff., 284. Persians and alien religions 19 f., 35;
Isiacs at Pompeii 293. on religion 105 f.; religious Orphie Mother-goddess, Lydian 9 I. in Asia Minor 42, 60 f., 279.
Isis in Egypt 38 ff.; at Athens 20; at 26 ff., 251; Dionysiae 31; Egyptian Municipal interest in Oriental eults Persius 182 f.
Eretria 48; at Samos 282; at Priene 38; Jewish 78 ff.; miracles ofSarapis 13 2 • Pessimism 246.
55; in Boeotia 58; at Cenchreae 84; dissemination thereof 89; on Mysteries of Eleusis 22 f., 116; of Pessinus 41, 68.
138; at Tithorea 153; at Rome 74 f., Imouthes 86 ff.; Christi an miracles Dionysus 72; of Osids and Isis 38 ff., Philadelphia 216 f.
124 ff., 147; at Beneventum 126; 89; prophetie 239, 251; personal 142 ff.; ofMithras 44, 299; ofSyrian Philo 79, 103, 116, 240.
in Western provinees 131; name of statement 115. goddess 6o; of Heeate 11 7; at Philosophers as tutors and advisers
ship 127; in Statius 106; in Apuleius Liturgy, Egyptian 38 ff.; language Abonutiehus 96; private 116 f., 178; as saints 175 f.
14, 138 ff.; in Oxyrhynehus text Greek, for Cybele and Attis 41; of 291; Neoplatonie 158; multipliea- Philosophy, esoterie and exoterie 167;
150 ff.; identified with Fortune 141; mysteries 78; Isiae book 144. tion of 279; no explieit theology in literature 179; in edueation 176 f.;
with other deities 150 ff.; 'of many Love for the brethren 219 f. 285 f.; souree of enlightenment values of 173; postulates 251 f.; a
names' 144, 150; superior to Fate Lueian 93 ff., 1°7, 220, 256 f. I 13 ff.; promise of 12; and Eueharist unity 173; relation to religion 120 f.,
102, 139; saviour 56 ff.; indieates Luxury 218. 165; neeessary for piety 120, 186;
day for initiation 143, and those 2°4·
Myth 11, 159,233, 301. an initiation 182, 185; appeal to
who may enter temple 153; ritual of Ma67· emotions 181; disappointment by
80; begging priests of 82, 282; Mag 42 f., 107. N aassenes I 15 f. 107 f., 255 ff.
miracles of 85 f., 89, 138 ff.; dura- Magie 43, 74, 97, I 10, 206, 229. Nanaia 34. Philostratus 129.
tion of worship 160; Praises of 40, Magical papyri 62 f., 117 f., 209. Neoplatonism 158, 181. Phrygia 64.
102,279· Magnesia on the Maeander 55. ~eopythagoreanism 116, 168. Phylarehus 90.
Istrus 90. Maionmas festival at Ostia 67. Nerol06. Pindar 22,27, 155·
Iulia Domna 128. Mandulis 109 f., 289 f. Novel, Greek 198 ff. Pirates 44.
Maniehaeism 92, 252 f., 259, 263. Plato 27, 166, 175, 222 f., 232, 256.
Jerusalem; ehureh at 187 ff. Manumission, religious 58 f., 63, 156. Obedienee 139, 144, 170. Ploiaphesia (opening of sailing) 57,
Jesus, name in magie 209; the Gospel Mareus Aurelius 128. Oracles at Abonutiehus 93 ff.; at 14 1 •
pieture and the mission 210; death Martyrdom 193 ff., 298. Dodona 276; and general issues Poimandres 3, 9·
234; teaehing 242. Maximus of Madaura 260 .. 111, 290; international standing Politieal influenees in spread of cults
Jonah 61. Memphis 33, 38. 19; decline 112, 223; sought for 55 (Ptolemaie), 134 (Rome).
Josephus 78 f., 153. Men 59, 9 1. Lysander 232; due to daimones 223. Poor attitude of 212,242, 246.
Judaism, promise of 13; and Seleucids Mendieant priests 82 f., 205, 281; See Delphi. Porphyry 111, 157, 184 f., 224.
35; in world at large 61 ff., 187; philosophers 169. Organization 135,241 f. Porta Maggiore basiliea 168.
proselytizers banished from Rome Mereenaries 23, 59. Oriental religions in Roman paganism Possession 1°4,289,
74; later expulsion 74; how spread Merehants 20, 23, 48. 267f. Prayer 101.
77 ff.; exorcisms 10-4; organization Messianie ideas 228. Origen 204, 299. Priapus 92.
241 f.; martyrs 193; privileges 227f.; Methods of Christian mission 19 I ff. Orpheus 26 f., 113. Priene 55.
eoneept ofGod 230; view ofpagan Milan 264. Orphism 12, 26 ff., 277. Priests, Greek and Eastern 34, 164;
gods 300; Plutareh on 105. Miracles of Athena on Lindos 20; of Osiris 38 ff., 56, 147. publie and private 30, 71; Roman
Judaizing groups 63 f. Apollo 22; of Sarapis and Isis 51 f., Ostanes 223. I I, 127;hcreditary 154;Orphie28;of
Judgement 242. 83 ff., 138 ff.; at Epidaurus 54; Ostia 67, 70. Asclepius at Epidaurus 54; Atargatis
308 Index Index 30 9
Priests (cont.). IB f., 36 f.; personal 26; Eastern 34; Stoieism 170 f., 183 f., 197 f., 218 f., Time-sense 234 f.
at Beroea 59, 282; ofCybele 71, 82, aneient and modern 160 ff. 221, 230 f., 244, 250. Timotheus 38, 40 f.
285 f.; mouthpieee of Imouthes 87; Repentanee 4,61, 180,213,242,296. Sun worship 27, 67, 75 f., 118, 130, To a senator 159 f.
Isis 80, 143, 153,281; Mithraie 44, Resurreetion 242 ff. 157, 292 (see Helios); initiate Tradition I f., 16 I, 225 f.; in Syria 36.
75; of Sarapis, hereditary or annual Revelation, desire for 107 ff. arrayed like 146. Transcendence 223, 235.
51,53 f., 56; ofSyrian goddess 75 f., Rings, Harpoerates 106. Superstition 28, 72, 82, 127, 162. Transformation by philosophy 182.
82 f.; of J udaizing group 63; digni- Rites, pagan, demonie copy of Chris- Susa 34. Tyrians 66.
taries 135 f.; forbidden in Baceha- ti an 221 f.; freeing from human Suspension of judgement 263.
nalia edict 73; interpret dreams 54, limitations 103, 118. Symbol, Dionysiae 114. Unbelief 11, 16I.
89; treat possessed 289; relation to Rome, religious poliey 67 ff., 196 f.; Symmetry, assumption of 251 f. Universalism 23, 58, 150 fT.
worshippers 63; relation to initiates religious influence 76, 134; soeial Synagogue 62, 78, 28;1, 297.
144, 147,294· divisions 122 f.; religious change at Syria 35 f. Varro 225.
Private shrines 116; 74 (Egyptian 124 ff.; J udaizers at 64; Syrians at Syrian deities on DeIos 49; at Romc Vatican sanctuary of Cybele 69 f.;
deities); 75 (Mithras); 2I6f. (Ag- 66; Christians at 187. 49, 66, 75; in Western provinccs derivatives 135, 293·
distis, &e.); 282 (Syrian goddess Ruler-worship 227 ff. 131 (see Dea Suria); custom of Venus Erycina 68.
and Aphrodite Berenice). saluting rising Sun 67. Vespasian 85, 125 f.
Proeessions ofBellona 82; Cybele 81 f., Sabbath 63 f., 78. Syrians on DeIos 49; at Rome 49. Virgil 233, 244.
286; Isis 57, 80, 139 f.; of Syrian Saerifice 101, 224 ff., 235. Syriseus 90. Visions 67, 87, 108 ff., 138, 142, 145,
goddess 60. Sailors, delivered by Sarapis 84; cf. 88. 149, 153 f., 206.
Progress I 13 f. Sallustius 186, 234, 243, 247. Tauroboliul1l 69 ff., 127, 132,284. Vocation 2 f., 50,61, 152 ff., 170; cf.
Proof-texts 237 ff., 250 f. Salvation 9; in Orphism 26; by philo- tclete ( = solemn rite) 28. 7°·
Propaganda in Hesiod 22; in Homerie sophy 181, 185; riyal ways 206; in Tellthusa 85 f. Votives 92 f., 154 f.
hymns 22 f.; of Asoka 46; Jewish Apologists 222. Temples, Greek 23; in Egypt 36;
78 f.; relating miracles 83 ff.; of Sarapis 35 ff., 50, 278; festival 39; Baechanalia 73; of Isis 74,80, 142; Water, miraculous 84 f., 237.
Alexander of Abonutiehus 95; funetions 58, 84; at Memphis 38, of Mithras 75, 132, 285; of Sarapis Ways of life 167 ff.
Christi an 249 ff.; reasons for 16. 86; at Alexandria 38, 126, 293; in 49, 51; eivic record in 60; miracles Witnessing to doctrine 185, 194 ff.
Propheeies 94, 240. Greek eities 49 ff.; at Puteoli 67; at recorded in 90; centres ofpiety 135; Women, accessibility to religious pro-
Propheey, argument from 237 ff., 254, Rome 75, 126, 129 f., 134; miracles Lueius dweils in precinct of 142; paganda 127.
258. 51 f., 84 f.; acclamations 84, 292 f.; instruction in 159. World, eoneept of 99 ff., 235.
Prophesying, in Dionysiae ecstasy 72. soter 56; superior to Fate 102; S. and Tests imposed on Christians 207. WorId to eome 61.
Prophet 2; movement in J udaism 6 I ; Mithras 134. See Katochoi. Thankfulness 4, 146. Worship 202 ff., 226.
of Dea Suria 66; Syrian, deseribed by Sarcophagi 74. Theatrkality 71, 197 ff.
Celsus 83; Alexander of Abonuti- Sceptieism 10 f., 9 I. Theology 106 f., 136 f., 150 ff., 285 f. Yoke of service 141.
ehus 93 ff. Seereey 2 14 f., 290. Thera 92.
Prophetess, Syrian 83. Seet, genesis of 28. Thessalus 108 f. Zeus 90, 230 f.
Prophetie intelleet in Philo 1°3; tone Seleueid religious poliey 35. Third day after initiation 146. Zeus Panamaros 90.
in Orphism 26; in earIyphilosophers Seneea 168, 182. Thrace, Athenians in 19. Zeus Sabazios 20, 64.
165. Sermon 78, 177 f. Thracian eults 18 ff. Zoilus 49.
Proselytes 61 f.; 109. Severan dynasty 128 f. Thracians at Athens 276. Zoroastrianism 9, 43, 243 f., 269.
Provincials in West and Oriental eults Sexuallife I, 215 ff., 252 f., 285.
131 ff. Shorn devotees 80, 148 f., 160.
Ptolemaic poliey 36, 55. Siby1239·
Purity, ritual 10, 12, 206, 216; in Siek souls 26, 220.
Orphism 30; before Dionysiac initi- Sin 8, 12, 15, 91, 145, 160, 220, 224.
ation 72; before vision 1°9 f. Slaves 66, 73, 131 f., 285. See Manu-
Puteoli 66 f., 71. mission.
Pythagoreanism 27, 31, 96, 167 f. Snake, Asclepius 94.
Social and religious change 125 ff.;
Rationalism, limitations of 225. standing of priest of Atargatis 282.
Reality and copy 243. Soerates 21, 165 f., 174, 194, 196.
Rebirth by mystery 12,39; after sup- Soldiering, holy 141.
posed death in rite 143 f.; by tauro- Soldiers 67, 127, 131 f. ,
bolium 70 f., 284; by magic 118; of Soter, Soteira (= Saviour) 56, 59.
Lueius 14I. Soul 26, 31, 44, 119,247 ff.
Reeantation I I, 160. Spirit 188 f., 221, 238, 241.
Reeitation of miracles 89. Stage, metaphor of 174, 201 f.
religio 67; Augusta 128. Stars 100 f., 144, 289 f.
Religion I; primitive 8; Greek 10, Stephen 189.

S-ar putea să vă placă și